Sie sind auf Seite 1von 397

SENTENCE OF THE COURT OF ASSIZES OF PERUGIA

(PRESIDED OVER BY DR. GIANCARLO MASSEI)

IN THE MURDER OF MEREDITH KERCHER

Translated from the Italian into English

1
Version 1.0

The collated posts from the PerugiaMurderFile forum translation thread.

Bolded numbers in square brackets, thus [123], refer to the pagination in the original
judgement. Words and phrases in square brackets [xxx] are technical terms in the
original Italian.

The Conclusion is not marked explicitly in the original document, other than by the
double-blank line that precedes it. Other sections in the judgement separated by
blank double-line spacing are marked thus: (A), (B), (C).

Note

This translation was done by a group of unpaid volunteers who are regular posters
on the Perugiamurderfile.org message board devoted to discussing the murder of
Meredith Kercher in Perugia, Italy, in November 2007. The translation and editorial
team was international in its make-up, with at least four continents represented
including Europe, both North and South America and Australasia.

Some but not all of the individuals who worked on the translation are professional
translators; others were asked to proofread sections of a technical nature because of
their expertise in certain areas (forensics, DNA, molecular biology, IT, criminal law,
etc.).

This was a daunting and complex task and was completed between March and
August 2010, having been undertaken for the sole purpose of promoting a better
understanding of this complex case, and to ensure that the facts are readily available
to the English-speaking world without selective emphasis, misstatement or bias.

It has been translated on a ‚best efforts‛ basis, and has gone through multiple
rounds of proofreading and editing, both to ensure its accuracy and to harmonise the
language insofar as possible. Persons fluent in both Italian and English are invited
and encouraged to contact PMF if they find any material errors that influence the
meaning or intention of Judge Massei. All such corrections will be investigated,
made as required and brought to the attention of the public. The print copy of pages
288 and 304 of the original Italian document were corrupted which has led to partial
translation - we would be grateful to any person who is able to supply clean versions
so that they may be translated and the document updated accordingly.

2
As with any translation, some terminology in Italian has no direct equivalent in
English. For example, the charge of calunnia has no direct equivalent in Anglo-Saxon
law. Explanations have been provided where relevant. Similarly, readers are
encouraged to submit any questions about legal or other concepts that may arise as
they peruse the report. Our goal is to make the report as clear and as accurate as
possible; to this end, it will be amended whenever doing so promotes this goal.

As the report was written and published in Italian, that language prevails in the
event of a dispute over interpretation. This English-language version is provided for
readers' convenience only; accordingly, it is a free translation and has no legal
authority or status.

This translation may be freely copied or otherwise reproduced and transmitted in


the unedited pdf format, provided that the translation or excerpt therefrom is
accompanied by the following attribution: "From the translation prepared by unpaid
volunteers from http://www.perugiamurderfile.org to promote a better
understanding of the circumstances surrounding the death of Meredith Kercher and
the case against Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito in the English-speaking
world".

Original version published on August 8, 2010 in memory of Meredith Kercher.

Date(s) of subsequent updates: tba

3
Table of contents

Introduction ............................................................................................................... 9

Grounds for verdict...................................................................................................23

(A)......................................................................................................................23

(B) ......................................................................................................................24

(C) ......................................................................................................................25

(D)......................................................................................................................27

(E) ......................................................................................................................28

(F) ......................................................................................................................28

(G)......................................................................................................................32

Meredith's girlfriends................................................................................................34

The young men living on the floor below the apartment at 7 Via della Pergola. ........39

Rudy Hermann Guede ..............................................................................................42

(A)......................................................................................................................42

(B) ......................................................................................................................42

(C) ......................................................................................................................44

(D)......................................................................................................................48

(E) ......................................................................................................................50

(F) ......................................................................................................................52

Rudy the simulator? ..................................................................................................56

(A)......................................................................................................................56

(B) ......................................................................................................................58

Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito ........................................................................61

(A)......................................................................................................................61

(B) ......................................................................................................................61

4
(C) ......................................................................................................................62

(D)......................................................................................................................63

Amanda Knox’s Account ..........................................................................................65

(A)......................................................................................................................65

(B) ......................................................................................................................66

(C) ......................................................................................................................67

Inconsistencies and denials in Amanda Knox’s tale ...................................................77

(A)......................................................................................................................77

(B) ......................................................................................................................85

The behaviour of Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito on the morning of November
2, 2007 ..............................................................................................................................87

(A)......................................................................................................................87

(B) ......................................................................................................................90

(C) ......................................................................................................................91

Depositions by Nara Capezzali and Antonella Monacchia ........................................95

(A)......................................................................................................................95

(B) ......................................................................................................................98

Investigative activity ............................................................................................... 100

(A).................................................................................................................... 100

(B) .................................................................................................................... 100

(C) .................................................................................................................... 109

Survey and evaluation of the forensic results .......................................................... 109

(A).................................................................................................................... 109

(B) .................................................................................................................... 112

(C) .................................................................................................................... 117

(D).................................................................................................................... 123

5
(E) .................................................................................................................... 125

(F) .................................................................................................................... 130

(G).................................................................................................................... 137

(H) ................................................................................................................... 140

(I) ..................................................................................................................... 142

(J) ..................................................................................................................... 147

(K) .................................................................................................................... 147

(L) .................................................................................................................... 148

(M) ................................................................................................................... 156

Evaluation of what has been set forth by the experts and forensic consultants ........ 157

The cause of death and the means by which it was occasioned ............................... 159

(A).................................................................................................................... 159

(B) .................................................................................................................... 173

Genetic investigations ............................................................................................. 180

(A).................................................................................................................... 180

(B) .................................................................................................................... 183

(C) .................................................................................................................... 189

(D).................................................................................................................... 194

(E) .................................................................................................................... 216

(F) .................................................................................................................... 227

(G).................................................................................................................... 233

(H) ................................................................................................................... 243

(I) ..................................................................................................................... 245

(J) ..................................................................................................................... 253

Genetic investigations: considerations..................................................................... 259

(L) .................................................................................................................... 260

6
Exhibit 36 (the double-DNA knife) .......................................................................... 264

Exhibit 165 (the bra-clasp) ....................................................................................... 266

Traces in the small bathroom .................................................................................. 277

Latent traces revealed by Luminol .......................................................................... 281

Exhibit 36, traces A and B ........................................................................................ 287

Exhibit 165B ............................................................................................................ 294

Raffaele Sollecito’s ‚MacBook PRO‛-model Apple laptop....................................... 299

The non-existent web-browsing activity according to the Postal Police ................... 306

The technical report from the sollecito defence team consultants ............................ 308

[GSM] Network coverage: Via della Pergola and Via Sperandio 5 BIS ..................... 311

Telephone traffic of Raffaele Sollecito’s mobile phone ............................................. 316

The phone traffic on Amanda Knox’s mobile phone................................................ 322

The phone traffic of Meredith Kercher’s mobile phones and the memory of Meredith
Kercher’s English mobile phone ..................................................................................... 326

The shoeprints: Dr Rinaldi’s and Chief Inspector Boemia’s 09-April-2008 report..... 332

The print on the mat in the small bathroom, the print (in) photo 105, the prints
highlighted by Luminol: Dr Rinaldi and Chief Inspector Boemia’s 31 May 2008 report: . 337

The mat: finding 9F, letter A.................................................................................... 338

The print (in) photo 105 (Meredith’s pillow-case) .................................................... 342

The prints highlighted by Luminol ......................................................................... 344

The consultancy of Professor Francesco Vinci, technical consultant for Sollecito's


defence ........................................................................................................................... 349

Closing considerations ............................................................................................ 357

The injuries ............................................................................................................. 368

Result of the genetic investigations ......................................................................... 372

Biological traces found in the small bathroom used by Meredith and Amanda ....... 378

Traces highlighted by Luminol ............................................................................... 380

7
{Conclusion}............................................................................................................ 388

Verdict and sentence ............................................................................................... 396

8
INTRODUCTION

Number 8 of 2008: RG Court of Assizes


Number 9077 of [20]07: RG Notice of crime Public Prosecutor

Republic of Italy
In the name of the Italian people

The Court of Assizes of Perugia composed of Their Honours

Dr Giancarlo Massei, President, and Extensor


Dr Beatrice Cristiani, Judge, and Extensor
Anna Maria Artegiani, Lay Judge
Giuliano Menichetti, Lay Judge
Maria Ludovica Morelli, Lay Judge
Angela Irene Ceccarini, Lay Judge
Andrea Valentini, Lay Judge
Palo Rapetti, Lay Judge

pronounced and published on December 4 and 5, 2009 the following

SENTENCE

against

(1) AMANDA MARIE KNOX


Born in Seattle (USA) on July 9, 1987
Currently detained in connection with this case at the Perugia Watch-house
Arrested on November 6, 2007

DETAINEE PRESENT
Retained defence counsel: Attorney Luciano Ghirga of the Bar of Perugia and
Attorney Carlo Dalla Vedova of the Bar of Rome

(2) SOLLECITO RAFFAELE


Born in Bari on March 26, 1984
Currently detained in connection with this case at the Terni Watch-house
Arrested on November 6, 2007

9
DETAINEE PRESENT
Retained defence counsel: Attorney Giulia Bongiorno of the Bar of Rome
substituted in hearing by Attorneys Daniela Rocchi and Luca Maori of the Bar of
Perugia

Plaintiffs:
John Leslie Kercher, Arline Carol Mary Kercher, John Ashley Kercher, Ly[l]e Kercher
all represented and defended by Attorney Francesco Paolo Maresca of the Bar of
Florence

Stephanie Arline Kercher


represented and defended by Attorney Serena Perna of the Bar of Florence

Diya Lumumba
represented and defended by Attorney Carlo Pacelli of the Bar of Perugia

Aldalia Tattanelli
represented and defended by Attorney Letizia Magnini of the Bar of Perugia

CHARGED

(A)
with the felony to which articles 110, 575, 576 paragraph 1 section 5 of the Criminal
Code apply, in relation to the crime listed under chapter (C), and 577 paragraph 1
section 4, in relation to article 61 sections 1 and 5 of the Criminal Code, for having, in
complicity amongst themselves [in concorso fra loro]1 and with RUDY HERMANN
GUEDE, killed MEREDITH KERCHER, by means of strangulation with consequent
fracture of the hyoid bone, and deep lesions to the left antero-lateral and right-lateral
regions of the neck, with a bladed weapon to which chapter (B) applies, and thus
haemorrhagic shock with an appreciable asphyxiatic component secondary to blood
loss (derived from the wounds from the bladed weapon present in the antero-lateral
and right-lateral regions of the neck, and the abundant aspiration of haematic
material in that context), and profiting from the late hour and the isolated location of
the apartment held in tenancy by same KERCHER and same KNOX, in addition to

1
Concorso (translated as “complicity”) is a term in Italian law indicating that the actions and realised
intentions which resulted in the event that occurred were shared, in such a way that there is shared legal
responsibility for the crime. It is a technical term with its own jurisprudence, and is divided into sub-
categories for the several kinds of concorso codified into law, each with different meanings. The possibilities
include: having a role in the chain of causes that produce a crime, planning an action committed by others,
sharing an intention different from the actual crime, lending moral support, being necessary to an action,
or bringing support while not being unnecessary. For murder, the concept can be compared with the old
common law felonies of murder-in-company, and robbery-in-company.

10
two Italian girls (FILOMENA ROMANELLI and LAURA MEZZETTI), an apartment
located in Perugia, at number 7 Via della Pergola, committing the deed for trivial
reasons (motivi futili), while GUEDE, in concourse with the others, was committing
the felony of sexual assault

(B)
with the criminal offence to which articles 110 of the Criminal Code and 4 Statutes
number 110 of 1975 apply, for having, in complicity amongst themselves, carried out
of the residence of SOLLECITO, without justified reason, a large knife of point and
blade comprising in total a length of 31 cm (seized at SOLLECITO’s on November 6,
2007, Exhibit 36)

(C)
with the felony to which articles 110, 609(b) and (c) section 2 of the Criminal Code
apply, in concourse amongst themselves and with RUDY HERMANN GUEDE (with
GUEDE the material executor, in complicity with the co-accused), constrained
MEREDITH KERCHER to submit to sexual acts, with digital and/or genital
penetration, by means of violence and threats, consisting of restraining actions
productive of lesions, in particular to the upper limbs, lower limbs and vulvar area
(ecchymotic suffusions on the antero-lateral face of the left buttock, lesions in the
vestibular area of the vulva, an ecchymotic area on the anterior face of the middle
third of the right leg), and in the use of the knife under chapter (B)

(D)
with the felony to which articles 110 and 624 of the Criminal Code apply, because, in
complicity amongst themselves, to procure an unjust profit for themselves, in the
circumstances of time and place in which chapters (A) and (C) apply, took
possession of a sum of approximately 300 Euros, two credit cards, from Abbeybank
and Nationwide, both based in the United Kingdom, and two mobile phones, the
property of MEREDITH KERCHER, removing them from same, who was in
possession of them (fact qualified in the senses of article 624(b) of the Criminal Code,
due to the reference to the place of execution of the crime contained in chapter (A),
here recalled)

(E)
of the criminal offense to which articles 110, 367 and 61 section 2 of the Criminal
Code apply, in having, in complicity amongst themselves, simulated an attempted
burglary with break-in in the room of the apartment of number 7 Via della Pergola
occupied by FILOMENA ROMANELLI, breaking the glass of the window with a

11
rock taken from the vicinity of the residence, which was left in the room, near the
window, to ensure impunity for themselves from the felonies of murder and sexual
assault, attempting to attribute the responsibility for them to persons unknown who
penetrated the apartment to this end.

All of these events having taken place in Perugia, on the night between November 1 and 2,
2007.

AMANDA MARIE KNOX, in addition

(F)

to the criminal offense2 to which articles 81 cpv., 368 paragraph 2 and 61 section 2 of
the Criminal Code apply, because, with multiple actions executed under the same
criminal design, knowing him to be innocent, with a denunciation rendered to the
Flying Squad of Perugia on the date of November 6, 2007, falsely implicated DIYA
LUMUMBA, called ‚Patrick‛, in the murder of young MEREDITH KERCHER, with
the intention of gaining impunity for everybody, and in particular for RUDY
HERMANN GUEDE, who, like LUMUMBA, is also black.

[Fact occurring] In Perugia, on the night of November 5 and 6, 2007

With the intervention of the public prosecutors: Dr Giuliano Mignini and Dr


Manuela Comodi, the parties concluding thus:

The public prosecution concludes by requesting the affirmation of penal


responsibility for both of the accused the sentence for all of the crimes to them
ascribed ex Article 72 paragraph 2 and [Article]76, 2nd paragraph of the Criminal
Code for Amanda Knox, to the penalty of life sentence with daytime isolation equal
to 9 months, for the crimes under (A) and (C), (B), (D) and (F); for Raffaele Sollecito,
to the penalty of life sentence with daytime isolation equal to 2 months for the

2
The charge of calunnia (art. 368) has been commonly translated as “slander” in the English/US
media. This translation is incorrect, however, as calunnia is a crime with no direct equivalent in the
respective legal systems. The equivalent of “criminal slander” is diffamazione, which is an attack on
someone‟s reputation. Calunnia is the crime of making false criminal accusations against someone whom
the accuser knows to be innocent, or to simulate/fabricate false evidence, independently of the
credibility/admissibility of the accusation or evidence. The charges of calunnia and diffamazione are subject
to very different jurisprudence. Diffamazione is public and explicit, and is a minor offence, usually resulting
in a fine and only prosecuted if the victim files a complaint, while calunnia can be secret or known only to
the authorities. It may consist only of the simulation of clues, and is automatically prosecuted by the
judiciary. The crimes of calunnia and diffamazione are located in different sections of the criminal code:
while diffamazione is in the chapter entitled “crimes against honour” in the section of the Code protecting
personal liberties, calunnia is discussed in the chapter entitled “crimes against the administration of
justice”, in a section that protects public powers.

12
crimes under (A), (C), (D). Barred from holding public office and legal interdiction.
Confiscation of seized assets.

The defender of the civil parties: Attorney Perna for the civil party Stephanie Arline
Kercher requesting compensation for patrimonial damages and non, to be liquidated
in the amount of 5,000,000 euros or a higher or lower amount deemed appropriate,
in the alternative to sentence the accused to the payment of a provisional amount
deemed appropriate, in addition to the payment of procedural costs.

Attorney Magnini for the civil plaintiff Aldalia Tattanelli requesting the sentencing of
all the crimes to them ascribed with sentencing to compensation for patrimonial
damages and non, to be liquidated in a separate hearing; to the sentencing of the
payment of a provisional amount, payable immediately, of 37,800 euros in addition
to the payment of procedural costs.

Attorney Pacelli for the plaintiff Diya Lumumba

The defenders of the accused:

Attorney Bongiorno for the accused Sollecito concluding, requesting absolution in the
senses of Article 530 paragraph 1 of the Criminal Procedure Code for not having
committed the deed.

Attorney Ghirga for the accused Knox concludes for the crime of calunnia to which
chapter (F) [applies] because the deed [committed] does not constitute the crime, for
the remaining chapters of charges concludes requesting absolution for not having
committed the deed.

13
[1] THE UNFOLDING OF THE TRIAL

On November 2, 2007, a little after 1:00 pm in the building at Via della Pergola 7 in
Perugia, the body of the English student Meredith Kercher was found. She had come
to Perugia at the end of the summer of 2007 under the auspices of the Erasmus
Programme and was taking classes at the University for Foreigners of Perugia.

Her lifeless body was sprawled on the floor of the bedroom which she occupied,
having rented the apartment, owned by Aldalìa Tattanelli and organised in
particular for the reception of university students, with three other girls.

For the murder of Meredith Kercher and for the other crimes which the preliminary
investigations shortly unveiled, the Public Prosecutor of Perugia initiated the
criminal prosecution against Amanda Marie KNOX, co-tenant of the victim, a
university student from Seattle (US) engaged in a plan of study in Italy similar to
that of Meredith Kercher; against Raffaele SOLLECITO, a student at the college of
Computer Engineering at the University of Perugia and the boyfriend of KNOX; and
finally against Rudy Hermann GUEDE, a citizen of the Ivory Coast and a resident of
Perugia since infancy.

The preliminary hearing against Amanda Marie KNOX, Raffaele SOLLECITO and
Rudy Hermann GUEDE was held on October 28, 2008.

Rudy GUEDE opted for a fast-track 3 trial; for Amanda KNOX and Raffaele
SOLLECITO the GUP4 of the Tribunal of Perugia ordered the adjournment of the
proceedings to the Court of the Assizes of Perugia for a hearing beginning December
4, 2008.

The accused are called to answer for the crimes indicated in the decree ex article 429
of the Criminal Procedure Code under which they are indicted.

In particular, under chapter A of the charges, in material complicity with Rudy


Guede, the murder, with more than one aggravating circumstance, of Meredith
Kercher (crime provided for under Articles 110 and 575 of the Criminal Code, the
aggravation dealt with under Article 576, paragraph l, section 5 of the Criminal
Code, being alleged in that the murder is held to have been committed in the context
of the sexual violence suffered by Ms. Kercher ascribed to chapter C of the charges,
this crime, murder, further aggravated by the notification under Article 61, sections

3
The committal hearing becomes the trial of first instance based on the evidence as it then stands
4
GUP, Judge of the Preliminary Hearings

14
(1) and (5) of the Criminal Code re trivial reasons [motivi futili] and re disabled
defence).

[2] Under chapter B of the charges, KNOX and SOLLECITO are accused of the
offence of carrying the alleged murder weapon, a knife (Exhibit 36 in the following
account), outside the dwelling of Sollecito without justifiable reason.

Under chapter C is charged, in complicity with Rudy Hermann Guede in the guise
of the material executor, the crime of sexual violence against Meredith Kercher, a
hypothesis aggravated under Article 609(c), section 2 of the Criminal Code, the
hypothetical use of the knife referred to under chapter B of the charges being used to
threaten the victim and facilitate the conduct of violence.

Under chapter D of the charges, is ascribed to KNOX and to SOLLECITO, in


complicity together, the theft of goods which belonged to Meredith Kercher (in
particular two mobile phones, a sum of money, and two credit cards from British
banks), in this case charged according to Article 624 bis of the Criminal Code.

Under chapter E of the charges is ascribed, in complicity together, the crime


according to [ex] Article 367 of the Criminal Code, with the aggravation of the
deliberate intention, alleging that the accused simulated an attempted theft inside
the room of Meredith’s and Amanda’s co-tenant Filomena Romanelli – the signs and
the means of the break-in are described in the charges – with the aim of attributing to
persons unknown, who had entered the apartment, responsibility for the murder
and the hypothetical sexual violence suffered by Meredith Kercher.

Finally, under chapter F of the charges is ascribed to Amanda Marie KNOX alone the
crime of criminal defamation to the detriment of Diya Lumumba, known as
‚Patrick‛, a crime brought in by continuation [reato contestato nella forma continuata]5,
insofar as the alleged false accusations in relation to the responsibility of Lumumba
for the murder of Meredith Kercher is held to have been contained in several
statements made by Knox to the investigators on November 6, 2007; a crime
aggravated in the sense of Article 61 section 2 of the Criminal Code, it being

5
Continuation means that the crime was committed repeatedly, implying multiple actions over a
period of time but where those actions are part of a continuum of the same criminal action (“medesimo
disegno criminoso”). For example, the stabbing of two people one after the other would be charged as
„killing in continuation‟. The multiple criminal actions are, however, judged as one, with an overall
assessment. Continuation is a legal category that also applies to different offences, meaning that different
actions are logically linked in such way to be considered as a single case, and this may constitute
aggravation, but also implies that evidence of the different crimes can be shared. Here the evidence that
comes from the calunnia case is brought into the murder, and vice-versa, because of the aggravation link.

15
expected that, with this false accusation, Amanda Knox was allegedly attempting to
obtain impunity for herself, for Sollecito, and also for Rudy Hermann Guede.

The crime allegedly committed in Perugia on the night between November 5 and 6,
2007.

[3] At the preliminary hearing the family of Meredith Kercher and, [as persons]
damaged by some of the crimes respectively, Diya Lumuba, defended by Attorney
Carlo Pacelli of the Perugia Forum, against Amanda Marie KNOX alone in reference
to heading F, and Adalia Tatanelli, defended by Attorney Letizia Magnini of the
Perugia Forum, against all the accused, constituted themselves as plaintiffs.

For the family of Meredith Kercher, with the office of Attorney Francesco Paolo
Maresca of the Florence Forum, the parents of the English student, John Leslie
Kercher and Arline Carol Mary Kercher, and the brothers John Ashley Kercher and
Lyle Kercher constituted themselves plaintiffs.

The date of the first hearing, fixed by the decree which set the hearing for December
4, 2008, was changed with the permission of the President of the Court of the Assizes
at the request of the parties, [both] public and private, for organisational reasons
related to the preparation of the case for trial.

The date of January 16, 2009 was thus set as the first hearing, with the appropriate
decree pursuant to Article 465 section 1 of the criminal procedure code, the
installation of the civil judges of the Court of the Assizes had taken place previously,
the actual and assistant members, who took the oath as provided for under Article
30 of the Act dated April 10, 1951, section 287, and the appropriate trial record was
compiled immediately, as per the aforementioned Article 30.

Present at the first hearing – and at all successive ones – previously transferred as
[they were] remanded in custody, the accused Amanda Marie KNOX and Raffaele
SOLLECITO, assisted by their Defenders (Attorney Carlo Dalla Vedova of the Forum
of Rome and Attorney Luciano Ghirga of the Forum of Perugia for Amanda Knox;
Attorney Giulia Bongiorno of the Forum of Rome and Attorney Luca Maori of the
Forum of Perugia for Raffaele Sollecito), present the constituted plaintiffs and in
person Diya Lumumba, in a preliminary step the Court of the Assizes deliberated in
order the request to proceed in closed court and to authorise the audio-visual
recording of the trial.

16
[4] In fact the petition was made by the Kerchers, plaintiffs, to hold the trial in closed
court according to Article 472 paragraph 1 of the criminal procedure code, in the
expectation that in the category of the charges the crime of sexual violence would
also be treated. Following the discussion on the questions both as to derogation from
the principle of a public trial and also of the eventual consent to audio-visual
recording of the hearings, the Court deliberated according to the order in the trial
records. On the one hand submission was made not to derogate from the principle of
public hearings - the offended party not being a minor and furthermore no longer
alive, the charge did not render it obligatory to proceed in closed court – in any case
reserving the admission of evidence in the absence of the public for single activities
for which a specific need arose; as for the possibility of audio-visual recordings of
the trial provided by article 147 section 2 of the Criminal Procedure Code, in the
absence of agreement between the parties, the Court did not opt to autonomously
authorise the recordings according to the disposition of article 147 section 2 already
cited. It was argued in fact that the public [nature of the] hearings from which it was
not intended to derogate, would permit in itself on the part of journalists of the print
media and of the television channels present in the court, the full and timely
informing of public opinion, such as to satisfy the public interest in information
pertaining to the trial. Nonetheless, a possible different determination was held in
reserve should the parties later give their consent.

At the hearing of January 16, 2009 the Defence for Sollecito, in limine litis, inferred the
nullity of the interrogatory session by the magistrate to which the defendant had
been subjected because of the violation of his right to assistance – it was affirmed
that the Prosecutor, when Sollecito had been subjected to police arrest, had deferred
the exercising of the right to confer with his Defence, without however issuing the
required decree with the report on the grounds for arrest, as is evidenced by the
physical unavailability of the provision of Article 104 section 3 of the criminal
procedure code, not present in the acts; for this reason the inefficacy of the remand
measure taken out against Sollecito is pleaded consequent to the nullity of the
interrogatory session taken at the hearing for the ratification of the arrest; the
violation of the right to a defence is inferred, in so much as the obligation to [5]
deposit the acts of the investigation before the admission of the interrogatory session
itself.

The Court decided on the questions of nullity as a decree of which a reading was
given. It was observed, on the one hand, that the nullity of the act, the interrogatory,
ensuing from a violation of the right to assistance other than in the cases of the

17
obligatory presence of the defender, the violation had been pleaded late – for the
first time only as the interrogatory on the merits, in process, admitted by the Judge
of the Preliminary Investigation (GIP). And in truth, the two nullities (that of the
provision of prohibition of the interview and the autonomous nullity of the
interrogatory, in its turn deriving from the nullity of the provision which defers the
meeting with the defender) are both provisioned by jurisprudence among those of
the general order regulated by Article 180 of the criminal procedure code, and for
them the relative exceptions must be proposed within the terms of forfeiture
governed by Article 182 paragraph 2 of the criminal procedure code.

The nullity of the type of the interrogatory of the person arrested must thus be
pleaded, at the risk of forfeiture, within the terms governed by Article 182 paragraph
2, previously cited, and thus before the formalities of the opening of the act, the
interrogatory, which the party was attending (cf. Supreme Court of Cassation section
4, judgement number 39827/07 in the trial of Recchia).

In the case cited the inference was late and the nullity – particularly regarding the
Magistrate’s interrogatory – was found to have been repaired.

In relation to the failure to lodge the acts of the investigation before the assumption
of the interrogatory, the Court finally cited the jurisprudence of specific legitimacy
on the point, which does not provide for the obligation of such lodging in cases in
which the interrogatory precedes the adoption of remand into custody, as happens
when – as in the case under examination – the measure is put in place after the
outcome of the validation hearing.

At the hearing of January 16, 2009, at the point of the preparation of the file for the
trial, it was petitioned solely that the acts pertaining to the measure for remand into
custody (an executive order, a provision of the Review Tribunal, and judgements of
the Supreme Court in materia de libertate) should be eliminated from the facts
comprising the file for the trial.

This Court ruled in conformity with the dictate of Article 432 of the Criminal
Procedure Code.

[6] The trial finally being declared open, the parties articulated the types of evidence
(lists of testimonies and of expert advisors having been lodged in due time by the
prosecution, by the civil parties, with the exception of Tattanelli Adalia, and by the
defence teams; the Prosecutor asked for the examination of the co-accused tried
separately, Rudy Hermann Guede; the examination of Amanda Knox was requested

18
by the plaintiff Lumumba and by the Knox defence; each party offered immediately
the production of documents, or alternatively their production was reserved) which
were admitted.

At the hearing of February 6, 2009 the Court rejected the request by Knox’s defence
to expunge from the production of documents of the plaintiff Lumumba the hand-
written memorial in the English language, written by Amanda Knox on November 6,
2007 at the Offices of the Flying Squad of Police Headquarters, handed over to an
official of the judicial police before the person under investigation was transferred to
prison on the execution of the decree of arrest, and also the other memorial written
in prison on November 7, 2007.

For the memorial of November 6, 2007, which the Court indicated as admissible as
part of the body of evidence of defamation, and on the basis of disposition of Article
237 of the criminal procedure code, the considerations evidenced were developed in
the appropriate decree. The Court did not agree in fact about the relevance of the
question of constitutionality proposed in reference to the combined disposition of
Articles 103 paragraph 6 and 237 of the criminal procedure code for the presumed
conflict with Articles 3 and 24 of the Constitution – if necessary the Defence for Knox
looked forward to an additive intervention of the Constitutional Court such as to
provide for the addition in the body of the disposition of Article 237 of the Criminal
Procedure Code of the prohibition to deliver, without the assistance of the defender,
defence documents created by the person under investigation, acts therefore of the
private defence - the point being made that the code does not prohibit the
performance of the private defence and at the same time does not provide for the
penal incapacity of the person investigated, who on the contrary is called to answer
for crimes committed by means of the spontaneous declarations. (cf. Supreme Court
of Cassation number l0089/05 on the non-extension of the guarantee of non-usability
of spontaneous declarations dealt with under Article 350, paragraph 7 of the Code of
Criminal Procedure, insofar as it oversteps the right of defence, it being excluded
that the guarantee under discussion can be valid in the case of spontaneous
declarations with defamatory content).

[7] The trial proceedings finally began in the same hearing of February 6, 2009 with
the examination of the first witnesses carried out by the Prosecutor.

The depositions of the witnesses and the expert witnesses of the Prosecutor
continued until the hearing of June 12, 2009, when the examination of Amanda Knox
began, concluding the next day, June 13. As of the hearing of January 16, 2009, Knox

19
had been provided with the assistance of an American English interpreter in the
person of Dr Anna Baldelli Fronticelli.

In the course of numerous hearings the brief of evidence, as specified in the relevant
trial records, was adduced.

The co-accused, separately tried, Rudy Hermann Guede, examined at the hearing of
April 4, 2009 pursuant to Article 210 paragraph 1 of the Criminal Procedure Code
with the assistance of his defenders, availed himself of the right to not respond.

The Defence teams began presenting their case, evidence, witnesses and experts on
June 16, 2009.

In the meantime the Court had initiated, at the request of the Sollecito defence and in
agreement with the Prosecutor, the expert task of a joint nature for the transcription
of the tapped telephone conversations and voice recordings arranged by the Office
of the Public Prosecutor in Perugia in the course of the preliminary investigations,
the transcription of which had been requested.

(These voice recordings were made at Police Headquarters in Perugia, appropriately


prepared, where the co-tenants of Meredith Kercher, the boys of the apartment
below that one occupied by the murdered girl, and the English girlfriends of the
English student involved in the Erasmus Programme, had gathered on the afternoon
of November 2, 2007. Other voice recordings were made during meetings in prison
between Amanda and her parents. Finally, phone tappings had been made of the
fixed and mobile phone services of the family of Raffaele Sollecito.)

At the hearing of September 14, 2009 the defences of the accused objected, citing a
breach to the right of defence which it claimed had taken place, stating in this regard
that they be declared null and void. The other parties, who asked that this objection
be [8] disregarded, having been heard, this Court issued the decree (which it read) in
which the objection regarding nullity was rejected and in which it ruled to continue
proceedings.

At the hearing of September 26, 2009, the examination of the expert witnesses and
witnesses for the Defences came to a close (for witnesses who were not located or
who had withdrawn following a waiver, on the consensus of the parties, the records
of spontaneous declarations given to the judiciary police were admitted) after which,
at the hearing of October 9, 2009 the Defences articulated requests for expert reports
according to the provisions of Article 507 of the Criminal Procedure Code.

20
In particular, a medico-legal expert report was requested, with the aim of
ascertaining in terms of greater practicability in respect of the indications furnished:
the time of death of Meredith Kercher (once a time band narrower than that
indicated by the technical consultants of the Prosecutor or of the panel of experts
under the preliminary investigations judge [the GIP], it would be possible to verify
whether Raffaele Sollecito had interacted with his PC within a more precisely
defined timeframe); the dynamics of the action of the murder, also in reference to the
infallibility of the presence, or otherwise, of a number of agents; the repetition of the
genetic investigations, or at least the revaluation of the traces with reference to
Exhibits 165B and 36, the procedures/methodology of the gathering of the exhibits
undertaken by the genetics expert of the Scientific Police, Dr Stefanoni, who carried
out the verifications, having been questioned; an expert audiometric test was sought,
to be undertaken to establish whether the witness Nara Capezzali, on the premise of
the presence in her dwelling of double-glazed windows, was able to hear the noises
and the screams of which she had given an account in her deposition; an expert
report on the computers of the accused was requested, the memories of which were
found to have been damaged at the time of the analysis of the supports carried out
by the Postal Police, such that the hard drives could not be duplicated/cloned for
subsequent examination.

The Court disallowed all the requests, on the grounds that the additional expert
reports requested did not appear necessary, since the very ample dialectic
contribution from the expert witnesses of the private parties offered sufficient
material to take a position without additional expertise.

[9] Consequently, the closure of the proceedings was declared and a timetable was
set for deliberations.

The Prosecutors’ closing arguments were presented on November 20 and 21, 2009.
The civil parties made their closing arguments on November 27, and the lodging of
the written conclusions followed this; the Defence for Sollecito took the floor on
November 28 and 30, and the Defence for Knox on December 1 and 2.

December 3 was devoted to rebuttals, with both of the accused - as often happened
in the course of the hearings – making spontaneous declarations.

At the hearing of December 4 the Defence for Sollecito concluded the rebuttals,
submitting a memorandum evidencing that on the site of the inspection of May 25,
2009, on the pillowcase of the pillow found in the victim’s room some stains had

21
been found with the ‚crimescope‛ that could have been spermatic in nature and that
these had not been the object of any genetic analysis. In relation to this contention,
various questions were raised as to the necessity of testing relative to these stains.

At the end of the discussion, at 10:39 am, the Court of the Assizes retired to the jury
room, having previously dismissed the deputy civil judges. The purview of the
determined decision was read in a public hearing on the date of December 5, 2009,
the Court having returned to the courtroom at 12:06 am.

Given the complexity of the matter and the gravity of the charges, the deadline for
drawing up the motivation report was set at 90 days, ex Article 544 paragraph 3 of
the Criminal Procedure Code.

22
GROUNDS FOR VERDICT

The presentation of the ample material which emerged from the preliminary
investigations set in motion as a result of the murder of Meredith Kercher, and the
scrutiny of the outcomes of the hearings, suggest a subdivision into chapters of the
matter, in the terms which follow.

[10]

ACCOUNT OF THE EVENTS

(A)
On November 2, 2007, in the house located at 7 Via della Pergola, shortly after 1:00
pm, the lifeless body of a girl was found, covered by a duvet from which protruded
only a naked foot; in the immediate surroundings and more or less all over the room
were large blood stains.

The body was identified as that of Meredith Susanna Cara Kercher. Meredith
Susanna Cara Kercher, born in London on December 28, 1985, had studied the
Italian language as well as Latin, and had come to Italy under the auspices of the
Erasmus Programme.

She had chosen the city of Perugia because it was small and easily reached because
of its airport. Every day Meredith called her family, with whom she had a very close
relationship. She had taken classes in dance and played sports (football, karate); she
was a strong girl, both physically and in terms of temperament (cf. statements by her
mother and by her sister Stephanie, hearing of June 6, 2009). She had left for Perugia
on September 1, 2007.

At first, she stayed in a hotel, until she had found the rental house in Via della
Pergola, which she liked because of its location: near the university and offering a
very beautiful view of the Umbrian landscape.

Having finished the Italian language course, she had begun to study other
disciplines: politics, English, cinema, Italian language.

On September 28, 2007, Meredith returned to England to get warmer clothes, leaving
again for Perugia on October 1. Both her mother and her sister knew about the
housemate Amanda and about relationships with her; when Amanda had begun to
work at a bar ‚Meredith and her friends had gone there to give her support, to be

23
with her‛ (cf. again deposition of her mother); Meredith, furthermore, said that
Amanda was constantly singing (declarations of her sister Stephanie).

Her mother reported having heard from her the last time on Thursday, November 1,
2007, ‚the day she died‛, in the early afternoon. She had told her mother that she
would be coming back home on November 9 and would thus be able to celebrate her
mother’ imminent birthday on November 11.

Meredith was very attached to her family and very affectionate; she had bought
some presents and had a case full of chocolate she had bought in Perugia [11] that
she wanted to bring for her sister, Stephanie Arline Lara Kercher. She was,
furthermore, ‚very conscientious, very intelligent‛. She loved pizza very much and
at times went dancing (see statements by her father, hearing of June 6, 2009).

When she moved into the house at 7 Via della Pergola, she occupied the room
furthest from the entrance door, the one with the window that looked towards the
valley below, from which, in fact, the panorama about which she had spoken to her
mother could be appreciated.

(B)
Via della Pergola is a small street very close to the University for Foreigners and
number 7 is almost hidden from Viale S.Antonio and from the car park which are in
front of it. The dwelling was subdivided into two apartments, one in the basement
occupied at the time by four young men from the Marches region, and the other on
the ground floor occupied by four girls: Filomena Romanelli, Laura Mezzetti,
Amanda Marie Knox and Meredith Susanna Cara Kercher. Each of the four girls had
her own room.

The first two – who were the oldest and already working full-time – occupied the
rooms nearest to the entry to the house: Romanelli occupied the room to the left in
respect of the person entering and Mezzetti the one opposite.

These two rooms were separated from the living room by a kitchenette that the four
girls shared. From this room a corridor ran to a small bathroom located near
Meredith’s room, almost in front of this room. It was usually used by Amanda and
Meredith.

Amanda’s room was in the middle, between Romanelli’s room which was the first in
respect of the entrance door, and Meredith’s room, which was the last. All of them

24
were located to the left of the corridor in respect of people entering. Only the room
occupied by Mezzetti was located on the other side (i.e., to the right of the corridor).

Romanelli and Mezzetti used a different bathroom, bigger than the one used by
Meredith and Amanda, equipped with a small anteroom that contained a washing
machine, which was entered by a door opening from the living room.

[12] At the moment when the lifeless body Meredith Susanna Cara Kercher was
found, in the house at 7 Via della Pergola there were present, as well as the present
accused, Filomena Romanelli, her friend Paola Grande and their boyfriends: Marco
Zaroli and Luca Altieri. All had arrived at the house around 1:00 pm on the day of
November 2.

Also present were an inspector and an officer from the Postal Police of Perugia:
Michele Battistelli and Fabio Marzi, who arrived a little before 1:00 pm.

The presence of the Postal Police in the persons of Inspector Battistelli and officer
Marzi had been occasioned by the discovery a few hours earlier of a mobile phone,
and then of a second mobile phone, in the garden of the house of Elisabetta Lana,
located in Via Sperandio, Perugia

This garden and the house, both hidden by trees, are in the area of Parco S. Angelo, a
short distance from 7 Via della Pergola: a distance which would have required a very
few minutes to cover by car (two or three minutes), about 15 to 20 minutes on foot
(see statements by Fiammetta Biscarini, hearing of February 6, 2009) or less, (cf.
statements by Dr Chiacchiera, who indicated that the time needed to reach Via
Sperandio from Via della Pergola was 5 – 7 minutes, specifying that it was possible
to go via Corso Garibaldi – which is 200 metres from Via Sperandio – or also via the
park, declarations made by Dr Chiacchiera at the hearing of February 27, 2009, page
145).

(C)
Thus it happened that the evening of November 1, 2007 at around 10:00 pm,
someone called and warned Elisabetta Lana not to use the toilet of her dwelling
because it contained a bomb which could explode. Mrs. Lana immediately notified
the police of this phone call; and they came to the house but did not find anything.
Mrs. Lana and her husband were nonetheless asked to go to the Postal Police the
next day to report said telephone call.

25
The next day (November 2), as they were preparing to go and file the report, their
son Alessandro Biscarini found a mobile phone ‚in the garden, in the clearing in
front of the house" at around 9:00 am (declarations of Alessandro Biscarini, hearing
of February 6, 2009, page 166).

Thinking that it has been lost by one of the officers who had come the evening
before, Mrs. Elisabetta Lana phoned Police Headquarters and was told to bring [13]
this phone to the Postal Police, where she was going anyway and where she arrived,
with her husband, at about 10:15 am.

Dr Bartolozzi, the officer to whom the mobile phone was given, traced its owner:
Filomena Romanelli, residing at 7 Via della Pergola in Perugia.

Shortly thereafter, and after Mrs. Elisabetta Lana and her husband had left the Postal
Police office, their daughter Elisabetta Biscarini informed them that she had found a
second mobile phone in the same garden of the house on Via Sperandio, between
11:45 am and 12:00 noon, a short distance from where the first phone had been
found. This mobile phone, taken into the house and placed on the table, had rung
and, the name of the person calling had appeared in the display field: ‚The name of
the person calling was Amanda‛ (declarations of Alessandro Biscarini, hearing
February 6, 2009, page 167).

The circumstance of finding the second mobile phone was immediately reported to
Dr Bartolozzi, who asked that this second mobile phone also be brought to him.

Around 12:15-12:20 pm, Mrs. Lana was thus once again at the Postal Police office,
this time with the second mobile phone, which she handed over to Dr Bartolozzi.

Alessandro Biscarini specified that the place in the garden where he had found the
first mobile phone, a Motorola, was about 15 – 20 metres from the road above and
that the second phone had been found a short distance from the first. He specified
that the second mobile phone had been found by his sister Fiammetta who, in
testimony provided at the same hearing, reported that on the morning of November
2, 2007, she was in the garden of her own house around midday when she heard a
mobile phone ringing. She took this mobile phone into the house, where it rang
again, and in the display field appeared the name of Amanda.

Filippo Bartolozzi, at the time Manager of the Department of the Communications


Police for Umbria, confirmed that on the morning of November 2, 2007 Mrs.
Elisabetta Lana had brought the mobile phone with her to the Police office. It was a

26
Motorola that she said she had found in the garden of her own home. Using this
mobile phone, Dr Bartolozzi had made a call to a number in the Office and had thus
been able to identify Filomena Romanelli, resident at 7 Via della Pergola, as the
owner of the number of [14] this mobile phone. This check was carried out at 11:38
am (page 54 of the statements of Bartolozzi, hearing of February 6, 2009). He then
sent Inspector Battistelli and Assistant Marzi to 7 Via della Pergola: it would have
been at noon (page 42 of statements by Bartolozzi).

Shortly after, he found out that another mobile phone, this one an Ericsson, had been
found in the garden of Via Sperandio. This mobile telephone was brought to the
office and kept with the other one.

He had tried to find the number and the owner of the service of this second phone as
well, but without success.

He had then thought that ‚the mobile phone could have a SIM card belonging to a
foreign telephone company‛ (declarations of Bartolozzi, hearing of February 6,
2009).

(D)
These then are the preceding facts and the reason for the presence at the house at 7
Via della Pergola shortly before 1:00 pm on November 2, 2009 of the Postal Police
team consisting of Inspector Michele Battistelli and Assistant Fabio Marzi.

As stated by Battistelli (page 80, hearing of February 6, 2009) they had some
difficulty finding the house, as they had gone along Viale S. Antonio, which is
alongside and in part hides the house. Twice, Battistelli had had to get out of the car
and walk along before finding the house, where he arrived with Assistant Marzi at a
little after 12:30 pm, or so it seemed to the two policemen.

At said dwelling they did not find Filomena Romanelli, the person they were
looking for, for the reason stated above, but rather the present accused, who were
outside the house sitting near the fence located almost at the end of the lane that
leads to the house itself, once past a gate. They were, then, outside the house, near
the side of the wall where the window of the room occupied at the time by Filomena
Romanelli is located.

Said window had two half-closed shutters, and the right-hand shutter (the right with
respect to the person looking at it) was ‚slightly more open‛ (page 62, hearing of
February 6, 2009, Battistelli’s statements).

27
As soon as they arrived, the young people – Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito –
said that they were waiting for the carabinieri whom they had called since ‚coming
back to the cottage in the morning because they had been away for the night‛ and
finding ‚the entrance [15] door open and then the window broken‛ (see declarations
by Battistelli, hearing of February 7, 2009, page 64).

Shortly after his arrival at the house in Via della Pergola, Battistelli was informed by
his superior Dr Bartolozzi that a second mobile phone had been found. The checks
carried out on this second mobile phone had not produced any results, as has
already been recorded.

Nonetheless, the similar time and place of the finding of the two mobile phones
made it reasonable to think of a similar cause and allowed it to be held that the
owner of one – Filomena Romanelli – would have been able to provide information
about the second as well. Michele Battistelli was thus informed as well about the
second discovery.

(E)
At about 1:00 pm Filomena Romanelli, her friend Paola Grande and their boyfriends
Marco Zaroli and Luca Altieri arrived at the house in Via della Pergola.

Inspector Battistelli and Assistant Marzi had come to the house in Via della Pergola
precisely because of Filomena Romanelli, but when the latter arrived at about 1:00
pm on November 2, changing the plans she and her friend Paola Grande had made
for that semi-holiday (the Day of the Dead) because she has been called by the Postal
Police to give explanations about the Motorola phone registered to her and found in
the garden of the house Via Sperandio.

(F)

Filomena Romanelli had been living in the house at 7 Via della Pergola since August
of that year with Laura Mezzetti. Since there were two other rooms available and a
second bathroom, they tried to find two other girls with whom they could share
rental expenses, which amounted to a total of 1,200 euros a month.

28
At the beginning of September Amanda Knox arrived and said she was interested in
living in the house. She had chosen her own room, the one located between
Romanelli’s room and the one that would be Meredith’s room.

Amanda Knox had then left to spend a few days in Germany, where she had an
aunt.

Meredith had arrived after this and also expressed interest in the house [16]. She
began to live there in mid-September 2007, occupying the room furthest from the
entrance, next to Amanda’s and in front of the small bathroom, the second bathroom
of this apartment. It was generally and mostly used by the two girls, Meredith and
Amanda.

Filomena Romanelli was mainly attached to Laura Mezzetti, her own age and like
her, working full-time. All the same, she had excellent relations with all (the girls):
on October 30, 2007, after returning from work in the late afternoon she had had a
long chat with Meredith, and on November 1, 2007, before leaving the house to go
with her fiancé, she had asked Amanda to help her wrap a present. She had also met
Amanda’s boyfriend, Raffaele Sollecito, on October 26, the day immediately after
Amanda and Raffaele had met.

All four girls had the keys to the front door of the house, which was a little faulty: it
was in fact necessary to use the key to close it. Indeed, when you only pushed it, it
did not always click and therefore it did not always close.

Filomena Romanelli recalled that on that November 1 she had planned to go with
her fiancé, Marco Zaroli, to the house of Luca Altieri, who was celebrating his
birthday. As she had to change her clothes and wrap up a gift for Luca Altieri, she
had gone home to 7 Via della Pergola with Marco Zaroli. In the house she found
Amanda, who was having breakfast, and who told her that Meredith was asleep in
her room (pages 28 and 29, hearing of February 7, 2009). She had thus left the house,
spending the rest of the day and the night with her boyfriend Marco Zaroli. The next
day, she had gone in her boyfriend’s car to get her friend, Paola Grande, who was at
the house of Luca Altieri, and with whom she intended to go to the area of Pian di
Massiano where the Fair of the Dead was being held.

Around midday, at ten past twelve, when they had not yet arrived at the car park of
the Fair, and she was in the car with her friend Paola Grande, she received a phone
call: it was Amanda letting her know that there was something strange.

29
She had arrived and had found the door open: she had had a shower and it had
seemed to her that there was some blood; moreover she said that she was going [17]
to Raffaele’s place (declarations of Romanelli page 31, hearing of February 7, 2009).

To her (Filomena’s) question about where Meredith was, she had answered that she
did not know.

Filomena Romanelli, disturbed by this phone call, had rung Amanda back without
receiving a reply and when, a little later, she had succeeded in speaking to Amanda,
Amanda had told her that in her room (i.e., in Ms. Romanelli’s room) the
windowpane was broken, everything was in a mess, and that she should come back
home.

At this point she was extremely concerned; she had rung her fiancé, Marco Zaroli,
reporting to him what Amanda had told her and asking him to go to the house in
Via della Pergola to see what had happened.

Marco Zaroli, who was without a car because Ms. Romanelli had taken it, had called
his friend Luca Altieri and they had gone together to the house in Via della Pergola,
where they arrived around 1:00 pm, at almost the same time as Filomena Romanelli
and Paola Grande. In the house there were the also the two present accused and – as
we have seen – Inspector Battistelli and Assistant Marzi. The presence of the latter
two was linked by Ms. Romanelli to what Amanda had told her about the open
door, the broken pane, her own room in a mess.

She was therefore quite surprised when Inspector Battistelli asked her whether she
knew the phone numbers he showed her, written on a piece of paper, one Italian and
the other English.

Filomena Romanelli knew and thus in response answered that they were the
numbers of the telephones used by Meredith: one for Italy and in her name,
Filomena Romanelli, which she herself had given to Meredith for phone calls in
Italy; and the other phone, which was used for calls to England, where Meredith had
all her family.

The information about finding the two phones in the garden of a house in Via
Sperandio significantly aggravated fears and concerns about what could have
happened.

30
Filomena Romanelli knew that Meredith was never without her Ericsson mobile
phone, the one for calling England, since she used it to be constantly informed about
the condition of her mother’s health, which was not good.

[18] Filomena Romanelli had ascertained from a quick check of her room, even
though (it was) in a complete mess with the windowpane broken, that nothing was
missing. Nonetheless, what Amanda had told her about the front door being found
open, about the presence of blood stains found in the bathroom used by Amanda
and Meredith, and about the discovery of the two mobile phones, created a
worrisome situation, all the more so because there was no news about Meredith and
the door of her room appeared to be locked.

This last circumstance, downplayed by Amanda, who said that even when she went
to the bathroom for a shower Meredith always locked the door to her room (see
declarations of Marco Zaroli, page 180, hearing of February 6, 2009 and declarations
of Luca Altieri, page 218, hearing of February 6, 2009), had alarmed Ms. Romanelli
more. She said she was aware of only once, when she had returned to England and
had been away for a few days, that Meredith had locked the door of her room. (This
circumstance was confirmed by Laura Mezzetti, page 6, hearing of February 14,
2009).

It was in this context, full of anxiety and concern, that the decision was made by the
four young people – Filomena Romanelli, Paola Grande, Luca Altieri, and Marco
Zaroli - to break down the door of the room of Meredith Susanna Cara Kercher.

Nevertheless, with regard to this specific aspect – the locked door and the decision to
break it down – some - to say the least - contradictory elements had emerged:
Amanda, as has already been reported, had stated that Meredith always locked the
door to her room and therefore it was normal that it was locked; Raffaele Sollecito
had tried to break down the door with a kick, thus putting in action behaviour
which contradicted the normality of the locked door claimed by Amanda; strangely,
however, he had not persisted in his effort to break down the door, which had
suffered only a scratch, and notwithstanding that he had not been able to offer
genuine resistance to a greater and effective determination – as is evidenced by the
fact that Luca Altieri, a little later, had been able to force it with a kick and a blow
from his shoulder – he had not tried again to force the door.

It must also be remembered that Amanda Knox, on this specific detail [19] in the e-
mail sent on November 4, 2007 to 25 people in the US, after having referred to the

31
chaos in Filomena’s room, the open window and the broken pane, continued in this
way:

‚I then went into the part of the house which Meredith and I shared and checked in
my room whether anything was missing, and in fact nothing was missing. Then I
knocked on Meredith’s door. At first I thought that she was sleeping and for this
(reason) I knocked quietly, but then because nobody answered I started to knock
repeatedly until I began to bang hard on the door while I was shouting her name. No
reply. Panic stricken I ran to the terrace to see whether I could see something over
the window sill, but I could not see inside.‛

We will have an opportunity to return to this e-mail and other documents


originating from Amanda Knox, as well as to her own statements made in the course
of this debate.

Nonetheless, it appeared necessary to evidence, straight away, the attitude of panic


affirmed in the e-mail referring to the locked door, which in contrast was completely
lacking on the arrival of Ms. Romanelli and the other young people. Furthermore, it
does not appear that either one or the other said a thing to Battistelli and Marzi
about this locked door – which apparently had occasioned such panic in Amanda –
or about the (timid) attempt of Raffaele to break it down, when the two officers
arrived at the house; nor was any reference made to it by Amanda during her phone
conversations with Ms. Romanelli.

(G)
Around 1:15 pm on November 2, 2007 the door to the bedroom of Meredith Susanna
Cara Kercher was thus broken down. It was Luca Altieri who undertook to break it
down; and before (them) there unexpectedly appeared a duvet completely spread
out on the floor of the bedroom: this duvet covered the entire body of a person,
except for one bare foot; and blood could be seen on the floor and the walls of the
room.

Shouts of dismay followed and the four young people who were in front of the
broken down door were simultaneously removed: Luca Altieri, Marco Zaroli, Paola
Grande, and Filomena Romanelli. None of the four young people thus entered the
room, other than Luca Altieri, who had ended up with a foot inside the room from
the momentum of the effort used to break down the door. Furthermore, neither did

32
the accused, who were at the point the furthest away from the door to Meredith’s
room, [20] in the living room at the end of the corridor.

It does not turn out that either Raffaele Sollecito or Amanda Knox afterwards went
into the room or near it. On the contrary, Inspector Battistelli has declared that as
soon as the door was forced open, he ordered everyone to get out of the house; and it
does not turn out that any one of the young people came back inside or went into
Meredith’s room or near it to look inside.

Inspector Battistelli has also ruled out having entered this room. On this point, Luca
Altieri’s version differed: he declared that he had seen Battistelli going in there, right
along the wall. [This is] a memory which seems rather circumstantial and that was
also communicated to Marco Zaroli, in respect of which, despite the confrontation
set out, the version of Battistelli has remained unchanged and the request to check
the eventual trace left on the floor (see declarations of Dr Chiacchiera) did not permit
the acquisition of further clarifying elements.

The fact subsists nonetheless, confirmed by the various testimonies, according to


which, after the door was broken down all the young people were required to get
out of the house and Battistelli informed his own superior that the lifeless body of a
girl, quickly identified as Meredith Susanna Cara Kercher, had been found.

It was about 1:30 pm on November 2, 2007: shortly after this the house situated at 7
Via della Pergola and its inhabitants became the centre of intense investigative
activity. (page 20)

33
MEREDITH'S GIRLFRIENDS

The investigation about the last people whom Meredith could have met and the
search to reconstruct her final movements, her last meetings, led to identifying and
seeking out her girlfriends, the people with whom she mixed most of all, who had
also come from England to Perugia to study.

Robyn Carmel Butterworth, who arrived in Perugia at the end of September/early


October to attend the University, had found an apartment in Via Bontempi; she had
straight away met Meredith, with whom she had started to mix, together with [21]
Amy Frost, who was living with her in Via Bontempi, and Sophie Purton.

She had also met Amanda Knox on occasion. Meredith talked to her about her
relationship with Amanda, telling her what was happening in the house, and said
that at times Amanda did not leave the bathroom clean.

Meredith had also told her about certain private objects that Amanda had in the
house inside a beauty case which she kept in the bathroom: a vibrator and some
condoms.

She also remembered that Meredith, talking about what was happening at home,
sometimes expressed uneasiness. (‚My perception of their relationship was that at
times Meredith felt a little uneasiness, that at times she had some doubts about
Amanda.‛)

The night between October 31 and November 1, 2007 she had been with Meredith:
after dining together they had gone together to the Merlin and then to another night
spot, the Domus, and then around half past four and five in the morning, each had
gone home to her own house.

She remembered that the evening of October 31 Amanda had asked Meredith to go
out together.

The last time she had seen Meredith had been November 1 at her house in Via
Bontempi, where there were also Amy Frost and Sophie Purton. Meredith had
arrived at about 4 pm; they had prepared a pizza and had eaten; then they had
looked at the Halloween photos on the computer before starting to watch a film;
around the middle of the film they had prepared an apple crumble, a sort of apple

34
cake, which they had eaten with ice cream. And at around 9 pm Meredith and
Sophie Purton had left.

She remembered that Meredith, that afternoon, was wearing a pair of rather loose
blue jeans, fabric gym shoes, and a light blue sweatshirt with a zip fastener.
Underneath she had a long-sleeved T-shirt and over this a top. She carried a cream-
coloured bag with a long shoulder strap.

She did not really remember what time they had eaten, perhaps around six. They
had only drunk water. Meredith did not appear worried; they were all quite calm
and relaxed. They were to meet on the morning of the second at around 10:00 am for
a lecture at the university, not knowing that it was a holiday. Around that time she
had thus rung Meredith’s mobile phone several times without getting an answer.
She learned of Meredith’s death in the afternoon and had to go to police
headquarters, where she also met Amanda and Raffaele, whom she did not know.

She remembered that [22] Amanda’s behaviour seemed strange to her, so much so
that it was ‚difficult to be near her because she was not showing any feelings:
everyone was very upset, while she did not seem to show any emotions or even to
feel any emotions‛.

She remembered that Amanda was near Raffaele and that they ‚were kissing each
other, they were joking. Every now and again they also laughed, I remember that
Amanda poked her tongue out, she poked out her tongue at Raffaele‛.

She remembered having heard Amanda saying that ‚Meredith was inside the
wardrobe with a blanket over her‛ and Raffaele ‚said that Amanda had slept at his
house that evening‛.

She further remembered Amanda saying she had gone to the house in Via della
Pergola at about 11:00 am; she had found the door open, had taken a shower and
changed her clothes and then had gone to Raffaele’s house.

She was not sure whether she also said that she had seen blood and faeces in one of
the bathrooms.

She said that she had met Meredith through Amy Frost when she was in Perugia.
Meredith often used to speak about her family; about her mother, her father, her
brothers and her sister; and she had said that her mother was not very well.

35
She also knew that Amanda had met Raffaele for the first time one or two weeks
before at a concert.

Amy Frost reported that she had met Meredith a little more than a month before her
death and that they had attended a language class together. They often went to the
pub together. She was living in Via Bontempi with Robin.

She had met Amanda and they had once gone to a pizzeria together and also once to
a discothèque, the Red Zone. That would have been the third weekend in October.
She had only met Raffaele at police headquarters.

The night between October 31 and November 1, after having had dinner at Via
Bontempi with Robin, Rachel, Meredith, Sophie, Nathalie, Lina and Monica, they
had gone to the disco, to the Domus. In addition to herself, Meredith, Sophie and
Robin were there. They had stayed until after 4:00 am and together - she, Robin and
Meredith - had gone as far as the basketball court in Piazza Grimana to accompany
Meredith.

The last time that she had seen Meredith had been on November 1, 2007 in her own
house in Via Bontempi. She remembered that they had seen a film and eaten pizza
and dessert. She remembered that Meredith had left right after 21:00 pm in the
company [23] of Sophie.

She was completely calm and they had looked at the photos which had been taken at
the Halloween party.

She recalled that Meredith used to recount many things about Amanda, things
which irritated her; Amanda played the guitar and she would always play the same
chord and she would leave the toilet dirty.

She did not know Raffaele, she had seen him at police headquarters and he had
introduced himself as Amanda’s boyfriend and had said that Amanda had been at
his house the evening and night of November 1.

When she had returned home the next day she had noticed that the entrance door
was open; she had gone to the bathroom and had seen that there was blood there.
Then she had gone to Raffaele’s house in Corso Garibaldi and they had gone back
together into the house in Via della Pergola.

36
She remembered that Amanda’s behaviour at police headquarters seemed to be
inappropriate: her attitude to Raffaele was affectionate and she was poking out her
tongue and making faces.

On the contention of the prosecutor about what she had stated on February 8, 2008,
page 15, where she said: ‚I remember having heard Amanda speaking on the phone,
I think that she was talking to a member of her family, and I heard her say, ‘No, they
won’t let me go home, I can’t catch that flight’‛, she declared that she did not
remember the circumstance, adding that anyway, if she said it ‚it must be true‛,
since she was declaring true things.

Meredith had reported to her with a certain concern that the boys who were
downstairs had asked her to water their cannabis plants and had moreover given her
the keys to the apartment; she knew that perhaps she had ‚smoked on one
occasion‛.

As far November 1 was concerned, she remembered that Meredith had arrived
about half past four and that they had started eating the pizza they had prepared at
around half past five or six.

She had never heard Meredith complain about missing money.

Sophie Purton declared that she had met Meredith on September 2nd and that they
had taken to seeing each other nearly every day. Meredith was rather carefree and
happy. Her relationship with Amanda was good, even though some things that
annoyed Meredith. In particular, she was annoyed by Amanda’s bathroom habits.

She remembered that on the afternoon of October 31 Meredith had sent her an SMS
in which she said she was going into the apartment of the boys downstairs to water
the cannabis plants.

The last time that [24] she saw Meredith was on November 1. They had gone to the
house of Amy and Robin for dinner around three in the afternoon; then they had
seen a film; then Meredith and she had gone off before 21:00 pm.

She remembered that they had eaten pizza and an apple cake. She did not know
when they had finished eating; perhaps an hour before leaving; and she indicated
that they had left the house at around 20:45 pm.

She said good-bye to Meredith about ten minutes later, at 20:55 pm. She remembered
the time because she wanted to be home at 21:00 pm to see a television programme

37
she was interested in. That evening, Meredith ‚did not have any appointment, she
just said that she was tired‛.

She knew that Meredith had just begun to go out with a young man, Giacomo
Silenzi, who lived on the lower floor of the same house in Via della Pergola. She was
also aware that Meredith "smoked grass with the other tenants‛; but she told her
‚that she only did it to socialise‛. She was not aware that Meredith had ever
complained about missing money.

Nathalie Hayward had known Meredith since September 2007. She had also met
Amanda. She knew that Meredith had a boyfriend: she had met him towards the end
of October. She had seen Meredith for the last time on October 31: they had dined
together at the house of Amy and Robin and then they had gone to the Merlin Pub.
But she had gone home quite early, around midnight. She had never seen Meredith
again.

On the day of November 2, 2007 at police headquarters, Amanda was also there and
she said that that night she had been with her boyfriend Raffaele and that the next
morning at around 11:00 am she had gone back home to get changed. She had found
the entrance door open and this seemed strange to her: she had gone into the house
and into her room and she had taken a shower and had seen drops of blood.

She said that after the shower she got dressed and noticed that Meredith’s door was
locked. She went into the other bathroom and said that there were faeces in the
toilet. Then she went into another room and noticed that the window had been
broken and that there was glass inside. She told these things to her and the other
girls present. Then she related that she had gone back to Raffaele’s house and had
rung Filomena. She remembered that on that occasion at police headquarters
Raffaele was very calm, silent.

[25] All of Meredith’s girlfriends denied that Meredith had spoken to them about
Rudy Guede, and they declared that they did not know who he was.

38
THE YOUNG MEN LIVING ON THE FLOOR BELOW THE APARTMENT
AT 7 VIA DELLA PERGOLA.

Giacomo Silenzi: he related that had been in Perugia since 2006 and that he had
always lived in Via della Pergola on the lower floor. He was living in this apartment
with Stefano Bonassi, Marco Marzan and Riccardo Luciani. He knew that four girls -
Meredith Kercher, Amanda Knox, Laura Mezzetti and Filomena Romanelli - had
been living upstairs since September 2007.

He had had a romantic relationship with Meredith, which had begun a couple of
weeks before she was killed.

There were no particular problems between the girls; the only complaint had been
about cleaning the house.

The relationship between Amanda and Meredith was normal and friendly. Now and
again, they would have dinner and spend time all together. This happened either in
the girls’ house or in theirs, downstairs. It happened that other guys took part in
such gatherings, like Giorgio Cocciaretto, who used to visit the house.

The relationship with Meredith had begun after an evening spent at the Red Zone
disco. Then this relationship continued and they would meet in Meredith’s room or
in his on the floor below.

Sometimes they happened to smoke hashish together at the house. On these


occasions he recalled that all four girls were present. He had seen Meredith for the
last time on October 29, 2007. On that day only he and Stefano Bonassi had remained
in the house; before he left he had given Meredith the task of watering the marijuana
plants which he had in the house. He learnt of Meredith’s death on November 2
while in Porto San Giorgio and returning to Perugia with Stefano Bonassi on the
train.

He had learned from Meredith that Amanda had started a relationship with Raffaele
Sollecito.

He had known Rudy Guede since the year before ‚through the basketball court
above the house at Via della Pergola ... we happened to go and play a few games on
the little court [26] above the house, we knew him already because he was a guy
who played there with us‛.

39
He recalled that he had been at their house one evening. They had found him going
around and they had started to talk. They were going home and he went with them.
He remembered that Rudy had asked for information about Amanda Knox and that
he had showed interest in her.

This had happened towards the middle of October. He had asked for this
information from him, from Marco and from Stefano. This happened when he had
gone to their place. Amanda was there with them and Rudy had noticed her.

On this occasion Meredith was there too. Rudy had asked whether Amanda was
involved with a guy or not. They were together at a pub, before going home. At this
time Amanda had not yet met Raffaele, so they told him she was not committed.
That evening Rudy had drunk at the pub and he was somewhat free and easy in the
conversation. He remembered that when they arrived home he asked if he could use
the bathroom and he fell asleep on the toilet.

He also recalled another time when Rudy went to their house; this was at the end of
October, on the occasion of the Grand Prix, the Sunday after the Red Zone. He had
come on his own, without being invited by anyone.

He recalled that on that evening, after being at the Red Zone, he had slept in his
room with Meredith; Amanda had met a certain Daniel, and had spent the night
with the latter in her room upstairs, according to what Daniel had told him.

Stefano Bonassi, originally from the Marche region, declared that he had been in
Perugia for study reasons for four years now. He was living in the apartment in Via
della Pergola with Giacomo Silenzi, Marco Marzan and Riccardo Luciani: all
originally from the Marche.

He knew the girls who lived upstairs, with whom he had become close friends, and
they spent time together. He believed that there was a good relationship between the
girls.

He had met Raffaele Sollecito towards the end of the month of October 2007. After
an evening at a disco, Meredith and Giacomo Silenzi had started a relationship. He
knew Rudy Guede because he played at the basketball court above the house, in
Piazza Grimana; he and the other boys from the house played at the same court.

One evening Rudy had gone to their house and [27] he, who had stayed home to
sleep, had been awoken by noises. Rudy had shown a certain interest in Amanda.

40
That evening Rudy went to the bathroom leaving the door open; he fell asleep on the
toilet and left excrement in the toilet bowl.

It had also happened that they all smoked joints together. He did not remember if
Meredith was also present on that occasion. Anyway, Amanda, Filomena and Laura
Mezzetti were there.

Giorgio Cocciaretto: heard in the interview of June 19, 2009, he declared that he was
in Perugia to study. He knew the guys who lived at 7 Via della Pergola, being from
the same town as they.

He was a visitor at the house; at first he only went to the apartment downstairs and
then he also went to the one upstairs. This had happened when he had come to
know the girls.

He knew Meredith; he had met her at the boys’ house one evening, on the occasion
of a dinner with friends.

He also knew Amanda Knox, Filomena Romanelli and Laura Mezzetti. He had met
Rudy Guede at the little basketball court in Piazza Grimana and they often played
basketball together.

He had also been present, once, at a party in the house in Via della Pergola where
Rudy Guede was present. He recalled that one evening while they were walking
around in the town centre, they had met Rudy Guede with some of his friends; they
had been at the pub and around two in the morning, when they went back to the
house in Via della Pergola, Rudy had gone there too.

Rudy had made a particular friendship with Marco Marzan and with him, ‚because
playing basketball together every day we had developed this friendship, and then he
was present also sometimes at the guys’ house".

Visiting the house in Via della Pergola, he had seen Rudy there two or three times,
and on these occasions Amanda and Meredith were also there; Rudy was talking to
both of them and on one occasion he confided in them that he liked Amanda.

41
RUDY HERMANN GUEDE

(A)
In speaking of the guys living on the lower floor of the house on via della Pergola
above, there came to be mentioned a certain Rudy Hermann Guede. This individual
is expressly accused, in a trial parallel to this one, and together with the accused of
the present trial, of the crimes of homicide and sexual violence.

[28] It appears that Rudy Guede assiduously frequented the basketball court located
in front of the University for Foreigners in Piazza Grimana, just a few steps from the
house at 7 Via della Pergola. He was acquainted with all the young men living in
that house and also with some of their friends, such as Cocciaretto. He also knew the
girls, Meredith and Amanda, who lived on the upper floor. Although he chatted
with both of them (cf. declarations of Cocciaretto who stated that he chatted with
both Amanda and Meredith), he displayed a particular interest in Amanda, whom
he "liked" and about whom he had requested information as to whether she was
already going out with someone. The negative response he received was true at the
time, since the Amanda-Raffaele relationship only started on October 25, 2007, as
will be seen in what follows.

The house at via della Pergola 7 was thus, for Rudy Guede, a friendly house, and so
it must have appeared to him: it was inhabited by friends and girls with whom he
could socialise, and in one of whom he was actually interested; in that house he
could find easy hospitality, as shown by the fact that on one Sunday in the middle of
October he went there to watch the Formula 1 races, and in that house he could
spend a lot of time having fun (as shown by the episode recalled earlier in which,
returning from a round of the pubs at around two in the morning, he went to the
house and spent all night sleeping on the toilet), received by friends as a friend.

(B)

Although it is supposed that the homicide of Meredith Susanna Cara Kercher, and
the sexual violence, were committed not only by the accused in this trial, but also by
Rudy Guede together with them, Rudy is not one of the accused in the present trial.
However, the reconstruction of the facts leads to the unavoidable conclusion that he
was one of the main protagonists; thus it is not possible to avoid speaking of Rudy
Guede in relation to the hypothesised criminal facts. The defence of the accused in
particular have requested the examination of texts concerning only Rudy, and have
demanded the results specifically concerning Rudy Guede of the investigative

42
activities carried out by the police in [29] general and by the Scientific Police in
particular. In fact, they have expressly indicated Rudy Guede as being the author,
and the sole author, of the criminal acts perpetrated on the person of Meredith
Kercher. A first element to be established is thus the presence of Rudy in Perugia on
October 29 and October 31, 2007. This presence makes it quite likely that he was also
in Perugia on the following day and night. In any case, there is no element indicating
the contrary.

Marta Fernandez Nieto and Caroline Espinilla Martin, after having declared that
they did not know either Amanda or Meredith, stated having met Rudy around the
end of September 2007, since he lived in the flat underneath theirs in Perugia, Via del
Canerino 26. They also declared that they went out with Rudy on October 29 and 31,
2007; concerning the night from October 31 to November 1, the night of Halloween,
they recalled that they had been with Rudy for almost the whole time, having met
him at around 22:30 pm at the home of a compatriot of theirs, Adriana Vinuesa
Molina, who lived in Campo di Battaglia. There were about thirty people there, and
they entertained themselves there until about midnight. They then went to the home
of another Spanish boy in Piazza Italia, and there again Rudy was with them, and
when Carolina went on to the "Domus" club, Rudy was still there, always remaining
with the young Spanish people. The only girl they saw him dance with was "a blond
girl with long smooth hair" (cf. declarations of Marta Fernandez Nieto and Carolina
Espinilla Martin from December 6, 2007, acquired for use in the hearing of July 3,
2009).

Multiple elements collected and analysed by the Scientific Police give further secure
indications that Rudy was present in the house at via della Pergola 7, and in
Meredith's room, when Meredith was killed.

The handprint found on a pillow in the room, on which the lifeless corpse of
Meredith was found placed, turned out to have been made by Rudy Guede; the
vaginal swab of the victim contained the DNA of the victim and of Rudy Guede; the
DNA of Rudy Guede was [30] also found on the cuff of Meredith's sweatshirt found
in her room, and on a strap of the bra that she was wearing, found cut off and
stained with blood; the DNA of Rudy Guede was also found on Meredith's purse,
which was also in the room that she occupied. Further biological traces of Rudy
Guede were found on the toilet paper taken from the toilet of the larger bathroom.
The faeces present in the toilet of that bathroom did not, however, yield any results,
and Dr Stefanoni, the biologist of the Scientific Police, explained that the presence of
numerous bacteria easily destroys what DNA might be found in faeces. Finally, in

43
the corridor leading to the exit from the house coming from Meredith's room were
found prints from a shoe stained with the blood of the victim. At first, these prints
were held to be compatible with the shoes of Raffaele Sollecito. Later tests (as we
will see subsequently) finally ruled out this compatibility, showing that they were in
fact actually from shoes of the same brand, type and size as a pair of shoes that
might have been contained in a shoebox found in the home of Rudy Guede in via del
Canerino.

(C)
The results of so many convergent facts have not been subject to criticism, and there
has been no evidence that they might not be valid. Furthermore, the methods of
collection, evaluation and examination, as we will later have occasion to explain,
ensure that the aforementioned results are in fact valid.

From the elements just recorded, it then follows that Rudy Guede was in the house
in via della Pergola when Meredith was killed. He went to the larger bathroom, the
one generally used by Filomena Romanelli and Laura Mezzetti, and used the toilet
without flushing, thus providing the toilet paper and the possibility of finding his
own biological traces on it. He went into Meredith Kercher's room, and left his
biological traces on the body of the girl (result of the vaginal swab), [31] and also on
clothing (bra strap and sweatshirt) and on objects (the purse) belonging to the girl,
which were in the same room. He left that room and went to the exit of the house,
leaving behind the prints of one of the shoes he was wearing, prints made in the
blood of the victim.

By their diversity and by the agreement of the results of all the tests performed on
them, these elements and traces, as has been said, do not leave any doubt about the
presence of Rudy Guede in the house and in Meredith's room on the night of the
homicide. Said elements indicate the paths he followed within the house: the living
room area which he crossed to reach the larger bathroom, the living room area and
the corridor which he crossed to go to Meredith's room, the same areas, corridor and
living room area, which he crossed after killing Meredith to reach the main door,
without deviating from this direction to go anywhere else, given that the bloody
shoeprints trace a line from Meredith's room directly to the exit. On this point, we
recall the declarations of the witness Gioia Brocci, photographic agent of the
Questura of Perugia, who was present in the house on the afternoon of November 2,
2007: in the corridor there were tracks which appeared to be in blood and showed

44
the prints of a shoe-sole "which left Meredith Kercher's room and went in the
direction of the exit", becoming "continually fainter and sparser" (p. 138); by joining
up these prints, it was possible to draw a line that went directly to the exit (p. 159
declaration of Gioia Brocci).

At this point it appears unavoidable to pose the problem of identifying the entry
point used by Rudy Guede to gain access to the house on via della Pergola 7, on the
night on which Meredith was killed.

The smashing of the window of the room of Filomena Romanelli, the disorder found
in that room, and the presence of a large rock constitute elements which suggest an
answer to the aforementioned question. [32] Furthermore, in one of the telephone
calls to Romanelli, Amanda spoke of that smashed window and of the possibility
that someone could have entered the house through the broken place; she said this
also in the telephone call to 112 and in the first declarations to the Postal Police. Also
in the e-mail of November 4, 2007, sent by Amanda to 25 people in the US (tendered
ex article 234 of the Criminal Procedure Code and admissible), she hypothesises that
a burglar could have entered the house and says she looked around to see if
anything was missing. Moreover, the defence of the accused, especially the defence
of Raffaele Sollecito, insisted strongly on the assumption that the hole smashed in
one of the casements with a large rock found in the room would have permitted
entry into the house at Via della Pergola 7. In support of this, there were declarations
by certain witnesses concerning specific behaviour on the part of Rude Guede; and a
consultant was appointed, Sergeant [maresciallo] Francesco Pasquale, who related
with regard to the possibility of the breaking of the window pane from the outside of
the house, to allow illicit entry into the house at Via della Pergola 7.

At the hearing of June 27, 2009, the witness Maria Antonietta Salvadori Del Prato
Titone testified that on the morning of October 27, 2007, a Saturday, as she entered
the nursery school at via Plinio 16, Milan, of which she was the principal, she noticed
coming out of her office a person whom she didn't know, later identified as Rudy
Guede. There were no signs of a break-in. There was some money missing from the
money box, but just small change. Rudy Guede had a backpack inside which was a
computer. Called at once, the police made him open the backpack, in which they
found a 40cm kitchen knife. She recalled that there were other objects in the
backpack: a bunch of keys, a small gold woman's watch, and a tiny hammer of the
type found in buses to smash windows. The police told her that the computer had
been stolen from a law office in Perugia. The witness stated that she was with her six
year old son, with a smith [fabbro] who was there to do some work, and with a rep.

45
Rudy Guede justified his presence by saying that he had asked at the central train
station of Milan where he could spend [33] the night, and that this nursery school
had been indicated to him after he had paid 50 euros to his informant. The witness
stated that the knife came from the kitchen; the kitchen door was not locked and
Rudy Guede must have taken it from there.

The witnesses Paolo Brocchi and Matteo Palazzoli, lawyers, testified on the subject of
the burglary of their legal office, located in via del Roscetto 3, Perugia, on the night
between Saturday October 13 and Sunday October 14, 2007. The thief or thieves had
entered through a window whose panes had been smashed with a rather large stone;
the glass was scattered around, and they had found some of their clothing on top of
the glass (p. 10, hearing June 6, 2009). From the first inventory they did, they found
that a computer, a cell phone, USB keys and a portable printer were missing. On
October 29, a colleague in the law office had called the lawyer Paolo Brocchi to tell
him that in the corridor was a person who said that he had been found with some
goods in Milan, goods that had been declared stolen by the lawyer Brocchi, but
which he claimed to have purchased legitimately in Milan. Later, the lawyer Paolo
Brocchi recognised this person as Rudy Guede (p. 20, hearing of June 6, 2009).

The lawyer Palazzoli, who testified at the same hearing, and who was a colleague in
the same law firm as Brocchi, declared that the broken window was "a French
window opening onto a small balcony overlooking the inner courtyard of the
building; beneath it, corresponding precisely to our window, there is a door
equipped with a metal grille..." (p. 41, hearing of June 26, 2009). He also stated that
he had been notified that the computer which had been stolen from him had been
found in Milan.

Cristian Tramontano, whose brief deposition the subject of July 1, 2008 was acquired
at the hearing of June 6, 2009, testified about an [attempted] robbery in his home,
carried out by a young man who, seeing that he had been observed, tried to exit the
house and, finding the door locked, pulled out a jackknife with which he threatened
Tramontano, who was following him to make him leave the house. Tramontano
declared that he believed he recognised that the thief was Rudy when he saw his
picture published in the newspapers.

[34] These episodes, concerning the Milan nursery school, the burglary in the law
office in Perugia and the burglary of Tramontano's house (although for the last one,
the identification of Rudy was expressed only by the phrase "I believe I recognise
him") reveal obvious and notable differences with respect to the episode concerning

46
the broken window in Romanelli's room; even stronger differences emerge if one
assumes that the person who made use of that entry was Rudy Guede.

Even if one accepts that Rudy was the burglar who broke into the law office of the
lawyers Brocchi and Palazzoli and into Tramontano's house, it must be observed that
Rudy was not known by these, nor by the director of the nursery school in via Plinio,
Milan; this situation is entirely different from the one at via della Pergola (and the
difference is not a minor one), where Rudy knew the boys from the downstairs flat
and knew Meredith and Amanda, and they knew him.

In the nursery school, there was no breaking and entering and no violence with
regard to any objects, or any climbing. In the law office of the lawyers in Perugia, the
burglar was able to enter through "a French window opening onto a small balcony
overlooking the inner courtyard of the building" (p. 41 hearing of June 26, 2009), so
that he was able to make use of a surface (the balcony) on which he could move with
reasonable ease. Objects were taken from the law office, glass was found on clothes
and the first-aid box was ransacked (a circumstance which indicates a wound and
related needs); at the nursery school in Milan, Guede was found with objects of illicit
origin (like the computer) and with a knife taken from the kitchen of the school itself.
In Tramontano's house, it does not appear that the thief entered with the smashing
noise that would have been produced by breaking the window with a rock
(Tramontano states that he was awakened by sounds coming from under the
mezzanine bed) and, furthermore, in such a case the thief was caught rummaging
amongst personal effects in order to find and carry away valuables.

The access to the house in via della Pergola was different; it appears that nothing
was taken or even prepared to be [35] taken away (Romanelli, and not only
Romanelli, spoke of a room turned upside down, but did not mention that any
objects had been in any way gathered to be taken away, nor does such a
circumstance appear to have emerged from the photos or from other sources), in
spite of the presence in the house of tempting and easily transportable objects.

However, beyond the differences which can be compared in these different


situations - and after all, one might observe that someone who wishes to enter
illicitly into houses or offices can vary the way in which he does it - it is specific
situations and concrete circumstances which exclude that at the time Meredith was
killed, entry was made through the window of Romanelli's room after said window
was broken.

47
(D)
It has already been stated that Rudy Guede was acquainted with the inhabitants of
via della Pergola, and that he had a good relationship of friendship and fun with
them (with all of the boys from downstairs; with Amanda, in whom he had actually
shown some interest; and with Meredith). It thus seems unlikely that Rudy decided
to enter this house in the illicit and violent manner shown by the smashing of the
window. It is even more unlikely given that at least some of the residents of the
house might have been home or might have turned up and surprised Rudy Guede,
whom they knew, in the very act of burglary or just after committing this act.
Filomena Romanelli stated (cf. declarations at the hearing of February 7, 2009) that
when she left the house in via della Pergola 7 on the afternoon of November 1, 2007
she had closed the shutters of her window (p. 68); she had pulled them in (p. 95);
"the wood was slightly swelled, so they rubbed against the windowsill" (p. 26),
adding that "it was an old window...the wood rubbed". And on the day she went
away, she recalled "having closed them because I knew that I would be away for a
couple of days" (p. 96). She later added, when noting what she had declared on
December 3, 2007, that "I had pulled the shutters together, but I don't think I closed
them tight" (p. 115).

[36] It must be held that when Filomena Romanelli left the house in via della
Pergola, she had pulled the shutters towards the interior of her room, although she
did not think that she had actually closed them; furthermore, because they were old
and the wood had swelled a bit, they rubbed on the windowsill; to pull them
towards the room it was necessary to use some force ("they rubbed on the
windowsill"); but in this way, once they had been pulled in, as Romanelli
remembered doing, they remained well closed by the pressure of the swelled wood
against the windowsill. Now, for a rock to have been able to break the glass of the
window without shattering the outside shutters, it would have been necessary to
remove the obstacle of the shutters by opening them up. The consultant for the
defence actually assumed that this had been done; in his exhibit, he assumed that the
shutters were not present [in front of the window]. Consequently, since the shutters
had been pulled together and their rubbing put pressure on the windowsill on which
they rested, it would have first been necessary to effect an operation with the specific
goal of completely opening these shutters. The failure to find any instrument
suitable for making such an opening (one cannot even see what type of instrument
could be used to this end) leads one to assume that the wall would have to have

48
been scaled a first time in order to effect the complete opening of the shutters ("if the
shutters were closed, he could not have passed through, that is obvious", cf.
declarations of the consultant for the defence, Sergeant Francesco Pasquali, p. 22
hearing July 3, 2009), in order to enable the burglar to aim at the window and smash
it by throwing a large stone - the one found in Romanelli's room. The "climber" (the
window in Romanelli's room is located at a height of more than three and a half
metres from the ground underneath, cf. photo 11 from the relevant dossier) would
also need to rely on the fact that the shutters were not actually latched, and also that
the ‚scuri‛ ,which are the wooden panels [scuri=non-louvered shutters in interior of
room] that usually constitute the outer side (or the inner, depending on the point of
view) of the window [attached to the outer edge of the inner side of the window-
frame] had not been fastened to the window-frame to which the broken pane was
attached; otherwise it would not have been possible to open them from the outside;
nor would it have been possible, even breaking the glass, to make a hole giving
access to the house, [37] since if these inner panels had been closed, they would have
continued to provide an adequate obstacle to the possibility of opening the window,
in spite of the broken pane.

Admitting that the climber decided to bet, in a sense, on the presence of both of these
"favourable" - in fact, indispensable - conditions, the climber would then have had to
climb up once, from underneath the window of Romanelli's room, in order to open
the shutters; then he would have had to get the large rock, and having selected the
point where he wanted to break the window, to throw it (it seems impossible to
accept that he actually made the climb while carrying the large rock, and threw it
against the window at the risk of being hit by glass falling from the pane thus
shattered).

He would then have to have returned underneath Romanelli's window for the
second climb, and through the broken glass, open the window (balanced on his
knees or feet on the outside part of the windowsill) otherwise he would not have
been able to pass his arm through the hole in the glass made by the stone) and reach
up to the latch that fastened the window casements, necessarily latched since
otherwise, if the casements had not been latched, it would not have been necessary
to throw a rock at all, but just to open the shutters and climb inside.

This scenario appears totally unlikely, given the effort involved (going twice
underneath the window, going up to throw the stone, scaling the wall twice) and
taking into account the uncertainty of success (having to count on the two
favourable circumstances indicated above), with a repetition of movements and

49
behaviours, all of which could easily be seen by anyone who happened to be passing
by on the street or actually coming into the house.

It cannot be assumed - as the Defence Consultant did - that the shutters were left
completely open, since this contradicts the declarations of Romanelli, which appear
to be detailed and entirely likely, considering that she was actually leaving for the
holiday and had some things of value in her room; already she did not feel quite safe
because window-frames were in wood [38] without any grille. Also, the
circumstance of the shutters being wide open does not correspond to their position
when they were found and described by witnesses on November 2, and
photographed (cf. photo 11 already mentioned).

(E)
But beyond these considerations, there are other elements which tend to exclude the
possibility that a burglar could have entered the house through the window of
Romanelli's room. The double climb necessary to attain the height of three and a half
metres would have left some kind of trace or imprint on the wall, especially on the
points on the wall that the "climber" would have used to support his feet, all the
more as both the witnesses Romanelli and Marco Zaroli gave statements indicating
that the earth, on that early November evening, must have been very wet
(declarations of Marco Zaroli, hearing of February 6, 2009, p. 174, and declarations of
Filomena Romanelli, hearing of July 7, 2009 p. 24; see also the document acquired at
the hearing of March 28, 2009 concerning the fact that on October 30, 2007, it was
raining). In fact, there are no visible signs on the wall, and furthermore, it can be
observed that the nail - this was noted by this Court of Assizes during the inspection
- remained where it was: it seems very unlikely that the climber, given the position
of that nail and its characteristics, visible in the photo 11, did not somehow
"encounter" that nail and force it, inadvertently or by using it as a foothold, causing
it to fall or at least bend it. On this subject it is also useful to recall that at the hearing
of April 23, 2009, the witness Gioia Brocci mentioned above declared that she had
observed the exterior of the house, paying particular attention to the wall
underneath the window with the broken pane, the window of the room then
occupied by Filomena Romanelli. She said: "We observed both the wall...underneath
the window and all of the vegetation underneath the window, and we noted that
there were no traces on the wall, no traces of earth, of grass, nothing, no streaks,
nothing at all, and none [39] of the vegetation underneath the window appeared to
have been trampled; nothing" (p. 142 declarations of Gioia Brocci). She also recalled

50
the existence of a nail on that wall, which jutted out about 6cm, and added that
"walking along the outside perimeter of the house" her shoes became dirty with
"grass attached to the shoes" (p. 145, cf. also declarations of the assistant Zugarini,
hearing of Feb. 28, 2009, p. 133).

The next fact to consider is that the pieces of glass from the broken pane were
distributed in a homogeneous manner on the inside and outside parts of the
windowsill, without any displacement being noted or any piece of glass being found
on the ground underneath the window. This circumstance, as confirmed also by the
consultant Pasquali, tends to exclude the possibility that the rock was thrown from
outside the house to create access to the house through the window after the
breaking of the pane. The climber, in leaning his hands and then his feet or knees on
the windowsill, would have caused at least some piece of glass to fall, or at least
would have been obliged to shift some pieces of glass in order to avoid being
wounded by them. Instead, no piece of glass was found under the window, and no
sign of any wound was seen on the pieces of glass found in Romanelli's room.

It can moreover be observed that the presence of many pieces of glass on the outside
part of the windowsill increases the probability of finding some small pieces of glass
on the ground underneath, since there seems to be no reason that so many pieces of
glass would all stop just at the edge of the windowsill without any of them flying
beyond the edge and falling down to the garden below. This situation, like all the
other glaring inconsistencies, is adequately and satisfactorily explained if one
supposes that the rock was thrown from the inside of the room, with the two
shutters pulled inwards so that they blocked the pieces of glass from falling to the
ground below. Once the glass had been broken from inside, the rock was set down at
some place in the room, and the shutters were pushed towards the outside, being
thus opened from within the room.

[40] The consultant for the Defence, Sergeant Pasquali, maintains instead that the
rock was thrown from outside the room, and outside the house. He arrives at this
assumption on the basis of various elements: the presence of fragments of glass on
the inner and outer parts of the windowsill, and from the "intervention of fragments
of glass that fell from high up down into the interior...of the room" all the way to the
blue carpet, and to the bed (p. 47 hearing July 3, 2009).

These are elements and considerations which do not appear to deserve the emphasis
given to them by the consultant.

51
Firstly, it should be observed that Sergeant Pasquali stated that he had never studied
stone throwing apart from this case; he also supported the possibility of "making a
parallel with investigations of ballistics and firearms"; the same consultant did,
however, admit that, whereas ballistics is a science of precise data [dati certi] (p. 39,
hearing of July 3, 2009), "here we have an infinity of possible variations" [abbiamo
delle variabili che sono infinite](p. 40). Precisely in relation to these variations and to
what has been observed above, the assertion and the explanation he offers for the
stone having been thrown from outside cannot be shared by the Court. Indeed, if
one supposes that the stone was thrown from the inside with the shutters pulled
closed (as they must have been according to statements cited above), but with the
casement holding the pane somewhat open, with the inner shutter behind it, then
here is a situation analogous to that of throwing the stone from the outside (the rock
would hit the window in the same place as if it came from the outside), and under
the shock of the large stone, because of the resistance of the inner shutter behind the
window-pane (the shield effect as one might say), the pieces of glass would
necessarily fall down on the windowsill both inside and outside (considering the
casement as having being only slightly open, and thus the smashed pane positioned
near to the windowsill). The presence of the shutters pulled inwards, as described by
Romanelli, would have prevented the pieces of glass from falling to the ground
below, as indeed they did not, but as they surely would have had the stone been
thrown from the outside. As for the presence of glass in Romanelli's room, the
violence of the blow, the characteristics of the glass (which was rather thin as
indicated by Romanelli and Pasquali), the large rock used, and finally the shield
effect caused by the inner shutter hanging half-open behind the glass pane [41] (a
position of the inner shutter which corresponds to the scratch on it visible in the
photos) give an adequate explanation of the distribution of the glass.

(F)
But the fact that all this was in fact just a simulation, a staging, can be deduced from
further circumstances. From the photos taken by the personnel of the Questura
(photos 47 to 54 and 65 to 66) one can perceive an activity which appears to have
been performed with the goal of creating a situation of obvious disorder in
Romanelli's room, but does not appear to be the result of actual ransacking, true
searching for the kind of valuable objects that might tempt a burglar. The drawers of
the little dresser next to the bed were not even opened (photo 51 and declarations of
Battistelli who noted that Romanelli was the one who opened the drawers, having

52
found them closed and with no sign of having been rifled: see p. 66 of Battistelli's
declarations, hearing of Feb. 6, 2009). The objects on the shelves in photo 52 appear
not to have been touched at all; piles of clothes seem to have been thrown down
from the closet (photo 54) but it does not seem that there was any serious search in
the closet, in which some clothes and some boxes remained in place without
showing any signs of an actual search for valuable items that might have been there
(photo 54). It does not appear that the boxes on the table were opened (photo 65) in a
search for valuable items. And indeed, no valuable item (cf. declarations of
Romanelli) was taken, or even set aside to be taken, by the - at this point we can say
phantom - burglar. One last aspect which bears repeating is the presence, noted and
checked by several witnesses, of pieces of glass on top of the objects and clothing in
Romanelli's room. This circumstance, which also reveals an activity of simulation,
although it is not decisive because it does not actually exclude that the phantom
burglar first broke the window and then made the mess in the room, was rejected by
the Defence of the accused, which showed photographs that did not show glass on
top of the clothes and objects scattered around Romanelli's room, and observed that
the documentary and crystallisation value of a specific situation as realised [42]
through a photo should prevail over witness statements sworn into the record.

This claim is not held to be sustainable, since it does not take into account the events
and their succession and chronology. On the subject of the contrast between the
testimony and the documents (photographs of Filomena's room that do not show
pieces of glass on top of the clothes and objects scattered around), Romanelli's own
declarations are significant and decisive. In her questioning of Feb. 7, 2009, she
recalled having left her computer in its case "standing up, not lying down" (p. 269),
and then, when she returned to the house, she saw that in her own room, the
window was broken and "everything was all over the place..." (p. 40) She checked
that her jewellery was there, which it was, and she looked for her computer which
she saw "from underneath" (p. 40), and continuing to explain, she declared that "I
picked up the computer and perceived that in lifting it, I was picking up pieces of
glass, in the sense that there was actually glass on top of it" (p. 41), and she noticed
this circumstance so particularly that she added the following comment: "It was
really a stupid burglar; not only did he not take anything, the broken glass was
actually on top of the things" (p. 41). As she is usually very orderly, the witness also
stated that she entered into her own room and searched around to see if anything
was missing, and during that search she moved objects, thus changing the position
of some pieces of glass. At that moment, however, only the Postal Police officers
were present, and they were there to understand why two mobile phones had been

53
found in the garden of a house in via Sperandio; the broken window pane indicated
a robbery which seemed entirely independent from the finding of the telephones;
thus it seemed perfectly natural and almost automatic for them to enter the room
with the broken glass without taking any particular precautions, focusing only on
the task of finding out if anything was missing. Thus, the movement of objects was
perfectly natural, as was the progressive modification of the situation in Romanelli's
room with respect to the pieces of glass which, having been found and noted on top
of objects, were then allowed to fall and moved around during the search which, it
can be imagined, Romanelli made with a certain agitation and anxiety due to worry
and the strong [43] disturbance that she was feeling. The photos, however, were only
taken later, around 15:00 pm according to what can be inferred from the declarations
of the personnel of the scientific section of the Questura of Perugia, Cantagalli and
Brocci, when the discovery of Meredith's lifeless body imposed the use of care and
circumspection in the necessity of crystallising the situation, avoiding any
modification of the scene and acquiring every element which could be useful for the
investigation.

Thus, the moments during which the witnesses found glass on top of the objects and
the moments during which everything in the house was photographed and thus
fixed were different moments.

Consequently, the visual and tactile observations of the witnesses and the
photographs of the surroundings cannot be judged in parallel, given that they
represent different situations at different times. It is enough to note that inspector
Battistelli told everyone to leave the house, not when he saw the broken window in
Romanelli's room, but when he realised that there was a corpse in Meredith's room.

Therefore, the declarations and descriptions of said room need not be accepted only
insofar as they correspond to what is shown in the photographs, especially in regard
to the presence and position of the pieces of glass. On this point, apart from
Romanelli's declarations, which appear reliable because of their precision, and
because the emotion of the event caused the images and memories to be imprinted
in a very lively manner (as in the comment referred to and recalled above and which
are thus valid to complete the memory recall), also the declarations of the assistant
Fabio Marsi should be recalled. He declared that he observed "that there were
clothes and other personal items on the floor with glass on top of them and the rock
which, presumably, had broken the window" (p. 127 hearing Feb. 6, 2009); he also
added that Romanelli "checked to see if anything was missing and said no, but look,
everything is here, everything" (p. 129 hearing Feb. 6, 2009), an activity of checking

54
which necessarily, as has already been observed (the room was turned upside-
down), involved the movement of objects and [44] thus also of pieces of glass, thus
rendering the situation which was subsequently photographed somewhat different
from the one described by the witnesses. Therefore, the presence of glass on top of
the various objects scattered on the floor all over the place is considered as
supporting proof of the testimony that is not falsified by the photos. It is certain that
the presence of pieces of glass on top of objects found out of their place cannot but
suggest a simulation, since the throwing of the stone and the breaking and falling of
the glass must have happened when Romanelli's room was as she left it, and in
particular pieces of glass should not have been found on top of objects supposedly
thrown around by the phantom burglar, who was only supposed to have entered the
room after breaking the window, so that the clothing and the objects would have
actually been tossed down on top of the glass.

What has been explained up to now thus leads to the assertion that the situation of
disorder in Romanelli's room and the breaking of the window pane constitute an
artificial representation created in order to orient the investigations towards a person
who, not having the key to the front door, was supposed to have entered through
the previously broken window and then effected the violent acts on Meredith which
caused her death.

55
RUDY THE SIMULATOR?

(A)
What has been said so far about the presence of Rudy Guede in the house in Via
della Pergola and about the simulation of the theft (the breaking of the pane and the
disorder created in Ms. Romanelli’s room, as if a search had been put in motion
inside the room, can only appear to have been aimed to create a semblance of
attempted burglary) leads to consideration of the following question: could Rudy
have been the author of the scenario created in Ms. Romanelli’s room?

Such a hypothesis presupposes that Rudy entered the house at 7 Via della Pergola
with Meredith or because Meredith opened the door to him. (page 44)

[45] It is a matter of a hypothesis which in some way appears to be aired and almost
suggested in the recording of November 20, 2007 in which Amanda at a certain point
has the following dialogue with her father, to whom she says, talking about Rudy:

Amanda: ‚Yes, I know, I know, I mean I hardly know him ... I never invited him to
my house before.‛

Father: ‚Do you believe that Meredith did so?‛

Amanda: ‚Ah, I know that she knows him through Giacomo ... therefore‛

Father: ‚Is he one of the boys downstairs?‛

Amanda: ‚Yes, he was her boyfriend ... therefore ... perhaps he was saying: I’m
looking for Giacomo ... can I come in? Or something like that...‛

Further on Amanda goes on, saying ‚That is, I know that she had seen him before,
but I don’t know why she let him into the house.‛

This Court holds that the hypothesis in which the scenario of the burglary took place
through Rudy’s doing, the one and only aggressor of Meredith, does not appear to
be sustainable.

Rudy could well have believed that any of the occupants could have arrived in that
house from one moment to the next and consequently waiting around there must
have appeared very risky.

56
And then: why ever would Rudy, back just a few days after the kindergarten break-
in in Via Plinio in Milan, where he had been surprised by the headmistress and,
according to the defence for Raffaele Sollecito, the author of other thefts, both in the
legal office of the lawyers Bronchi and Palazzoli and at Tramontano’s house, have
had to create the appearance of a burglary, in this way directing the investigations
directly to the person who, furtively and in order to steal, enters someone else’s
property, when he had done just that recently?

Moreover Rudy did not have access to the key to the house at 7 Via della Pergola
and he did not have special visiting relationships with the girls from upstairs, where
it does not turn out he had ever gone, and thus there was no reason at all that
suspicions about what had been done to Meredith, about whom, it must also be
observed, he had never manifested any interest, should have been directed towards
him.

[46] Consequently: a burglar who simulates a burglary to deflect suspicions (and


who furthermore a few days before had been surprised on the property of someone
else with objects belonging to other people and the police had been called) in itself
seems absolutely unbelievable, and it is even more so when one considers that there
were no particular reasons why suspicions could have fallen onto him.

In this regard, the circumstances recalled above, and because of which Rudy had not
had any relationship or meeting with Meredith in the preceding days, can also be
recalled: on the night of Halloween he had been with a few Spanish boys [ragazzi
spagnoli: it can be “boys and girls” as well]; in addition, he had been with and had
danced with a girl who, from the description given and recorded above, was
certainly not Meredith; nobody mentioned seeing him with Meredith; on November
1st Meredith spent the morning at home and the evening with her English
girlfriends. Even in relation to this, therefore, Rudy must have felt at ease and
consequently no reason could have motivated him to simulate a burglary.

Under other circumstances, it seems unlikely that Meredith, alone at home at night
(her coming home as has been seen took place no earlier than 21:00 pm) would have
opened the door to the house to Rudy and let him come in.

Indeed, she had only had occasional meetings with Rudy, while she was with others
and never alone. She did not talk about Rudy, and her English girlfriends declared
that they did not know who he was and that Meredith had never said a word about
him.

57
Besides, if Rudy had asked about Giacomo Silenzi or some other of the boys
downstairs with whom he had some relationship, it would have been enough to let
him know that there was nobody there, thus removing any reason that Meredith
may have had for letting Rudy come into the house.

And even if it is admitted that Meredith could have allowed Rudy into the house,
since Rudy went into the big bathroom (the one next to the living room) and all the
action of the violence took place in Meredith’s room (it is enough to consider that in
that room the body of the victim was found, her clothes torn and removed, the
blood) and that there are no signs indicating a different place for the action of the
violence, it must be hypothesised that Meredith, alone in the house at night (after
21:00 pm) allowed Rudy to enter the bathroom and went back into her own room.

This too is [47] an unlikely hypothesis: the front door was defective and it would not
have been enough to pull it in order to close it: consequently Meredith would have
had to take herself from her own room into the living room and from there to the
entrance door to lock up as soon as Rudy, leaving the bathroom, called her to say he
was going away.

Better to wait in the living room and thus prevent Rudy, who was coming out of the
bathroom, from being able to take himself into Meredith’s bedroom and try to make
a ‚move‛ on her.

It is held that this was a situation that Meredith, for several considerations which the
exigencies permit to be evidenced, absolutely did not want to happen: Meredith was
tired from the day before when she had come home about five in the morning; the
next day she supposed that she had a lesson at the University at 10 am and she
needed to prepare for this and she had to also think about resting; a few days ago
she had begun a relationship with Giacomo Silenzi which she must have wanted to
hang onto if she had convinced herself to water his marijuana plants to please him,
in spite of the fact that this caused her a certain preoccupation (see Amy Frost’s
statements) and furthermore she had talked about this boy to her English girlfriends
who were in Perugia: she was moreover conscientious and had never brought boys
to the house (see statements made by Romanelli page 11 hearing of 7.2.2009)
manifesting thus an attitude which shunned superficial and fleeting advances.

(B)
It must therefore be affirmed, drawing together somewhat the threads of what has

58
been said: that the breaking of the window pane and the disorder noticed in the
room occupied at the time by Romanelli Filomena was the result of a simulated
action aimed at directing the investigations and suspicions on to an individual who
was supposed to have introduced himself into the house at 7 Via della Pergola, on
the night of the murder, through the window situated in the Romanelli’s room,
previously breaking the pane, with the aim of committing a theft, as the disorder
created inside the room was to make believe.

Such a cunning scenario cannot be traced back to Rudy Guede, who on the other
hand, entered the house through the entrance door, without any [48] breaking in or
forcing, but with the agreement of whoever had available the house and the key to
the entrance door.

Whoever permitted Rudy Guede to enter the house that night was not Meredith but
others who also had the house available and could freely gain access to it.

The scenario of the broken pane and the furtive access could therefore have only
been carried out by someone who, having the house available and free access to it,
tried to distance himself from all suspicion, directing it to a different person; that is
the unknown criminal who, through a violent act (the breaking of the window pane)
was supposed to have entered the house.

Other than Meredith the key of the apartment was available to Laura Mezzetti, who
was however away from Perugia that day, at Montefiascone at her parents’;
Filomena Romanelli, who was however with her fiancé at the house of her girlfriend
Paola Grande and the latter’s boyfriend, Luca Altieri, who was celebrating his
birthday (see also the declarations of Dr Chiacchiera on page 150 hearing of
27.2.2009 and declarations of Napoleoni, hearing 27,2.2009 page 232) and Amanda
Knox had it.

Amanda Knox too related that she had spent the night with Raffaele Sollecito at the
house of the latter without having ever moved. This alibi, nevertheless, found no
confirmation and rather found various denials which indicate its falsity and cause it
to be held that Rudy Guede entered the house at 7 Via della Pergola because he was
let in by Amanda Knox (the only one, Ms. Romanelli and Ms. Mezzetti being absent)
who had the key to the entrance door to the house and who was staying with
Raffaele Sollecito.

Amanda Knox, just for such a circumstance (she was the only one, except Meredith,
who had the keys to the front door of the house) needed to distance from herself

59
every suspicion, and therefore together with Raffaele Sollecito, with whom she was
staying, as will be said in due course, organised the scenario of the broken window
pane, the disorder in the room of Romanelli Filomena with the aim of derailing the
investigations and directing them towards the person who, not having the house
keys, had to look for another way of getting in: breaking a pane and getting through
the window.

[49] Against any such need to dissimulate, which Amanda would have had, it has
been argued that the aim of sexual violence which the crime appeared to display (the
victim was a young girl and her body was almost completely naked and was in her
own bedroom) should have removed all suspicion from Amanda.

Such reasoning cannot be held to be tenable on the basis of the following


considerations: Amanda was living with Meredith and had the key to the front door
of the house where she lived and where she was staying on those holidays: Amanda
was the only one, Laura Mezzetti and Filomena Romanelli being absent, who could
have permitted entry into the house unless the front door had been forced, and there
was no forcing evident; she would therefore had to think that the investigators
would have been convinced that Meredith, entering the house, had inadvertently left
the door open and had thus facilitated the access of her murderer: a doubly unlikely
hypothesis since it would have been necessary to hypothesise such
absentmindedness on the part of Meredith, an absentmindedness particularly
difficult to be imagined with front door that, because of a fault in locking by
pushing, had to be closed with the key; it would have been furthermore necessary to
hypothesise that such a situation – the front door left open – would have been
verified just when somebody, motivated by criminal aims, had found himself going
by, and having decided to enter that house and having gone through the gate that
opens onto the pathway, had found, what a coincidence it would come to be said,
the front door open.

A doubly unlikely hypothesis as has been said, and then it would only remain to
single out another access, the broken window precisely, to avoid that explanations
about how the murderer could have been able to enter the house without either
forcing the front door and without the key, should be asked of her, even though she
was a woman and suspicions would have necessarily started to concentrate on her
and thus the decision was taken to put into effect the simulated action described.

60
AMANDA KNOX AND RAFFAELE SOLLECITO

(A)

Amanda Knox decided to come to Italy for study purposes. She had chosen
Perugia ‚because she wanted to learn about Italian people, culture; not live in a place
too touristy" (statements by the mother, Edda Mellas, p.hearing.19.6.2009. 75). To be
able to come to Italy she worked and [50] saved a bit of money, also the mother and
father had given her and were given her money (page 76 Mellas statements). She had
left the United States around middle of August 2007 and had stopped in Germany
till late August or beginning of September had come to Italy, to Perugia together
with her sister and she viewed over the house on Via della Pergola and returned to
Germany and from there back to Italy, in Perugia, to the house that had already seen
and found to her liking. She started attending the University, with diligence and
punctuality, "a really good student, diligent, participant" (statements Antonella
Negri, hearing 14.3.2009 p. 5). She also found a job at the pub Le Chic managed by
Patrick Lumumba where initially she worked every day, from around 21.30, 22.00
and then two days a week: Tuesdays and Thursdays (see statements by Patrick
Lumumba, hearing 3/4/2009 pp. 152 et seq.)

(B)
Raffaele Sollecito moved to Perugia in 2002 from his region, Giovinazzo, after which
in 2002 obtained his graduation diploma. He enrolled at the faculty of informatics
and chose Perugia because of the presence in the city of the ONAOSI college (see
statements by the father, Francesco Sollecito, page 15, hearing19.6.2009) where he
was boarding from 2003 to 2005. He was "taciturn, introverted, shy.... watched many
films‛ and educators at the boy’s ONAOSI college were shocked by a film ‚very
much hard-core ... where there were scenes of sex with animals‛ at which next they
activated a monitoring on the boy to try to understand him. (p.130 and 131, hearing
27.3.2009, statements by Tavernesi Francesco). He had the habit "of carrying in his
pocket a penknife" and this went back to his teens when he played with a penknife
to record something on the bark of trees and modeling objects. (p.23 statements
Francesco Sollecito, hearing 19.6.2009).

He had a brief affair with a girl from Brindisi and this was a few months before
October 2007. This relationship had a very short duration, for few days and had no

61
involvement any more (see also the statements of the father at p.18, hearing on
19.6.2009).

He [RS] had known [51] Amanda Knox for a very short time, from the second half of
October, and quickly established "a good understanding ... he treated her and
cuddled her like a little girl‛ (see statements from the father of Raffaele Sollecito,
page 17).

(C)
From the time Amanda and Raffaele met, on October 25, 2007 at a classical music
concert that Amanda had gone to with Meredith, their relationship and their
meetings were very frequent and constant, such that every time his father called
Raffaele – which he did daily, even several times a day – his son talked about
Amanda (Francesco Sollecito statements, p.16). Amanda, during a conversation on
November 13, 2007 with her parents in prison (intercepted on November 13, 2007,
RIT 397/08), said that they were going out together as if they were a couple and that
she spent most of her time outside school with him. She also said that he was kind
and ‚caring‛, and that he cooked for her and always wanted to hug her and help
her.

Both Amanda and Raffaele were using drugs; there are multiple corroborating
statements to this effect (page 19, statements of Romanelli, hearing of February 7,
2009; statements of Mezzetti, hearing of February 14, 2009; page 164, hearing of
March 27, 2009, statements of Antonio Galizia, Carabinieri [C.ri] station commander
in Giovinazzo, who testified that in September 2003 Raffaele Sollecito was found in
possession of 2.67 grams of hashish; in the tapped intercepts, Amanda had several
times made reference to marijuana use).

That the Raffaele-Amanda relationship, begun only on October 25, was very close is
also corroborated by Filomena Romanelli, who recalled that on October 26, 2007 (a
very precise memory, because it was tied to the date of a [girl] friend’s graduation)
and then in the days immediately following the first encounter between Amanda
and Raffaele, she saw Raffaele in the house on Via della Pergola and Laura Mezzetti
told her that he was a friend of Amanda’s. She saw him again at the house on two or
three other occasions (page 15, Romanelli’s statements, hearing of February 7, 2009).
Laura Mezzetti also recalled having seen Raffaele Sollecito other times at the house
in Via della Pergola, "about four times" in all (page 8, hearing of February 14, 2009);

62
very often, Amanda slept at Raffaele’s house (see Mezzetti’s statements, hearing of
February 14, 2009).

[52] These statements, considering that only a few days had elapsed since they had
started dating, October 25, indicate a particularly intense and surely frequent
relationship, as if they were a couple, using the description provided by Amanda in
the interception mentioned above. Laura Mezzetti would later say, in this regard,
that ‚they were constantly hugging each other... Raffaele was particularly tender; to
me, he seemed at times almost a bit possessive; it would have annoyed me, to say
the least,; (he was) very attached to Amanda" (statements by Mezzetti, hearing of
February 14, 2009, page 25).

(D)
Even on the evening of November 1, when Francesco Sollecito called his son (it was
at 20:42 pm, to tell him the plot of the movie he had just seen, ‚The Pursuit of
Happiness‛), Raffaele was with Amanda and told his father that the next day he
would also be with Amanda: they had in fact planned a trip to Gubbio. He recalled
as well that it was on the evening of November 1, when he phoned his son at 20:42
pm, that Raffaele had told him that "while he was washing the dishes he had noticed
leaked water<that had spilled onto the floor‛, and that he had specified that he was
with Amanda (p. 45, statement by Francesco Sollecito).

That Amanda and Raffaele were together on the evening of November 1 is also
indicated by Jovana Popovic in her testimony (see statements made at the hearing of
March 21, 2009). She reported that on the evening of November 1 she went to the
house of Raffaele Sollecito on Corso Garibaldi twice; on both of these occasions, she
met Amanda. Jovana Popovic also testified that on October 31, 2007 her mother, who
was in Milan, told her that she was sending her a suitcase on the coach departing
from Milan and arriving in Perugia at midnight. So on November 1, 2007 she
therefore stopped by Raffaele’s (page 6, Popovic statement, hearing of March 21,
2009) and asked if he would accompany her to the coach station. She came by
around 5:45 pm and in any case a little before 6 pm. At home there was Amanda,
who opened the door to her, and there was Raffaele.

A short while later, her mother had called her back saying that she was not able to
send the suitcase because the coach driver refused to take it.

63
[53] So Jovana Popovic, after finishing her lesson at the Tre Archi, which ended at
8:20 pm, returned on foot to the home of Raffaele, to tell him that she no longer
needed to be accompanied to the station. It took her about twenty minutes to walk
the distance, so she arrived at around 8:40 pm, again finding Amanda, who opened
the door and let her know that Raffaele was in the bathroom.

A relationship, therefore, which had sprouted between Amanda and Raffaele


recently enough but especially intensely during the immediately succeeding days, a
fews days, in fact hardly any, because the tragedy that followed occurred barely a
week after their first meeting. On the afternoon and in the evening and night of
November 1, 2007, Amanda and Raffaele were together.

The obligations of one or the other would have separated them, even if only for a
little while, but events completely independent of their choices kept them together,
almost as if making an attempt on their freedom and putting them to the test:

Raffaele Sollecito, as noted above, was to accompany Jovana Popovic, a medical


student, to the Perugia station to pick up the suitcase that the girl's mother wanted to
send to her by coach from Milan. The driver, however, refused to accept it; so
Popovic Jovana had made it known that she no longer needed a ride to the station.
As for Amanda Knox, she was scheduled to work that night at the Le Chic, the pub
managed by Diya ‚Patrick‛ Lumumba. However, he had sent her a text message – at
a few minutes past 8 pm on November 1, 2007 – telling her that there was no need
for her to go to work that evening (see statements by Patrick Lumumba, hearing of
April 3, 2009, pp. 160 and following).

And so Amanda, like Raffaele, came to be free of any commitment for the evening
and night of November 1, 2007.

64
AMANDA KNOX’S ACCOUNT

(A)

Amanda Knox, in the e-mail dated November 4, 2007—(This is) admissible insofar as
it is a document of record, acquired in the course of the present hearing just like the
so-called [54] memoriale6, which will be addressed later – which she sent to friends
and/or acquaintances in the U.S., refers to having seen Meredith for the last time on
the day immediately following Halloween. She was with Raffaele and they ate lunch
together in the house on Via della Pergola. Meredith said goodbye to them and left
the house. ‚It was the last time I saw her alive‛ (said Amanda).

Soon thereafter, she and Raffaele also left and went to Raffaele’s house ‚to watch a
movie, have dinner and spend the evening and the night at home. We did not go
out.‛ The following morning she got up around 10:30 am to go to her Via della
Pergola home: to take a shower and change clothes. She also had to get a mop,
because the evening before, Raffaele, after dinner, had spilled water from the sink
and was not able to clean it up.

Upon returning home, she noticed that the door was wide open. She thought
someone had gone to take the trash out or gone to the floor below, closing the door
behind them but not locking it. She asked loudly whether anyone was at home, but
no one answered. The door to Meredith’s room was closed, and this meant she was
sleeping. She undressed in her own room and took a shower in the bathroom, (the
one) nearest to (both) her room and to Meredith’s. When she got out of the shower,
she realised that on the little bath mat where she had placed her feet, there was
blood and also, there were drops of blood on the sink and the faucet. She left the
bathroom and went to get dressed in her own room. Then, she went in the other
bathroom to dry her hair, where there was a blow dryer. It was at this time that she
noticed feces in the toilet, which surprised her. She then took the mop and returned
to Raffaele’s home, locking the door (on the way out.)

She told Raffaele what she had seen and he suggested that she call one of her friends.
She then called Filomena Romanelli, who said that she had been out with her
boyfriend and that Laura Mezzetti was also away, in Rome with her family. She then
realised that the only one to have spent the night in Via della Pergola was Meredith,
about whom, however, nothing was known. Filomena seemed worried, so Amanda

6
a statement or recollection made by someone who was there

65
told her that she would call Meredith, who would then call her back. She then called
the two cellphones that Meredith had, but without getting any response (from her).
She then returned home, this time with [55] Raffaele. Upon returning home, she
opened the door to Filomena Romanelli’s room and saw that the window was open
and completely broken: there was chaos, ‚but her computer was in its place on the
desk.‛ Convinced that there had been a burglary, she went into the other rooms:
Laura’s room was in order, and nothing was missing from her own room. However,
Meredith’s door was closed. She began to knock and to call out, without receiving
any answer. She was then seized with panic and went on the balcony to see if she
was able to see anything, but she couldn’t see anything. She went down to the
apartment below to ask someone, but no one was there. She therefore went back
inside and Raffaele said that he wanted to try to break down the door of Meredith’s
room, but he wasn’t able to. It was then that they decided to call the police, which is
what Raffaele did. She let Filomena know about this, asking her to come home.
While they were waiting, two police officers arrived (at the scene) and she showed
them all that she had seen. Then Filomena arrived with her boyfriend and two other
friends, and they broke down the door of Meredith’s room.

(B)
On November 6, 2007, soon after a police arrest warrant [fermo] was served to
Amanda, while she was waiting to be transferred to Capanne Prison, ‚she asked for
some blank paper for the purpose of producing something written to deliver to
yours truly {translator’s note: a female person) meaning, to the Chief Inspector of the
State Police, Rita Ficcara (see service notes on November 6, 2007).

In that piece of writing, Amanda Knox prefaced her explanation of the various
circumstances with the following phrase: ‚in my mind there are things that I
remember and things that are confused.‛ She then wrote of having seen Meredith for
the last time on November 1, 2007 in the afternoon, around 15:00 pm or 16:00 pm;
they were at home at Via della Pergola, and Raffaele was also there. She and Raffaele
stayed a little longer, and then, together they went back to his home (on Corso
Garibaldi) to watch the movie Amelie. She then received a message from Patrick
telling her it wasn’t necessary for her to go to work at the pub, since no one was
there. Therefore, she stayed with Raffaele, with whom she smoked some marijuana.
They had dinner together, but quite late, perhaps 23:00 pm.

66
[56] After dinner, she noticed a bit of blood on Raffaele’s hand and had the
impression that ‚it had to do with blood coming from the fish‛ that they had cooked.
Raffaele, after having eaten, had washed the dishes, but a break in the pipes had
occurred under the sink. And water was leaking, with flooding on the floor. Since
they didn’t have a mop, they decided that they would do the cleaning the next day
with a mop that she could get from her house. She added that they were very tired
and that it had to have been quite late (at that point): her next memory brought her
to the morning of November 2, around 10:00 am, when she woke up and took a
plastic bag in which she placed her own dirty clothing to take home. She then made
reference to the statement she had made in the Police Headquarters during the night
between November 5 and 6, as well as on the morning of November 6. She explained
that she made those statements under stress and (in light of) the particular situation
that had arisen. In her own mind, she was seeing something like flashbacks which,
however, seemed unreal to her, like a dream: e.g., Patrick near the basketball court,
near the front door of the house: of herself crouched down in the kitchen with her
hands over her ears because in her own head, she had heard Meredith scream. She
added that she wasn’t sure of the truth and that she was confused. She knew only
that she had not killed Meredith.

(C)
In the June 12-13, 2009 hearing, Amanda Knox underwent questioning , requested by
the civil party Patrick Lumumba and by the defence.

She professed to know Rudy Hermann Guede, although just ‚a little.‛ She
remembered that she had met him in the center of town, during the course of an
evening in which she had (also) met the guys who lived in her same house at Via
della Pergola-- but they lived downstairs-- and they had introduced her to Rudy.
Then she had spent most of the time with Meredith and they had returned home, all
together. On another occasion, she met him (i.e., Rudy) at the ‚Le Chic‛ pub. She
also remembered attending a party in the second half of the month of October 2007,
together with the guys who lived downstairs. She had smoked a joint and every so
often, with friends, she used narcotics, marijuana.

[57] She had met Patrick Lumumba through a friend, and she had worked at Le Chic
pub, which was run by Patrick. She had begun to work in this pub around the
middle of October. In the beginning, she worked there every day, then, later, two

67
times a week, Tuesdays and Thursdays. Her relationship with Patrick was good, and
she was never treated poorly by him.

On the evening of November 1, 2007, she was supposed to have gone to work at Le
Chic pub, but she didn’t go (there), since Patrick had sent her a message telling her
that she didn’t have to go to work. That message was sent to her around 8:15 -8:30
pm. At that very time, she found herself in Raffaele’s apartment, and when she
answered that message, she thought that she had been in his apartment. The evening
of November 1, she did not encounter Patrick. During the night of November 5-6,
2007, she had stated something different to the police, but that occurred because of
the persistence of the questioning and because of the situation that had been created
in the course of the questioning and it was at that time that she began to imagine
what could have happened.

She reported that she had the keys to the home on Via della Pergola, 7, being the
house where she lived. Meredith, Laura and Filomena were also in possession of the
keys. On November 1, 2007, as far as she knew, Filomena was with her boyfriend;
Filomena had also told her that Laura was in Rome. She denied being in the home in
Via della Pergola, 7, on the evening of November 1, 2007, after 21:00 pm. In the
questioning that occurred during the night of November 5 –6, 2007 she had stated
that on the evening in question, after 21:00 pm, she had gone with Patrick to the Via
della Pergola 7 home, (but only) because she was under pressure and confused. Even
the matter relating to the fact that Meredith, before being killed, had had sex, she
had reported that, too, ‚under pressure‛ and for this reason, she had imagined many
things, of which had included Meredith’s scream, and the fact of having held her
ears closed, so as to not hear her. On November 5, in the evening, she had not been
summoned by the Police, but she went to Police Headquarters to accompany
Raffaele because she didn’t want to be alone. Regarding the record on November 6,
she remembered in the late morning of that day she had asked members of the
criminal unit police for sheets of paper to write on and she wrote in English, without
anyone having suggested to her what she should write. Since she was [58] confused,
she wanted to explain to the police her own confusion. That account was written
completely freely and voluntarily. She remembered having said in a conversation
with her mother that she ‚felt horrible because Patrick was stuck in prison and it’s
my fault.‛ She denied having accused Patrick in order to save herself. She accused
him because of that particular situation that had been created during the course of
the interrogations during the night of November 5-6, 2007.

68
Returning to the facts of November 1, she remembered in the morning that she woke
up after having spent Halloween night at Raffaele’s home; she had returned home to
change her clothes and get some things for studying. At home she hadn’t seen
anyone; the door of Meredith’s room was closed and she assumed that she was
sleeping: she had put away some clothes that she had on the clotheshorse, and she
had started to study. While she was studying, Filomena returned with her boyfriend.
They asked about Meredith and she reported that she probably was still sleeping.
She helped them wrap a gift for a party. At that point, Meredith had gotten up and
had greeted her, asking her how the Halloween party had been. Raffaele had then
arrived and he made lunch. Meredith had gone into her room to change; perhaps she
had had a shower. She then left and after that she never saw her again.

She knew that Meredith had a romantic relationship with Giacomo Silenzi, who
lived with three other guys on the lower level of the very same house. In time, she
revealed to Meredith that she had become Raffaele Sollecito’s girlfriend. Raffaele
Sollecito had met her when she and Meredith had gone together to a classical music
concert. Initially, Meredith had been with her, but after the intermission Meredith
had to go home and Raffaele sat down near her. That happened 8 or 10 days before
November 2 (page 73). When she met Rudy, she hadn’t yet met Raffaele. In the
house at Pergola 7, she had a room that was near Meredith’s room. In this
apartment, there were four girls. In addition to herself and Meredith, there was
Filomena Romanelli and Laura Mezzetti. When she had to pay the rent, she took the
money and gave it to Filomena, who made the payment. Each girl [59] paid 300
euros. In her own bank account, she had 4,457 US dollars. She had arrived in Perugia
at the beginning of September with her sister and had looked for an apartment.
That’s how she met Laura Mezzetti. With Meredith, the relationship was good and
they were on friendly terms. On November 1, after having had lunch with Raffaele
and having played a little (guitar)7, she and Raffaele had gone to his house on Corso
Garibaldi and had watched her favourite film ‘The Fabulous World of Amelie.‛ They
ate dinner, ‚but very late‛ (page 77). They ate fish and salad. Then, while Raffaele
was washing the dishes, from the sink, a leak was noticed: ‚water was leaking below
and he looked at it; he turned off the water and then looked below the sink, and this
pipe had become loose, so the water that was coming from the faucet was leaking
out.‛ (page 77). It would have been around 21:30-22:00 pm. She remembered that
Raffaele was very upset about that inconvenience and he told her that the pipe had
recently been repaired. Then they went to Raffaele’s room: she on the bed and

7
implied

69
Raffaele at the desk, and ‚he prepared a joint and we smoked together<we made
love and then we fell asleep.‛

Patrick’s message had arrived before they had dinner. She had been happy to receive
such a message because she didn’t want to go to work that night, and preferred to
stay at home with Raffaele. The next morning, was November 2: she woke up
around 10-10:30 am and Raffaele was still sleeping. After a bit, she told him that she
was going back to her house to take a shower and change her clothes, and that when
she returned they would leave. For that day, in fact, they had planned to go to the
nearby town of Gubbio. When she arrived home, she saw that the front door was
open. This situation surprised her, because usually the door was locked. She
thought, nevertheless, that someone had not closed the door very well or had left
quickly or had gone to look for something or take out the trash (page 80). Entering
the house, she had asked if there was anyone home, without receiving an answer.
She nevertheless left the door ajar, without locking it, thinking that ‚maybe someone
is coming, maybe they went to get some cigarettes or who knows what‛ (page 80).
She then went to her own room, undressed and went into the bathroom. She had
some earrings, piercings [60] that she had gotten a short while ago, and she had to
wash them constantly ‚because one had gotten a bit infected. So I had to take out the
earrings and then clean my ears<.when I saw that there were drops of blood in the
sink, at first I thought that it came from my ears, but when I scratched I saw that
they were still dry, and so I thought, well, whatever, strange‛ (page 80). Then she
took a shower and, getting out, not having ‚remembered the towel‛ she decided to
use the bath mat to go into her own room. At that moment, she noticed the blood
stain on the mat. She thought, however, that ‚maybe there was some menstrual
problem that wasn’t cleaned‛ (page 81). She used the mat to go to her own room,
and then she put the mat back in its place. She put her earrings back on, she brushed
her teeth, and then she went back to her room ‚to put on clean clothes.‛ And then
she went in the other bathroom to dry her hair and when she put the hairdryer back
in its place, she realised that there were feces in the toilet. She thought that to be very
strange, considering that it was Filomena and Laura’s bathroom ‚who are very
clean‛ (page 81). She then went back to Raffaele’s, closing the door to her own house
behind her because, in the meantime, no one had returned home. Raffaele was in his
bathroom; he had begun to dry the kitchen floor, though by that point it was fairly
dry. After Raffaele left the bathroom, they made lunch and she told him what she
had seen. Raffaele had suggested that she call her flatmates. She had then called
Meredith, who, however, did not answer; she had then called Filomena, who told
her that Laura was in Rome and that she should call Meredith again, and that she

70
should return home to see if anything was missing. Then she left with Raffaele, and
together they went to the house in Via della Pergola. They opened the doors and in
Filomena’s room they saw that the window was broken and there was a big mess.
They then thought that there had been a burglary, and they went to have a look in
the other rooms. Nothing was missing in the various rooms, but the worrisome thing
was ‚that Meredith’s door to her room was closed, and when I called, she didn’t
answer‛ (page 83). She remembered, however, that the door had been locked before.
She then left the house to see if the guys from downstairs were home, but it was dark
and [61] when she knocked, no one answered. She told Raffaele to call someone and
she called Filomena, telling her what she had seen and asking her to return home.
After that, they left the house, one reason being to look at the broken window from
the outside; and while they were outside, two individuals from the police
approached them. She thought that they had arrived (on the scene) because Raffaele
had called them. She told them what she had seen. A short time later, Filomena’s
friends arrived, and then Filomena .When Filomena found out that Meredith’s door
was locked, she was astonished and she began to speak rapidly in Italian. Amanda
could not understand, so she withdrew from the conversation and stayed with
Raffaele near the main entrance. The group of people wanted to open the door to
Meredith’s room; as soon as the door was knocked down, she heard Filomena
scream: ‚a foot, a foot!‛ When the door was knocked down, Amanda stayed near the
entrance and she didn’t see the inside of the room. Outside the house, everyone was
talking, especially about what they had seen, and Raffaele had asked what they had
seen in order to explain it to Amanda, who had heard that there was a corpse inside
the wardrobe, covered by a blanket, with a foot extending out (from underneath it).

She had returned to the house on November 4, 2007 with personnel from the Police
Headquarters. Laura and Filomena were already at the site; she had a crying fit
thinking of what had happened and she was also afraid of approaching; moreover,
they had asked her to look at all the knives and this had really affected her. She had
never thought of returning to her house in the United States, even if her relatives had
told her to go to her aunt’s in Germany to feel safer and she had asked the police if
she could leave ‚for two weeks with my aunt or with my Mom and they [the police]
said: no, no, it’s better if you don’t and so I continually said to them, no, I can’t go‛
(page 100). She reaffirmed, however, that she intended to stay in Perugia and this is
what she had written for an assignment on November 5 at the University, where she
also wrote that ‚Perugia is a beautiful city I want to stay (sic).‛ Then, with regard to
the intercepted conversation with her mother and father, in which she said ‚ I was
there I have no interest in lying, I’m not afraid of the truth‛ and ‚It’s stupid, I can’t

71
say anything but the truth, because I know I was there, I mean, I can’t lie there’s no
reason to [62] do it," she explained that the reference to the fact that ‚she was there‛
meant that she was in Raffaele’s apartment. She denied that at 7: 45 am on
November 2 she had been at the Conad store, which is located in the vicinity of
Raffaele Sollecito’s apartment. She had previously been in this store, together with
Raffaele. She denied having had a red coat during that time period. The mark on her
neck that appeared in a photo from those days that was published on the Internet,
was ‚a love bite‛ (page 107). Speaking of her own family, she stated that ‚my family
is huge, my Mom and my father haven’t been together< since I was a year old, but
they are neighbours and they did this on purpose, for me and my sister, because
they wanted to make us feel that we were a family, even if we were in two different
houses<so I always had these two families, growing up, but a huge family together,
nearby: then, there’s my grandmother, my aunt, my uncles, they are all around
(page 108)<I have three younger sisters, and then I have my cousins who are like
siblings<an aunt in Germany" (page 109). She had come to Italy to study the Italian
language and creative writing. She was very friendly with Laura, with whom she got
on well. With Meredith, she spoke mostly of literature, ‚because she read a lot, even
when it wasn’t for school; she read mysteries and then, often we would be together
on the balcony, sunbathing, and she would have a book and I had a guitar, and we
would hang out together like that‛ (page 117). She remembered that on October 30,
she had spoken with Laura, Filomena and Meredith to ask their advice regarding
Raffaele, because she had felt a little guilty, since she still had feelings for an ex-
boyfriend that she had left in the United States named DJ. She also recalled that they
had also talked about the rent payment, and that Meredith had offered to pay
immediately but was told instead to wait and pay at the same time that they would
all be paying, on the due date. On October 31, the evening of Halloween, she had
gone to Patrick’s pub and spent some time there; then she caught up with a friend,
Spiros, near a place called Marylin (sic), but ‚we didn’t go in since Spiros was
leaving‛; they went to another place and then, being tired, she stopped in the center
of town, where Raffaele had caught up with her and she went with him to his house.
It must have been around 2 am. She knew that Meredith went out with her [63]
English friends. She had sent her a text message that evening asking her what she
was doing and whether that evening they would be seeing each other (page 125).
She remembered that Meredith had begun her relationship with Giacomo Silenzi
one evening when they had been together at the Red Zone discothèque, which had
occurred around the middle of October, before she had met Raffaele Sollecito. She
admitted that sometimes she smoked joints with the guys who lived downstairs. She

72
pointed out that she had the house key, but not also a key to her own room. She
remembered that on November 1, when she was at Raffaele’s house and a short
while before beginning to see the film ‚Amelie‛, a girl had rung the bell, Jovana
Popovic, whom she did not know; Raffaele explained to her that he had to take her
to the station around midnight. Then this girl had returned, to tell (Raffaele) that she
no longer needed to be taken to the station. She didn’t remember when she returned.
‚I think we were making dinner, but I’m not sure‛ (page 133). She remembered that
she had turned her mobile phone off that evening because ‚I didn’t want to be called
back to work, I didn’t want to be disturbed<.I received the call, I received the text
message, I was so happy that I wanted to spend the entire night with only Raffaele
and so I turned off the phone, so as not to be called and called again‛ (page 134). She
added that when, on the morning of November 2, she had seen Meredith’s door
locked, she had tried to climb over the balcony to see if she could see through the
window and to see if Meredith was inside but, not being able to do so, Raffaele told
her to come away and then he tried to break down the door with a kick, and also
using his shoulder to open it, because they didn't know why the door was locked. In
the following days, she planned on looking for another house, and she would like to
have remained with Laura and Filomena. In the meantime, she stayed at Raffaele’s
house. During the time that she was in Perugia, she had never needed to ask for
loans from anyone: she had (access to) an ATM (cash machine) from which she
withdrew her cash. She denied ever having gone around with a knife in her pocket
or in her handbag. She recognised the knife that had been sequestered, Exhibit 36,
and claimed that she had used it for cooking, being in the kitchen of Raffaele’s
house. But she never carried it around. She denied that [64] someone had been able
to put that knife in her bag without her being aware of it. She knew that Meredith
had credit cards and she (also) knew that she had two cellphones, one for England
and one for Italy. She had the numbers of both of them. The relationship with the
guys in the apartment below was relaxed and they saw each other regularly. She
confirmed that she became aware of the broken glass when she returned home the
second time, along with Raffaele. She remembered that when she called Ms.
Romanelli the first time, on the morning of November 2, she was in Raffaele’s house.
When Ms. Romanelli called her back, she was on the way back home with Raffaele.

Returning to the episode of the water leaking from the sink of Raffaele’s house, she
stated that that (leak) had happened after dinner: she didn’t specify the time, but it
was late: they had eaten around 22:30 pm, so it would have been around 23:00 pm.
On November 1, she had left the Via della Pergola house, along with Raffaele,
around 16:00 pm, and before leaving she had been in the small bathroom and the

73
spots of blood had not been there. Neither she nor Raffaele had seen the inside of
Meredith’s room after the door was broken down. The news reported about this was
what they had heard from the people who were present, and who were talking
about it. As for the black lamp discovered in Meredith’s room, she couldn’t give an
explanation. She remembered that she had an identical lamp, but she didn’t know if
it was still there, since she didn’t pay attention to it. She had heard that the guys
downstairs had wanted to ‚celebrate Halloween in some way-- but I didn’t
understand, I didn’t know where they were going and how long they would be
away‛ (page 65). On the morning of November 2, she nevertheless went to see if
they were there because she didn’t know if they were there or not. As for Meredith,
she stated that on the morning of November 2 she was worried; she had thought that
she might be in her room and have injured herself-- in her house, there were some
very strange things, it’s possible she wasn’t even at home. She didn’t know what to
think, but she was worried and wanted to break down the door. She denied that she
wanted to break down the door to get her lamp back. Anyway, they did not even
know that the lamp was missing from her room.

[65] She remembered having called her mother a number of times on November 2.
The first time was as soon as they were sent outside the house. ‚It was after they
knocked down the door and they sent us outside (page 73). At subsequent times,
when informed of the criminal charges against her, she confirmed having called her
mother ‚only to say that we’d been sent outside the house, and I heard something
about a foot‛ (page 74). She didn’t remember calling her before (that particular
instance), during the course of that morning. She didn’t even remember that during
the course of a discussion which she had with her mother in prison, on November 10
— she [la stessa: the mother] apparently told her: ‚But at 12:00 noon, nothing had
happened yet‛ (page 76). She confirmed that on the evening of November 1, from
the time she had turned off her mobile phone until the following morning, she had
been with Raffaele Sollecito the entire time, and she had fallen asleep with him.

Raffaele had marijuana but she didn’t know who he bought it from.

She considered Meredith Kercher to be a friend. As for the accusation that she had
made regarding Patrick, she made reference to the particular situation which had
been created, as well as to her imagination: ‚I was really forcing myself, because
they were saying that I had to remember something else, to remember something
else. I was therefore forcing myself so much, trying to imagine what the reality that
I'd forgotten was, then I was mixing up whether the thing that I imagined really was
a memory or a figment of my imagination, because (the images) were fragmented.

74
So they were only pictures, I suppose, (of the things) that I saw in my life. For
example, Piazza Grimana, I saw every day, Patrick I saw almost every day. These
things were interposed, I don’t know whether they belonged to that evening< and
so, not knowing what was reality, what was my imagination, this state of confusion"
(page 88). Furthermore, she stated that there hadn't ever been times in which she had
had a similar state of confusion. She pointed out that after having met Raffaele on
October 25, she had begun to spend a lot of time with him; almost every day, they
had prepared either lunches or dinners, at his house. Raffaele had met Meredith
when she had brought him to the Via della Pergola house and that had happened
perhaps three times. Sometimes she smoked a joint with Raffaele, and that had
happened as well on the evening of November 1. She had brought home other guys,
to the house in Via della Pergola: Djuve (sic) with whom [66] she worked in Patrick’s
pub, and once in a while accompanied her home after work.

Also, Spiros who wanted to hear her play the guitar, and then another young man
who was named Daniel, and Ratzon.

She recalled that on the morning of November 2 she had taken a shower and had
used the sink; she had not used the bidet. She cleaned her ears using a cotton swab.
She didn’t remember having turned on the bathroom light. As for her own room, she
hadn’t taken note of the missing table lamp. The main light didn’t work. In order to
get dressed she didn’t need to turn on the light because it was late morning and
natural light came in from the front balcony to her room. She doesn’t remember
whether she opened the shutters. After becoming aware of the broken window, she
checked in her own room to see if her computer was there and, since it was, she
calmed down. She didn’t check to see whether other things, like money, were
missing. She recalled that she had told her mother that she was worried ‚because
there’s a knife at Raffaele’s.‛ She was worried because she didn’t know how to
explain such a thing.

Answering a specific question on the matter, she stated that she did not have a
relationship with Rudy Guede; she remembered that someone had introduced him
to her and she had seen him around on a few occasions. Once he came into the pub
where she worked. As far as the statements made by Kokomani, she stated that all of
it was completely false. She remembered that when she had returned to the Via della
Pergola home on November 4, ‚there were at least five (people), but I’d say, even
more, who were already in the house, because there were so many people, in the
hall, in the other room, in another room‛ (page120). Raffaele Sollecito, she added,
did not know Rudy Guede. With respect to the audio surveillance of November 17,

75
2007, relating to a conversation with her mother, in the course of which she had said,
among other things, that she was worried about a knife, ‚for this knife thing,
because there’s a knife at Raffaele’s‛, noting that she had found out from a police
inspector, while she was in prison, that, in an article, they said there was blood on a
knife found at Raffaele’s house and she worried about it, not being able to provide
an explanation for it.

[67] She pointed out that Meredith had never been at Sollecito’s house and she had
not ever taken kitchen items from the Via della Pergola house to Raffaele’s house.
On the morning of November 2, when she awoke around 10:00 am, Raffaele Sollecito
was still sleeping. After dinner, Raffaele had sat at his desk while she was on the
bed, looking at a book. Raffaele Sollecito was at the desk rolling a joint, and they
talked. They had smoked the entire joint after dinner, ‚then we made love and then
we fell asleep‛ (page 155). On November 2, they were supposed to have gone to (the
town of) Gubbio when they woke up. When she woke up, she decided to go home to
Via della Pergola because Raffaele ‚was still asleep‛ and she thought she’d have a
shower before leaving, and she wanted to change her clothes (page 156). At Via della
Pergola, the door was wide open. Ms. Romanelli’s (bedroom) shutters didn’t attract
her attention and when she had returned with Raffaele, ‚they were kind of so-so,
they weren’t totally closed, but they weren’t wide open, either‛ (page 158). The
house was cold and, upon arrival, she had not turned on any type of heating. When
she called Ms. Romanelli, around 12:10 pm, Amanda was at Raffaele’s house, though
she wasn’t sure (about that). When she left the Via della Pergola house, there wasn’t
anybody home, and since no one in the meantime had re-entered, obviously no one
had locked the front door. She denied that on the evening of November 1 she had
been at the basketball court in front of the University, around 22:00 pm and
therefore, what the witness Curatolo had maintained about this matter, did not
correspond to the truth. She had seen Rudy Guede on various occasions: ‚there was
the time, below the house, there was a time, I think, at my job and then I saw that he
played basketball, but, that’s how it was‛ (page 167).

76
INCONSISTENCIES AND DENIALS IN AMANDA KNOX’S TALE

(A)

The recollection by Amanda Knox of the period between the afternoon of November
1 and the morning of November 2 presents some variations [i.e. changes or fluctuations
in the story].

However, one constant is the affirmation of her non-involvement in the murder of


Meredith Kercher: she says she left the house in Via della Pergola 7 on the afternoon
of November 1 and did not return until the following morning at about 10:30 am; she
also maintains that she spent the evening and night with Raffaele [68] Sollecito who,
when she woke up on the morning of November 2 around 10:00 am, was still asleep
in his home on Corso Garibaldi.

The affirmations regarding the presence of Amanda Knox outside her house of Via
della Pergola 7 are deemed to be consistent with what really happened only in
respect of the afternoon and the evening of November 1, 2007 until about 21:15 pm.
The same, in fact, while they are not denied by other investigation findings, are
corroborated by what was declared by Ms. Jovana Popovic and Mr. Francesco
Sollecito (which we have already indicated above: the 20.42 phone call and the two
visits by Popovic to the Corso Garibaldi's apartment) and by the location of the cell
towers that were logged in by the sms exchange between Patrick Diya Lumumba
and Amanda Knox, which put Amanda in a place other than the one served by the
cell serving via della Pergola 7 and, in addition, by Raffaele Sollecito’s computer,
indicating that the last interaction took place at 21:10:32 pm; that computer was
definitely not in the house on Via della Pergola.

As for the issues concerning the identification of the logged phone cells and the
computer interactions, we will deal with them at greater length and depth further on
in this report. With regard to the time period subsequent to 21:15 pm and until
shortly after midnight, no element confirms the presence of Amanda Knox and
Raffaele Sollecito in the house at Corso Garibaldi. No evidence confirms that the two
remained until 10:00 am on November 2, 2007 in the house at Corso Garibaldi;
indeed, on the contrary, a number of findings belie this.

We already mentioned that, at around 21:15 pm, all interaction with Raffaele
Sollecito’s computer stops, and that Amanda and Raffaele were both freed from the
commitments previously made and assumed to be set: in fact, neither Lumumba nor

77
Popovic needed either of them any longer that evening. Amanda Knox claims that at
this point, freed from the commitments that would have forced them to go out, they
remained together in the house at Corso Garibaldi. In fact, Amanda specifies that she
was so happy about the message sent by Patrick Lumumba that, to avoid the risk of
being called back, she turned off her mobile phone. She also maintains that, after
21:15 pm, she and Raffaele had dinner at the Corso [69] Garibaldi house.

In the course of her witness examination she indicated that they had dinner around
21:30 pm to 22:00 pm; then she put the time further out, at about 23:00 pm. But this
claim is contradicted by the declarations made by Francesco Sollecito. He, as noted,
stated that he spoke with his son on the phone at 20:42 pm (phone records
corroborate his statement), who told him "he was with Amanda" (p. 16, hearing of
June 19, 2009). Indeed, later on, around midnight of that "November 1", knowing
that he was with this girl, he limited himself to just sending him a text message (p.
19, hearing cited above). Francesco Sollecito also explained that, during the 8:42 pm
call, his son mentioned "that while he was washing dishes he realised he had a water
spill" (p. 45). This fact, which was also mentioned by Amanda Knox (who links it to
the need to fetch the mop to dry up the floor), is relevant because it allows us to
determine the time of dinner as being around 8:30 pm and before the call at 8:42 pm,
in which Raffaele tells his father that while washing the dishes he had a leak from
the sink.

Therefore, the statements by Amanda Knox in which the hour of dinner is


postponed until 10 pm or even 11 pm constitute an attempt to reduce insofar as
possible the length of time devoid of activity that could be documented in some
way, during the final hours of November 1, 2007, thus creating an alibi that could
put her and Raffaele away from the Via della Pergola house where, precisely during
that time, the murder of Meredith Kercher was being perpetrated.

But the time of the dinner is not the only [fact] indicated by Amanda Knox that is
contradicted by the investigative findings. Though both alleged that they remained
together in the house at Corso Garibaldi until around 10 am of the next day, as
Amanda awoke first and went out to the house in Via della Pergola, this claim is also
contradicted.

Witness Antonio Curatolo, examined at the hearing on March 28, 2009, reported that
on the evening of November 1, 2007, after 9:30 pm, he saw Amanda Knox and
Raffaele Sollecito in the area of Piazza Grimana, the tiny square in front of the

78
University for Foreigners where there is a basketball court and where there were
also other young people.

[70] Mr. Curatolo said he lives in the street in the area around Piazza Grimana and
Corso Garibaldi: a way of life different from the usual one but not for this his
testimony may be considered unreliable as this way of living one’s life does not
affect ones’ ability to perceive events and be able to report them.

On the other hand should be observed that the habit of frequenting places such as
Piazza Grimana and Corso Garibaldi gives reliability about giving indication about
people by Curatolo and specifically relative to places usual for him and that
constitute his habitats: in fact he lives near the University for Foreigners and on
Corso Garibaldi, he appears as a qualified observer of the people whom he reports
having noticed and recognized.

Curatolo Antonio then said that on the evening of November - the specification of
the date seems to be certain because it was the night immediately preceding the day
on which, as always reported by Curatolo, police and carabinieri began to crowd the
area due to the Meredith murder – at about nine-thirty, ten o'clock he was on the
bench in Piazza Grimana reading the articles of his interest in L'Espresso weekly
magazine. Every now and then he smoked a cigarette, stopped reading the magazine
and looked around at the people who lived in or around the Piazza Grimana.

He perceived the presence, at the end of the basketball court, of "two young people
that were looking like two sweethearts discussing a bit in a heated way amongst
them ... every some time one would get up and walk on the way where is the railing
and look down" (page 5 hearing of March 28, 2009). He stated he had not seen them
coming and when he looked down at the basketball court they were already there (p.
19). He remembers also the presence of other people. He reported of having seen the
two young people until before midnight. He recognized the two people as the two
defendants, who were in the room, he indicated them and specified he already knew
them having seen them before, although never together but each on their own. (page
18 hearing of 28.3.2009). He added, as he left the Piazza shortly before midnight the
two youngsters were not there anymore.

He went to sleep and he came back to Piazza Grimana on the same bench the
following day, towards 13:30 or 14:00 some Carabinieri came and asked him about
whether he heard saw anything strange and so, as he stood to look down the road he
noticed [71] it was full of police: ‚people dressed in white, police, Carabinieri, a

79
hubbub of people down there, they were by the entrance of a house, standing there‛.
It was the house where the murder had been committed. There was an ambulance,
too.

Responding to questions from the defence, he stated that, about the current
defendants, he had not seen them also in the afternoon of November 1st. When he
saw them they were yet on the low wall near the basketball court and he was on the
bench. Responding to further questions from the Public Prosecutor he stated he
noticed the two young people at about nine and a half / ten in the evening. He stated
he was not looking at the two youths all the time since he was reading and he used
to see them as he took pauses from reading the magazine he had with him. The last
time he saw them it was "before eleven, eleven and a half, the last time I saw them".
(page 18 hearing of March 28, 2009). He stated that the bench where he was placed is
the one close to the newspaper kiosk. He added that that evening the area was lit
and he remained sitting on the bench until he could see the buses that drive students
to the disco. That it was the evening of November 1 the one when Curatolo, as stated
by himself, saw the current defendants near the basketball court at Piazza Grimana,
does not show to be doubtable: this specification was anchored by Curatolo, as we
have seen, to the presence of policemen, people dressed in white, an ambulance, of
many people whom he noticed the day immediately following at the house where
the murder had been committed.

From the statements just mentioned it is so found that between 9:30 pm - 10:00 pm,
when Curatolo arrived at his bench in Piazza Grimana located next to the newspaper
seller Amanda and Raffaele were together already there and he stated that the
afternoon of that same day he had not seen them. His are claims which do not
conflict with any other finding. In the afternoon of November 1st Amanda and
Raffaele could not be chatting in Piazza Grimana and Curatolo in fact declared he
didn’t see them. With respect of the evening around 21:30 – 22:00 pm, it should be
noted that the phone call he received from his father while Raffaele was at home
happened at 20:42 pm, and the last computer interaction occurred at about 21:15 pm
as already mentioned, and as [72] will be better shown in the following part as we
will deal specifically with Raffaele Sollecito’s computer, and there are no phone calls
that in relation to the logged-in cell may lead one to think that the current
defendants could be a in a place other than the area of Piazza Grimana where
Curatolo said they've been seen. Moreover the home of Raffaele Sollecito located in
Corso Garibaldi is really close to Piazza Grimana and a few minutes are sufficient to
cover the distance. That evening Amanda and Raffaele were together as reported by

80
Popovic "visually" and by the father of Raffaele via phone: it is therefore entirely
plausible that they both left Raffaele’s house, especially since they found themselves
suddenly devoid of those commitments that would have lead both of them to leave
home.

Next, as regards the point: until what time did Curatolo see Amanda and Raffaele
that night? It should be noted that Curatolo, in the course of his examination, with
special regard to this aspect said he could see these people until before midnight. He
also said that about when he left Piazza Grimana, this happened before midnight,
the two young people were not there anymore.

So we have the same expression, ‘before midnight’, repeated twice but with a
meaning that is necessarily not coincident but that can be derived, on the basis of the
same statements by Curatolo. If in fact as Curatolo left – and that happened before
midnight - he didn’t see the two young people any more, the last time he saw them
was - albeit indicated with the same expression ‘before midnight’ as well - at an
earlier time. That could be thus about 23:00 or 23:30. Moreover during the same
testimony (page 18) Mr. Curatolo provides right such an indication: it was "before
eleven, eleven and a half, the last time I saw them". It is also possible to further
restrict the range on the basis of additional elements. Mr. Curatolo said he remained
on the bench until he saw the buses driving young people to a disco and witness
Maurizio Rosignoli (see page 131, hearing of 19.6.2009) reported that from Piazza
Grimana buses depart to the disco and at a time between 23.00 and 23.30 they are
already there.

[73] Based on these elements it is therefore considered that the Curatolo left the
bench in Piazza Grimana between 23.00 and 23.30 (where he could see the buses
leaving for discos and that Rosignoli has located precisely in that time frame) and
when he left the bench the young couple were gone. Therefore at about 23:00 pm
(minute by minute) Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito were no longer in Piazza
Grimana where Curatolo had seen them several times starting from 21:30 pm to
22:00 pm of that November 1st. The declaration of Maurizio Rosignoli just
mentioned is also important in another respect. Mr. Rosignoli, who runs the kiosk in
Piazza Grimana held that in fact in that that period Antonio Curatolo used to
frequent that area. A similar statement was made by Alessia Ceccarelli, also
occupied in the management of the kiosk. Alessia Ceccarelli therefore reported she
knew Mr. Curatolo and she specified that at that time he was placed on the bench
next to her kiosk. She added that when she opened the kiosk on November 2 2007

81
Curatolo was there (statements by Alessia Ceccarelli, hearing of June 23, 2009, pages
122 and 126).

The statements by Rosignoli and Ceccarelli show thus how in that period Curatolo
frequented the area as indicated by Curatolo himself, and that one by Ceccarelli
gives confirmation of Curatolo being in the area of Piazza Grimana on November 2
2007, as reported by Curatolo and that assumes some importance because it is
valuable to confirm that the evening when he saw the defendants was precisely
November 1.

But the version provided by Amanda Knox and by which she remained at the house
of Raffaele Sollecito Corso Garibaldi from the evening of November 1st to 10:00 am
the following morning, is not only contradicted by the statements of Mr. Curatolo,
but also from further findings:

Raffaele Sollecito's computer appears to have been activated in order to listen to


music at 5:32 am on November 2 for a period of about half an hour (as discussed in
more detail in the part devoted to this aspect) after which he switched on his mobile
phone again and he could receive, at precisely 6:02 am, the SMS sent to him by his
father at 23:14 pm on November 1 (also on this issue we will return in the [74]
section dedicated to the cellular telephone traffic by Raffaele Sollecito): these
circumstances, while they indicate the peculiarity of that night due to something
very unusual happening in it, it does not seem possible that they may have escaped
from Amanda Knox’s attention, who instead makes no mention of them, and she
claims her waking up was at 10:00 am in Raffaele’s arms as already mentioned. Such
activation on the computer and the switching on of the phone that took place
between 5:00 and 6:00 am on November 2, were also followed by the call at 9:30 am
to Raffaele Sollecito by his father who, knowing that his son on November 2nd had
plans for a trip to Gubbio along with Amanda, had called to see if they had left, he
understood by how his son answered that he was still in bed. Well, even about this
call, and the response to the same by Raffaele, Amanda gave no word, sticking to tell
about a long sleep since the evening of November 1st till 10:00-10:30 am of Nov 2nd
when, after leaving the house in Corso Garibaldi she went to her own house in Via
della Pergola.

Yet such a circumstance, the call of 9:30 am by Raffaele’s father could have been
reported without assuming that the same could have any indicating significance in
itself (as opposed to computer usage at 5:32 am and the switch on of the cellphone
soon after, behaviours symptomatic of particularities difficult to explain).

82
If then Amanda Knox has been silent about this phone call it is because at that time
she was already out of the Corso Garibaldi house, and therefore she had no
knowledge of that call.

The fact just mentioned also allows us to give mention to the declarations given by
witness Marco Quintavalle on the hearing of March 21, 2009. He reported that on the
morning of November 2, 2007 as he went like every morning to his shop, a
"Margherita Conad" food store located in Corso Garibaldi no. 6/8, he raised the
automatic security shutters at 7:45 from inside the shop, he specified that the switch
that activates the rolling shutters is located between the wall and the side of a
refrigerator, while pressing the button he could see ‚the silhouette of a young
woman who was waiting for me to open the store" (page 71 hearing of March 21,
2009) and in fact this girl came in and he could see her a distance of one metre and
perhaps less. A short time after, perhaps after one minute he saw this girl who was
again outside the store on [75] the street and was walking in the direction of descent
"towards Piazza Grimana" (page 118). This young woman remained impressed in his
memory because of her very light coloured eyes, azzurri [light blue]. She was
wearing jeans, a gray coat, a scarf, a hat. (‚I say hat; I don’t remember if it was a
headset/cap or something else, however she had a head cover" page 73), she could
have been 1.65 to 1.67metres tall. Her face was bianchissimo [very light skin colour]
and she apparently was about 20-21 years old.

She went into the store department that had groceries on sale, and detergents and
toilet paper. He did not know if she bought anything (page 85 hearing of March 21,
2009). He recalled that a few days after his employee told him that she had heard of
the arrest of Raffaele Sollecito, who was well known by Quintavalle because he used
to go into his shop almost every day. Quintavalle so asked her to go out to buy any
newspaper and when he saw all the pictures that were there, he said to himself: ‚but
this is the girl of the other morning" and the reference was to the picture of Amanda
Knox published on a newspaper (page 76 hearing of March 21, 2009.) He also
recognised this girl in the defendant present in court (page 80).

He added that one evening, a little after eight o’clock, Raffaele came in - he knew
him by sight because he often went to the store - and he let him in. And ‚with him
there was Ms. Knox‛ (pages 76 and 77 hearing of March 21, 2009).

Witness Quintavalle, at the hearing on March 21, 2009, was asked many questions to
uncover elements of information that would be useful in verifying his reliability.
This was mainly because though his meeting with Amanda occurred early in the

83
morning (at 7:45 am) on November 2, 2007, he only made a statement about it in
November 2008 and did not mention it earlier, even when Inspector Volturno
questioned him a few days after Meredith’s murder.

This Court deems that the testimony of Quintavalle is reliable. It was discovered that
Inspector Volturno did not ask Quintavalle if, on the morning of November 2, he
saw Amanda Knox in his shop.

He was asked – so Quintavalle recalled - about purchases made by Raffaele Sollecito.


Mr. Quintavalle did not say anything about having seen Amanda Knox on the
morning of November 2, 2007 in his [76] shop because he was not questioned about
this and because, as indicated by Quintavalle himself, he considered this fact to be
insignificant.

He later spoke about having seen Amanda Knox because a young man who used to
live above his shop, who he knew, Antioco Fois, had just graduated and had become
a freelance reporter for the newspaper Giornale dell’Umbria. When he passed him, he
would sometimes ask: "But do you know anything? Did you see something? Did you
hear something?" So one day Quintavalle told Fois that he had seen Amanda Knox
on the morning of November 2; later he decided to go to the Public Prosecutor’s
Office because Antioco Fois convinced him that this fact might be important.

Consequently, the fact of not telling Inspector Volturno about seeing Amanda on the
morning of November 2 and the fact of having come forward only after having been
convinced by Antioco Fois about the possible significance of this event, do not
reduce the reliability of the witness, since these facts do not affect the genuineness of
the memory.

Conversely, it is worth observing that the witness gave a precise description of what
he saw on the morning of November 2 and also provided a description of certain
physical features of the woman he saw (light blue eyes and pale face) which,
together with the unusual time, may well have fixed in his memory what
Quintavalle said he saw. In addition, it should be added that one evening prior to
November 2 and shortly after 20:00 pm, he noticed the young woman when she
came into the shop with someone he knew well (Raffaele Sollecito) after the shop
had closed. To this it should be added that witness Ana Marina Chiriboga, at the
time an employee in Quintavalle’s shop, said that Quintavalle asked her whether
that morning she had seen Amanda and Chiriboga answered no (page 74, hearing on
June 26, 2009). This question necessarily presupposes that Mr. Quintavalle had seen

84
Amanda Knox that morning. And since he did not know whether or not she had
bought anything (see above-mentioned statements by Quintavalle, hearing on March
21, 2009), he was asking his employees in order to gather information on that subject.

These elements contradict the version provided by Amanda of a peaceful night of


continuous and prolonged sleep that she and Raffaele allegedly spent together;
elements which also show a peculiar condition in which both Amanda [77] and
Raffaele must have found themselves: at 5.32 am, Raffaele Sollecito went to his
computer and listened to music for about half an hour; he also turned on his
cellphone; at 7.45 am Amanda was already out of the house and entering into
Quintavalle’s shop, showing a particular urgency to buy and do something; the trip
to Gubbio had by now been forgotten and when Francesco Sollecito phoned his son
at 9:30 am about that trip, his son was still in bed.

(B)
But Amanda Knox’s story also has significant inconsistencies.

First, the reason given by Amanda Knox for which she would return to the house in
Via della Pergola 7 on the morning of November 2 does not appear credible. She
states that she went back home to change her clothes, take a shower and fetch the
mop to dry the floor.

Since she knew she and Raffaele had made plans for a trip to Gubbio on November
2nd, she could well have brought the clothes with her that were going to be needed
for the next day, and there were no circumstances shown that, occurring and
unforeseen, may have given rise to such needs; on the evening of the same
November 1st, she had already showered and washed her hair at Raffaele’s house,
and therefore it is hardly credible there is a need to repeat both those actions, and it
is not understandable why, in addition, she would have to repeat all this somewhere
else and not where she already just had a shower and washed her hair, especially
since for the scheduled trip it would have been advisable to save time.

Fetching the mop to dry the floor also seems to be a scarcely credible action: at
Raffaele Sollecito’s there was someone attending to the cleaning; it is therefore
considered that everything needed to clean up some water was already there, such
that on the morning of November 2, not much could have been left on the floor, as
was also reported by Amanda Knox herself.

Waking up 10:00 - 10:30 am – as was claimed – also seems rather unlikely if one
considers that, as reported by Laura Mezzetti, Amanda was a morning person and

85
should have been such, perhaps with even stronger ground, on that November 2,
having [78] planned the trip to Gubbio. In this regard, the call of 9:30 am from
Raffaele's father appears significant, indicative of his knowledge of when his son
was habitually awake, even though he was with a girlfriend, this circumstance being
known to Raffaele’s father, as evidenced by statements made by same and
mentioned above. Since he was still in bed, however, something different must have
happened to alter the normally planned events.

86
THE BEHAVIOUR OF AMANDA KNOX AND RAFFAELE SOLLECITO ON
THE MORNING OF NOVEMBER 2, 2007

(A)

The defences of both defendants have evaluated as positive in terms the behaviour
had by Amanda and Raffaele on the morning of 2/11/2007, pointing out, that when
nothing was still known, [Amanda and Raffaele] went into the house on Via della
Pergola, called the Carabinieri, waited for their arrival and when Battistelli and
Marzi of the Postal Police arrived, they escorted them into the house making them
look at the broken glass, the up side down mess in Romanelli Filomena's bedroom,
the spots of blood in the smaller bathroom and in spite of the two Postal Police
[officers] not having asked what had happened.

This Court retains not shareable the defensive assessment proposed by the defences
in relation to such behaviour.

Amanda and Raffaele were seen together, constantly and by several people on
November 1, 2007: Filomena Romanelli and her boyfriend Marco Zaroli had seen
them together in the afternoon in the house in Via della Pergola; Jovana Popovic saw
them together in the house in Corso Garibaldi.

Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito lived, in those days, like in symbiosis, as if they
were a couple according to what has already been presented and Amanda lived in
the house on Via della Pergola, occupying the room closest to that of Meredith, and
the evening of the first of November, both her and Raffaele found themselves
without any commitments and had both remained in Perugia, therefore, even if they
hadn’t been found *by the police in the house], they would have nevertheless, as
soon as the lifeless body of Meredith was discovered, be interrogated about their
movements, about the inhabitants of the house, about Meredith and on her
acquaintances, about how they had spent the evening and the night of November 1.
Therefore, they might as well have let themselves be found straight away at the
house.

Moreover, in doing so, [79] both could have, from one side, pointed out such own
behaviour claiming that they had maintained it because they had nothing to hide
about what happened to Meredith, trying -also like this- to convince the
investigators of their total non-involvement and lack of knowledge of the death of
Meredith and, from another side, could have been for them to be aware of what

87
direction the investigations were pointing. Adding to this that, having set up the
[staging] scene mentioned above, it must be considered that, both relying on the
good success of the simulating activity they could well let themselves be found on
the place [farsi trovare] and call Romanelli to ask her to return home and call the
Carabinieri because they had taken part: in such way they would have also
strengthened their position of innocence and non-involvement and give more power
of persuasion to the staging activity without which, lacking signs of forced entry at
the door, Amanda Knox and with her Raffaele Sollecito would have been the first
under suspicion.

The phone calls made to the Carabinieri just mentioned were at 12:51 pm and 12:54
pm on November 2, 2007 by Raffaele Sollecito. During the course of the trial, the
recordings of parts of those conversations were heard, and Officer Daniele Ceppitelli
recognized it as the call to 112. In that call to 112, Raffaele Sollecito (the male voice
calling from the house in Via della Pergola) said that someone had entered the house
by breaking the glass of a window and the premises had been turned upside down
(page 72, hearing of February 14, 2009 ). It should also be emphasised that he
specified nothing was missing (‚no, there has been no theft,‛ page 74 of that
hearing). Now, if in fact in the room of Filomena Romanelli – the one that was
turned upside down and with the broken glass pane – a person had gone in through
the broken glass and created the mess that appeared, it is not understood how
Raffaele Sollecito could rule out that something (money, jewellery or valuables that
Romanelli Filomena could have kept in any box in her own room) had not been
stolen. It is not understood where he could arrive at the categorical assurance he
expressed to the Carabinieri: "No, there has been no theft‛.

Certainly, he could have seen the computer and the photo camera; in the room of
Romanelli but there could well be valuables that only the owner [l’interessata] [80]
could have known about, and only the owner could have verified whether they were
still there or not. Only the owner could have therefore excluded the burglary once
the bedroom had been checked and verified the presence of all things belonging to
her; rather than it could be excluded by those who, as pointed by Raffaele Sollecito,
knew that the broken glass had been staged as well as the [room] disarray and so
could affirm to the Carabinieri that there had been no theft.

At this point, however, the following question naturally arises: if Raffaele Sollecito
participated in staging the scene of broken glass and disarray in Romanelli’s
bedroom, why say that there had been no theft?

88
This Court holds that the apparent contradiction finds an adequate solution in the
following considerations:

The problem for Amanda and Raffaele in distancing themselves from being suspects
was, in the absence of a forced front door, the need to create another possibility of
access into the house; broken glass and disarray in the room of Romanelli seemed to
fit this purpose independently of the theft of actual objects. Raffaele Sollecito
therefore could think that, saying there had been nothing stolen (which was true and
shortly would actually be checked out) would not compromise the aim of the staged
scene and would also gain additional credibility in the eyes of the carabinieri – as
indeed there had been no theft – and that in little time this fact would be confirmed
anyway: might as well, then, say immediately that there was no theft.

However, the question that the police officer in the second phone call to 112 at 12:54
pm again put forward, relative to what had been taken (‚what have they taken?‛
page 77, hearing of February 14, 2009), also elicited a similar response from Raffaele
Sollecito ("they have not taken anything"); it ought to have made him realise that to
so quickly exclude the theft of any object would make the staged scene not as
believable and could highlight the difficult-to-repair contradiction that is
emphasised above: how could Raffaele Sollecito have excluded the possibility that
something had been taken from Filomena’s bedroom? And then, a change of version
takes place and he tells the Postal Police (who it can be held that, according [81] to
what is maintained by the defendants’ defence, arrived after Raffaele Sollecito’s
telephone call to 112, and this by nothing other than the fact that regarding these
calls to 112, the Postal Police say nothing; in the same way that they said nothing
about those that preceded them, at 12:40 pm and at 12:50 pm; each of these phone
calls being of a not brief duration that, therefore, would not have escaped the
attention of the two police officers) that there has been a burglary. Fabio Marsi in
fact testified that they two young people told him ‚they were awaiting the arrival of
the Carabinieri because there had been a burglary inside the house‛ (page 122,
hearing of February 6, 2009). While Marsi was accompanied by Amanda to see the
traces of blood in the smaller bathroom (page 123, hearing of February 6, 2009),
Battistelli was taken to Romanelli’s bedroom and expressed perplexity about the
burglary (page 65) because he noticed the presence of the computer and digital
camera. In addition, when Raffaele Sollecito was showing Romanelli’s room to Fabio
Marsi, he said: "very strange, nothing has been taken, there’s still a portable
computer and a digital camera‛ (page 124).

89
(B)
Amanda, after seeing the door open, the blood stains, the bigger bathroom dirty,
returned to Raffaele’s house and he, according to what Amanda explains in her e-
mail of November 4, 2007, suggests that she call one of her housemates; so it was
that she called Filomena, who was worried. Amanda told her then that she was
going to call Meredith and then she would call back. So, Amanda called Meredith on
both cellphones without getting an answer (‚Filomena seemed really worried so I
said to her that I would call Meredith and then call her back. I called Meredith on
both cellphones, first on the English one, then on the Italian one, and then again on
the English one<‛ (see p.3 of the e-mail dated November 4, 2007). Filomena
Romanelli, in recalling the first phone call received that morning at a little after 12:00
pm from Amanda, does not say that Amanda told her she had already called
Meredith and then, in the immediate version that Amanda gives to both Romanelli
and the recipients of the November 4, 2007 e-mail, the chronological order of the
phone calls would be the following: phone call to Romanelli and next to Meredith.

[82] Things, however, went differently because the first phone call that Amanda
made on November 2, 2007 (see the specific chapter dedicated to an examination of
the cellular telephone traffic of Amanda Knox) at 12:07 pm was to Meredith’s
English subscriber line. And even this circumstance does not appear to be without
significance. In fact, Amanda and Raffaele (the calls to Meredith and Romanelli
occurred while Amanda was at the home of Raffaele Sollecito), before calling
Romanelli and recounting the situation, wanted to make sure that Meredith’s mobile
phones had not been found by someone who had reported the discovery leading to
the start of an investigation and search.

Once they had that reassurance (the phones not being answered by anyone), they
could raise the alarm, beginning with the notification of Romanelli to whom,
however, and as has been seen, the unanswered call made to Meredith’s phone was
left unsaid, and of this call, preceding that made to Romanelli, no mention was made
in the email, as we have seen.

Also, at that time no call was made to the second phone used by Meredith and
registered to Filomena Romanelli; this not only remains relevant to what has been
just noted but allows other considerations: If the call made to Meredith’s English
subscriber line had been determined by a real and genuine interest in knowing
where Meredith was, another call should have followed directly to the other
subscriber phone [Italian] line also used [borrowed] by Meredith. The explanation as
to why the other call was not made immediately once there was no answer on the

90
English phone is that Amanda and Raffaele knew very well that Meredith could not
answer; their concern and interest were not for Meredith, but instead to see if the
phones, thrown away together, had been found by someone. Therefore, the fact that
the other call was not made to the other subscriber line indicates that Amanda and
Raffaele knew that the two phones had been discarded together (in fact they were
found in the same place, a very short distance apart) and that therefore there was no
need to establish the failure [83] of finding each phone by making two calls, first to
one phone and then to the other.

(C)

As was already mentioned, when Amanda returned to the house on Via della
Pergola 7 she detected a particular and strange situation, difficult to explain: the
house door open, blood stains in the bathroom used by her and Meredith, feces in
toilet in the other bathroom. In addition – sticking with her story – when she
returned to the house together with Raffaele, which would have been about 12:30
pm, she realised that Filomena's room was turned upside down and the window
had a broken glass pane.

In the already mentioned e-mail Amanda Knox thus writes:

"... Filomena's door was closed but when I opened it I saw that her room was in a
mess and that the window was open and completely broken ... convinced that we
had been robbed I went to Laura's room and looked quickly in, but it was spotless<
I checked my room for things missing, which there were not. Then I knocked on
Meredith’s *bedroom+ door. At first I thought she was asleep, so I knocked gently,
but when she didn’t respond, I knocked louder and louder until I was really banging
on her door and shouting her name. No response. Panicking I ran out to the terrace
to see if I could see inside< Raffaele told me he wanted to see if he could break
down Meredith’s door. He tried and the door was cracked but we couldn’t open it. It
was then that we decided to call the police.... At first Raffaele called his sister for
advice, and then called the police. I then called Filomena who said she would be on
her way home immediately. While we were waiting, two plainclothes policemen
came to our house. I showed them what I could and told them what I knew‛.

In this email, Meredith’s locked door therefore acquires a central importance,even


fundamental, by which, however, for that scenario, it would have had to have
occurred if Amanda and Raffaele had truly spent the night at Corso Garibaldi
without having entered the house of Via della Pergola again but for the morning of

91
November 2; precisely for this [84] logical requirement in this writing, to affirm their
extraneity to the murder and to convince the recipients of the e-mail of this, Amanda
cannot help but give central importance to this locked door and writes, therefore,
that this fact induced her to run to the terrace, and to position herself on the window
ledge to see if she could see something, and writes that this door being locked
created in her a state of absolute panic, she "was panicking" and continues, writing
that Raffaele tried to break down the door but couldn’t open it, which is how they
came to decide to call the police (‚It was then that we decided to call the police‛), as
well as to call Romanelli and tell her to come to the house.

Yet when the Postal Police arrived, the panic caused by that locked door was not
expressed in any way and Amanda did not speak of that locked door in the phone
conversation she had with Romanelli; it was instead Romanelli who asked Amanda
about Meredith, as mentioned above.

Both Raffaele and Amanda drew attention to the broken glass and the disarray in
Romanelli’s room; to the open front door; to various bloodstains in the bathroom. A
behaviour that places itself in line with the staging created in Romanelli’s room [is
this one]: someone entering through the bedroom window of Romanelli who,
because of the broken glass, injured himself (spots of blood in the bathroom) and
who then exited the house leaving the door open.

This is the interpretation of the story that Amanda and Raffaele wanted to offer,
consistently with the staging created, expecting and hoping that the locked door of
Meredith's room would be inserted into the interpretation [reading] of clues
organised by them with the simulation of the burglary and in the call to 112 by
Raffaele Sollecito, drawing attention to the locked door, the context in which he
places it, and to the broken glass, the room in disarray, the blood stains. And in one
of the calls exchanged with the 112 policeman, in response to the explanation given
by Raffaele Sollecito, the policeman asked him this: So they cut themselves breaking
the glass? (From the testimony of Cepittelli, hearing on February 14, 2009, page 74.)

Inspector Battistelli recalls that when he arrived with assistant Marzi ‚they told us
they were waiting for the police because they had found the door open [85] when
returning to the house in the morning and the window broken, and they took me to
see the broken window in Romanelli’s room‛ (Hearing on February 6, 2009, page 64,
pages 86, 87). Neither of them asked him to break down the door of Meredith’s room
(page 114). Battistelli has also stated in the same hearing that it was Romanelli who
noticed that Meredith’s door was locked (page 118).

92
On this point, it is possible that Battistelli’s memory is not precise. It does indicate
how no importance was given to the locked door by Amanda and Raffaele when
Battistelli arrived with Marzi shortly after 12:30 pm, and this is confirmed by Fabio
Marzi, who recalled that "we were told that they were waiting for the Carabinieri
because there had been a burglary inside the house ... Amanda told me that they had
found the door open and there were bloodstains, which she showed me in the
bathroom‛ (hearing on February 6, 2009, pages 122 and 123). The same Marzi also
stated that ‚the problem of the locked room was raised when the other youngsters
arrived‛ (p. 130).

This locked door in Meredith’s bedroom was also discussed by the young people
who came to the house around 13:00 pm. Marco Zaroli, at the time Romanelli’s
boyfriend, arrived with Luca Altieri, the boyfriend of Paola Grande. In the same
hearing on February 6, 2009, he declared: ‚I believe it was one of the officers of the
postal police that said there was a locked room and Amanda said however that
Meredith was in the habit of locking the bedroom even to go to the shower and this
reassured us‛. The same Zaroli has stated that it was Luca Altieri who asked about
the door and the response about the normality of it being locked he got it from
Amanda and we were reassured (p.181).

Luca Altieri also stated that when they arrived they saw the room of Romanelli in a
mess and then Meredith's room locked with a key. They asked if this was normal
and Raffaele, "translating Amanda’s answer told me that she usually locks the door
even when she goes into the bathroom to take a shower ... so there was no concern
arising about the fact that the door was locked‛ (p. 218, hearing on February 6, 2009,
see also statements of Paola Grande, p. 254).

[86] The reassuring answers given by Amanda and Raffaele, which strongly clash
with the panic that Amanda writes about in the e-mail of November 4, 2007 and also
with the kick Raffaele Sollecito is alleged to have given to that door (on this point see
also Luca Altieri’s statement, page 219, hearing on February 6, 2009).

The conduct of Filomena Romanelli when she came back to the house, saw the
situation and learned that Meredith's door was locked was very different. Romanelli
knew that Meredith locked the door to her room only if she was going away for a
few days and that she had locked it only once, precisely when she had gone to
England; therefore, disagreeing that Meredith normally locked her door, she was
alarmed by the locked door (see also Luca Altieri, page 218). And the decision to
break down the door of Meredith’s bedroom was made immediately.

93
Even in this sad situation the conduct of Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito was
absolutely different from that of the other young people; they remained distant,
almost disinterested and out of possible range of vision to see inside the room once
the door was open. "When we broke down the door I don’t know where Amanda
and Raffaele were, but certainly they were not in a position to see inside the room‛
(statement by Luca Altieri, p. 220; see also statements by Paola Grande in the same
hearing, on February 6, 2009, page 254). Marco Zaroli declared that when the door
was broken down Amanda was beyond the reach of the kitchen door. He couldn’t
say where Raffaele was, though he ruled out that he could have been in the corridor
(p. 183) and similar statements were made... by the assistant Fabio Marzi: ‚When
about to break down the door< Battistelli was by the dining room table and I was
further away, almost at the front door entrance of the house, near the outside; and
next to me was Amanda‛ (p. 133, hearing on February 6, 2009). He couldn’t say
where Raffaele Sollecito was. However, both Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito
were far away from the door when it was broken down (see also Battistelli’s
statements, page 74), in a location that would not allow them to see what was inside
that room.

Yet no one had told them to stay away. And the friendship, the socializing and the
fact of living [one girl with the other] side by side in the same house should have
[87] made Amanda the most interested to see what could be hidden behind
Meredith’s locked door. Moreover, given the liaison between Amanda and Raffaele,
he should have stood next to Amanda to be as near as possible, both of them near
the door that was about to be broken down.

The conduct they both exhibited, consisting of staying away from Meredith’s door,
in a position which would not allow them to see inside the room, seems explicable
only if we admit that Amanda and Raffaele already knew what was beyond the door
and therefore had no reason to look inside the room; on this point, some parts of the
[prison] conversation between Amanda and her mother and wiretapped are rather
telling:

M. "You called me one time saying<‛

A: ‚I was in shock you know‛

M: "But this was before anything happened except for the fact that the house was<‛
(RIT 397/08, of November 10, 2007).

94
The mother, who says to Amanda that at the time nothing had happened,
demonstrates a significant contradiction in this sequence of events, of which the
daughter would have progressive knowledge.

This conversation [the first call] between mother and daughter was not intercepted.
The first call, to U.S. phone user 00120069326457, was made at 12:47 pm on
November 2 and corroborated by analyzing the telephone traffic of Amanda Knox’s
cellphone. However, the perplexity shown by the mother indicates that in this phone
call Amanda had told her of circumstances which, if she was a stranger to what had
occurred, she could not have known.

DEPOSITIONS BY NARA CAPEZZALI AND ANTONELLA MONACCHIA

(A)
At the hearing of March 27, 2009, Nara Capezzali, a resident for almost 20 years of
an apartment in Via del Melo, located above the S.Antonio car park, from which she
was able to see part of the roof of the dwelling at 7 Via della Pergola, was heard.

She specified that she was widowed in June 2007 and that she lived with her
daughter.

She remembered that on the evening of November 1, 2007 she went to bed around
nine or nine thirty in the evening.

[88] She did not look at the clock but she usually went to bed about that time.

She remembered that she had gotten up to go to the bathroom after sleeping for a
couple of hours or a little more. She stated precisely that when she went to bed she
would take some pills which she needed to make her go to the bathroom and they
took effect after about two hours.

The habit of taking this medicine went back to when her husband died. She specified
that the noises of cars and people reached her from the car park underneath her
residence, and this generally went on until one o’clock in the morning.

Returning to November 1, she stated that, having gotten up to go to the bathroom,


when she was near the window of the dining room she heard ‚a scream, but a
scream that was not a normal scream‛ (page 16, hearing on March 27, 2009).

95
She looked out the window without opening it and saw nobody, only two or three
cars; when she was about to return to the bedroom to go back to sleep she heard
running on the steel staircase and running on the gravel path, among the leaves and
the gravel of the cottage, on the path in front of the cottage in Via della Pergola. The
scream was that of a woman, a protracted one, but just one scream.

She specified that with respect to the window from where she had heard this scream,
the steel stairs were to the right, towards the part of the S.Antonio car park where
the cars exit.

She specified that she could also see the gate of the house in Via della Pergola. She
added that ‚the iron there makes a tremendous noise during the night, then, when
you don’t hear cars going by or such things‛ and while she heard running on the
steel stairs ‚from the other way they were running on the path. It was almost at the
same moment ... while I heard the one on the steps, because they were making more
noise, then straight away after I heard this other one‛ (pages 19 and 20, hearing on
March 27, 2009).

After that, she had gone back to sleep, but she had to make herself a chamomile tea
because she kept hearing that scream and it was upsetting her. Her daughter was in
the house but had not woken up, however; neither had Mrs. Capezzali woken her.

She further specified that ‚that night there was that scream and in the morning they
found that girl dead‛ (page 51, hearing on March 27, 2009).

She specified that she had never heard such a scream before, if not perhaps in films
‚but it wasn’t even like that because films don’t do anything to me whereas this gave
me goose bumps‛ (page 85).

[89] In spite of some inaccuracies in the presentation, especially in reference to the


time when the newspaper kiosk posters published news of the homicide, it is held
that the deposition of the witness is reliable with regard to the scream and to the
noises then heard on the iron staircase and in the square in front of the house in Via
della Pergola.

Several times in the course of her own deposition Mrs. Capezzali spoke of a special
scream, heart-rending to the point that after she heard it she could not get back to
sleep; a scream the likes of which she had never heard before. If there had not been
such a scream, and if Mrs. Capezzali had not actually heard it, then the Court can see
no reason why she would have spoken about it.

96
The fact that other people, who were heard on this point, stated that they did not
hear any such scream, does not detract from the reliability of the statements of Mrs.
Capezzali, having declared that she had heard a scream when she had woken up to
go to the bathroom.

It is also held that the indication given by Mrs. Capezzali at some points of her
deposition, according to which the day after she heard the scream she is supposed to
have seen the posters with the news of the murder, should not weigh upon the
reliability of the deposition and on the exactitude of her memory relating to the
scream and its date.

In fact, Mrs. Capezzali specified and made clear that at night there was the scream
and in the morning there was the finding of dead girl. (page 51) It is therefore to be
held that the strong impression made by the scream heard that night and the
succeeding discovery of the lifeless body of the girl, with the significance given to
the event by the newspapers for days and days, catalyzed the attention of Mrs.
Capezzali, making it difficult for her to reconstruct the precise sequence in regard to
the newspaper posters which continued to give news of the murder.

Furthermore, the scream which Mrs. Capezzali talked about found confirmation in
the deposition of the witness Antonella Monacchia, which was taken at the same
hearing (page 99 and following). She also spoke of ‚an extremely loud scream‛
heard that night.

Monacchia Antonella, after stating that from her own residence located in Via
Pinturicchio she sees the ‚terrace, the window of the balcony and, to the side, the
kitchen and the garden‛ of the house in Via della Pergola, declared that on the
evening of November 1, 2007 she went to bed at 22:00 pm. She then continued,
adding what follows:

[90] ‚I looked at the clock and it was late; after, I can’t say the precise time, I woke up
hearing two people arguing in an animated way, a man and a woman in Italian; after
which I heard an extremely loud scream and, seized by anxiety, I opened the
window and looked to see if there was someone outside, but I couldn’t see anything
and I closed the window‛ (page 100).

In answer to specific questions she also stated that the scream was from a woman
and came from below and (from) the house at 7 Via della Pergola, which in respect
to her own residence is below. She learned about the crime the next day, at about
15:00 pm (page114).

97
The declarations of the witness Maria Ilaria Dramis, given at the same hearing on
March 27, 2009, also appear to be significant.

Maria Ilaria Dramis, after stating that she had lived for ten years at 12 Via del Melo -
the same street as Mrs. Capezzali, who lives at number 26 – and that she could see
from her own residence the roof and part of the small courtyard of the house at 7 Via
della Pergola, as well as the car park of S.Antonio (page 89, hearing of March 27,
2009), recalled that on the evening of November 1, 2007 she had returned home
about 22:20 pm after seeing a film which began at 20:30 pm with her sister at the
Pavone cinema. She had gone to bed about 23:30 pm and while half asleep had the
feeling of hearing running footsteps under the window of her bedroom, which looks
onto Via del Melo and which is on the opposite side to the car park (page 91).

She could not say precisely if they were from one person alone or from several
people. She clarified that Mrs. Capezzali’s house is to the right in respect of hers and
is therefore closer to the iron stairs of the S. Antonio car park. She did not remember
hearing people running in the same way on other occasions like that night (page 99).

(B)
On the basis of the declarations just recorded, given by Nara Capezzali and by
Antonella Monacchia, it can thus be held that, in fact, towards 23:30 pm on
November 1, 2007 there was a loud, long scream from a woman which came from
[91] the house at 7 Via della Pergola.

After this scream, Nara Capezzali heard running on the metal stairs located below
her residence in the S. Antonio car park towards the section used as the exit for the
cars, and straight afterwards she heard running on the path situated in front of the
house in Via della Pergola.

The harrowing scream heard a little before must have caused a strong agitation in
Mrs. Capezzali, who was rendered particularly sensitive and attentive to what might
happen and who knows the area; therefore, it is to be held that she referred to noises
on the metal steps and on the path because there actually were such noises and she
was able to hear them.

Furthermore, the deposition of the witness Dramis, who referred to ‚running steps‛
heard about 23:30 pm on that same November 1st in Via del Melo, which is very

98
close, almost a continuation of the path of the house in Via della Pergola, could
constitute some confirmation of this.

The running on the path in front of the house at 7 Via della Pergola shortly after the
heart-rending scream leads this Court to hold that the heart-rending scream came
from the house at 7 Via della Pergola; likewise, whoever’s running steps were heard
on the metal steps and whoever’s running steps were heard a little later on the
gravel path and leaves in front of the house at 7 Via della Pergola lead the Court to
hold that more than one person came out of that house.

99
INVESTIGATIVE ACTIVITY

(A)
The house of Via della Pergola 7, when the lifeless body of Meredith Susanna Cara
Kercher was discovered, it become – as noted – the center of an intense investigative
activity and evidence bagging.

On the afternoon of November 2, 2007 personnel of the Perugia Police headquarters


went to said house. The 118 and Coroner Dr. Lalli also came; a few hours later, the
Forensics staff from Rome arrived.

They then proceeded to perform an initial review of the house; Forensics proceeded
with findings in their area of expertise that took up the afternoon, evening and the
night of November 2, 2007 and subsequent days until Sunday, November 5, 2007.

[92] While Forensics activity was still in progress, the house was accessed on
November 4, 2007 involving, accompanied by staff from the Perugia police
headquarters, the three occupants and housemates of the victim: Laura Mezzetti,
Filomena Romanelli and Amanda Knox.

The days of November 6 and 7 were taken up by the search activity by personnel
from the police-headquarters of Perugia, which took place on November 6, involving
the house in Corso Garibaldi occupied by Raffaele Sollecito, an activity that brought
about the discovery and seizure of a large kitchen knife. This find was forwarded to
Forensics in Rome for the appropriate examinations: Exhibit 36. In the bedroom of
Sollecito Raffaele was found another knife with a blade 8 centimetres long.

The house in Via del Canerino used by Rudy Hermann Guede was searched on
November 16, 2007.

On December 18, 2007 the Scientific Police from Rome ensured additional access into
the house on Via della Pergola 7; the area of focus was the room occupied by
Meredith. During this search additional items were acquired, including the piece of
bra with hooks, Exhibit 165.

(B)
The timetable of the aforementioned activities has been reported by various police
officers.

100
Domenico Giacinto Profazio, at the time head of the Perugia Flying Squad, heard at
hearing of February 27, 2009, stated that he arrived at the house on Via della Pergola
on the afternoon of November 2 after the Flying Squad had reached the place. That
evening he did not go inside the house, where an inspection by the Scientific
Police< of Rome was already under way (p. 7, hearing of February 27, 2009). He
recalled the access on November 4, 2007 during which ‚we all had shoe covers and
gloves on" (p. 13). On the morning of November 6, he went to the house on Via della
Pergola – which he had not entered before – together with Napoleoni, Inspector
Bigini, Gubbiotti, Zugarini and Barbadori. He stated that the house ‚had never been
abandoned, in the sense that the Questore <. had arranged for surveillance
[piantonamento]8 of the house at our request" (p. 15).

They went inside wearing shoe covers [93] and gloves, and they divided the rooms
among themselves: besides Profazio, Meredith’s room was entered by Napoleoni
and Bigini; Amanda's room was entered by Zugarini and Gubbiotti; Barbadori dealt
with Romanelli’s room. They also had a quick look at the two bathrooms. The
following days, another entry was made to get the items that were in the washing
machine located in the room adjacent to the bigger bathroom, the one with the feces.
On said occasion, besides Profazio, there was Giobbi and other two colleagues;
Profazio and Giobbi "approached" Meredith's room and removed the portable
computer.

Subsequently, another entry was made into the house on December 18, 2007, to
collect further material by the Scientific Police. On that occasion, full protective gear
was worn and a prepared van was provided in which a television monitor was
installed to allow the various parties to see what was happening and what was being
accomplished inside the house, in particular inside Meredith’s room.

In reply to a specific question from the defence of Raffaele Sollecito and relative to
the period of November 2-6, 2007, it was specified that there was a permanent
service arrangement of guards whose duty was "not to let anyone inside" (p. 37). He
also stated that the entry on November 4 was in the presence of the Public
Prosecutor, for the purpose of showing the knives to the three occupants; they all
remained in the living room-kitchen and all had shoe covers and gloves. The
Scientific Police were still in the house, in the murder room, and nobody approached
this room (page 40, hearing of February 27, 2009). Recalling the search entry on
November 6-7 by staff of the Perugia police headquarters and the one on December

8
Surveillance based on the services of round the clock armed guards (piantone)

101
18 (page 39), it was stated that objects were moved, drawers opened, clothes looked
through and that all of this was done with gloves and shoe covers on and in
compliance with the agreed upon allocation of areas between the various operators,
as already specified. Nothing was collected from Meredith’s room on that occasion.

It was also stated that whoever was doing evidence collecting in one room did not
enter any other rooms and that the objects being moved were moved only inside the
room in [94] which the various staff were working, without moving them from one
room to another (page 116).

Profazio did not recall the presence of a rug in Meredith’s room and did not see the
bra piece with hooks (p. 49). He added that he did not change the gloves for each
object he touched and that for every entry he used the same pair of gloves (p. 52).

To a specific question by the defence, he declared remembering that on the days


when Rudy was brought back to Italy – he could not say whether it was before or
after – the German authorities sent ‚evidence made on the hands of Rudy Hermann
Guede< not so visible < they told us that it was him who wanted to say something
and then consequently they took these pictures of his hands< these hands I might
remember ... showed very tiny marks‛ (p. 77).

He also recalled that when Rudy was still in Germany his friend, Giacomo De
Benedetti, successfully got in touch with him through the internet (p. 105).

‚I did not enter the small bathroom at via della Pergola at all on November 4, and I
only saw it on the 6th when it was totally pink because an appropriate substance had
been used to enhance the forensic traces‛.

He was aware that the bra piece with hooks was seen as early as November 2. He
knew this not because he had seen this piece directly but because he had been told
by Dr. Stefanoni, who had stated that it had been seen but not collected (p. 126).

Dr. Marco Chiacchiera, at the time deputy director of the Perugia Flying Squad,
stated that he had arrived at the house on Via della Pergola first on the afternoon of
November 2, at about 13:30 pm (page 159), and that when he arrived Raffaele
Sollecito and Amanda Knox were outside the house and remained there until they
were taken to the police station (page 162). The front door of the house did not show
signs of forced entry and the blinds of a bedroom window ‚at the time occupied by
Romanelli, the green wooden ones, were semi-closed‛ (page 139, hearing on
February 27, 2009). Romanelli’s room was completely [95] upside down; the clothes

102
were on the floor and pieces of glass were on top of the clothes and also on top of
windowsill (pages 141 and 190).

He recalled the stone present in Romanelli’s room and declared that there is an
ample rural area around the house with similar rocks (page 223). Also in attendance
on November 2 were the technical video engineers: inspector Cantagalli and
assistants Montani, Calmieri and Brocci, who were charged with documenting the
inspection (page 191).

He recalled that he was outside Meredith’s room "in a way as to observe everything
that was inside" but that he did not enter the room (page 176).

He specified that to arrive by foot from Via della Pergola to Via Sperandio where
two mobile phones had been found would require a 5-7 minute walk via Corso
Garibaldi or through the park (page 145).

The house and garden where the phones had been found were hidden by a dense
row of conifers (page 223).

He added that on the morning of November 6 the search of the house on Corso
Garibaldi used by Raffaele Sollecito, included inspectors Finzi and Passeri,
superintendent Renauro and assistants Camarda, Rossi, Sisani. During this search,
the knife that became Exhibit 36 was found by inspector Finzi and seized, as well as
comic books that "mixed pornography and horror‛ (page 157).

He recalled that everyone had gloves and shoe covers on. The knife was put in a bag,
closed, sealed and taken to police headquarters (page 158).

Monica Napoleoni, Deputy Commissioner of the State Police, arrived at the Via della
Pergola house around 13:30 pm, and colleagues of the postal police gave information
about the discovery of the body of a girl. Arriving almost at the same time as the
staff from 118, there was a female doctor and a nurse. In Romanelli's room, she saw
the break-in and glass "that had fallen on top of the stuff lying on the floor" (page
226). She approached Meredith’s room with the chief assistant Buratti, who
remained at the door as Napoleoni took one step inside the room "while the 118
doctor uncovered the corpse" (page 228, hearing [96] on February 27, 2009).

She was wearing shoe covers and sterile gloves. ‚I then saw this girl who was on the
floor with her face lying towards the right of the viewer, with a terrible wound. Was
semi-naked, had the t-shirt rolled up above the breast and lots of blood and spatters
of blood even on the breast‛ (page 229).

103
Everyone who entered had gloves and shoe covers on except the 118 personnel who
certified the death. Soon afterwards, Dr. Chiacchiera and colleagues from the
Scientific Police arrived.

Neither the key to Meredith’s room nor the front-door key given to Meredith was
found (page 234). She returned to the house on Via della Pergola on November 4.

She recalled that they had called Romanelli, Mezzetti and Knox to the police station.
At some point Raffaele Sollecito arrived and "he wanted at all costs to pair up with
Amanda ... then Raffaele went to get a pizza and we went, with the public
prosecutor, with the chief of SCO, with Profazio ... with the [three] occupants to Via
della Pergola to identify the knives in the kitchen‛, and the girls (Mezzetti,
Romanelli and Knox) revealed that they were not missing any knives (page 237). All
had on gloves and shoe covers, and all remained in the kitchen area. Only Romanelli
was asked whether she recognized the clothes in the washing machine positioned in
front of the larger bathroom, which [clothes] could be seen through the porthole
thereof.

The scientific personnel remained in the house until 17:00 pm; they went into the
house to make the first search at 6 in the morning. Besides Napoleoni, there was
Profazio, Bigini, Gubbiotti, Zugarini and Barbadori. They divided the rooms as
follows: Meredith’s room was inspected by Profazio, Napoleoni and Bigini; the
others dealt with other rooms. She excluded that there was a movement of objects
from one room to another and noted that whoever was in Meredith's room did not
go into any other rooms or vice versa. She then returned to the house for the forensic
inspection on December 18, putting on "the white suit‛. On that occasion, a van had
been set up to allow everybody to follow what was happening inside the house, and
no one put forward any objections as to how to proceed. [97] (page 246). On that
occasion, ‚they were all wearing the white suits and gloves‛, and the bra piece with
hooks was collected then (page 247).

She specified that during the search she touched various objects with the same
gloves without stopping to change gloves each time an individual object was
touched. She insisted on having searched Meredith’s room: that she was in the
corridor and left without going into any other rooms, adding that "every time we
entered and left the house we changed shoe covers and gloves" (page 261). She
recalled that when she entered Meredith’s room "there was a black lamp that had
fallen behind the door. Then there was Meredith’s lamp, which was by the bedside;
it was on the floor between her bedside table and bed" (page 268). She also recalled

104
the presence ‚of a bluish mat‛ but did not notice at that time the piece of cloth with
hooks (page 268). Nor could she say if such piece was involuntarily ‚moved" (page
272).

On November 6, no one entered Meredith’s room other than the three performing
the search (Profazio, Napoleoni and Bigini). On November 7, there was another
entry into the house ‚for the problem of the washing machine, to collect the clothes;
but I also know that they did not go into other rooms‛ (page 273).

The witness testimony of Monica Napoleoni proceeded in the hearing on February


28, 2009. She declared that she did not touch the window shutters in Romanelli’s
bedroom when she found them, as shown in the related dossier photo, slightly open.

To a related question put forward by the defence of Raffaele Sollecito, she confirmed
the information content of November 5 in relation to which, upon arrival at the
house in Via della Pergola on November 2, Raffaele Sollecito had told her: "My
girlfriend has now remembered and told me that when she went into the bathroom
this morning by herself there were feces in the toilet and that when we returned to
the house it was no longer there‛ (page 22, hearing of February 28, 2009). She
recalled that below Romanelli’s window ‚there was even a nail in the wall that
remained intact ... in addition to there not being any signs of climbing, the thing that
we noticed by sight, there was a rusty nail that was straight‛, not bent (page 46).

[98] She recalled that on the morning of November 6 a flick knife was confiscated
from Raffaele Sollecito while at the police station (page 47). She recalled as well that
a mop was seized which was kept inside the closet in the hallway in front of
Amanda’s room. On this mop nothing in particular was found.

Mauro Bigini, chief inspector in service at the Flying Squad in Perugia, who was
heard on February 28, 2009, confirmed what already had been testified to by
Profazio and Monica Napoleoni in terms of the order of the activity on November 6,
2007 in the house on Via della Pergola. The Scientific Police had ended their activity
there the previous day. When they entered on November 6 they wore gloves and
shoe covers. Upon the recommendation of Dr. Profazio they split up the areas: Dr.
Profazio, deputy chief Napoleoni and Bigini searched Meredith’s room; Zugarini
and Gubbiotti that of Amanda; and Barbadori that of Romanelli. In Meredith’s room
there were bloodstains "even for this we moved with some caution, trying not to
disturb too much‛ (page 111, hearing on February 28, 2009).

105
The officers assigned to Amanda’s room did not move from there to go into
Meredith’s room: ‚no one went from one room to another‛ (page 112); when the
search was finished the seals were affixed to the house.

The only area where various officers walked was the corridor. She recalled in
Meredith’s room the presence of a mat in front of the wardrobe (page 118). She did
not see the piece of cloth with the hooks.

Armando Finzi, chief inspector of the Flying Squad of Perugia, said that on the
morning of November 6 he was ordered by Dr. Profazio to perform a search of the
house of Raffaele Sollecito in Corso Garibaldi (number 110). Before entering the
house, they all put on gloves and shoes covers. There was also the deputy chief of
police Chiacchiera, Passeri, Ranauro, Camarda, Rossi and Sisani. In the house there
was a strong smell of bleach. He remembered the terms following the first action
that he reported at the time: "I was with my back to the door; there was the dishware
drawer; I opened it. I opened the top cutlery drawer ... we had clean gloves on, new.
The first thing [99] I saw was a big knife. Let me state beforehand that it was
extremely clean‛.

The witness recognized it when shown Exhibit 36 as that same knife (pages 176 and
177, hearing on February 28, 2009). He remembered that in the drawer there were
other knives, but he collected what was later indicated as Exhibit 36. It had the
following dimensions: blade 17 cm. and handle of dark colour 14 cm. He recalled
that in Sollecito’s bedroom they found another knife whose total length was 18cm,
with an 8cm. blade.

The 31cm knife *kitchen find+ was the first item touched and was ‚the first knife
arranged on top of the other cutlery" (page 178). As soon as the knife was picked up
he put it in a new paper bag9 that he had with him and then in a folder.

The sealed bag with the 31 centimetre knife inside was handed over to
superintendent Gubbiotti. The bag the knife was put in was new and had never been
previously used; in the same [bag] there was never any other item.

Stefano Gubbiotti, heard in the same hearing of February 28, 2009, confirmed, as did
assistant Zugarini Lorena (pages 129 and following, hearing of February 28, 2009)
the formality of the search on November 6, 2007.

9
busta di carta is a paper envelope, of a closed type

106
He said that upon returning to the police station, inspector Finzi handed him the
material seized in the home of Sollecito Raffaele. The first thing he handed over was
the knife which was inside a new bag that was well wrapped and submitted closed,
and thus had no contact with the exterior (pages 201 and 223). He specified that
when handing over such knife he had new gloves on, which he had not used on
other occasions and which he took from the office.

Therefore, with those gloves, he removed the knife from the bag and put it inside a
box that he sealed with scotch-tape. He specified that such box previously contained
a desk diary and no other items apart from "the new desk diary offered" by a bank
(page 202). This box was then sent, along with other findings, to the Scientific Police
in Rome (page 203).

Brocci, assistant chief employed at the Perugia police station, heard in the hearing on
April 23, 2009, recalled that on November 2, 2007 she arrived at the house on Via
della Pergola No 7 at 14:30 pm, together with inspector Cantagalli. At the door they
met another colleague, Palmieri or Montagna. Then they put on [100] shoe-covers
and gloves and they all went into the house. They decided to do a round inside the
house, and once they had finished this round, they divided the tasks: inspector
Cantagalli passed all the material needed for the setting up the crime scene to Brocci
and two other colleagues. She stated that setting up the crime scene means
documenting their findings and thus, for every room seen, letters or numbers are
affixed on all the items that are deemed relevant and significant.

Setting up [documenting] the crime scene makes it possible to describe the rooms in
the house. She stated that the forensic colleagues from Rome had not yet arrived;
Fabio Palmieri performed the photographic activity and Raffaele Montagna the
video recording. Cantagalli handled it at a later time, after 17:00 pm.

The personnel of the Scientific Police in Rome arrived about 17:00 pm and began
their own activity: the detection of latent prints under the direction of Dr Giunta,
search and finding of biological traces under the direction of Dr Stefanoni.

The witness Brocci specified that she was the one who did the evidence collecting in
the small bathroom, the one adjacent to the room of Meredith. She stated that in this
bathroom there were blood traces that appeared haematic [bloody] in nature and a
follicle formation; she indicated this with the letter E, located inside the washbasin.
In this bathroom there was also a bathmat ‚soaked with blood substance where
there was printed a shape which morphologically could seem like a foot‛ (page 134,

107
hearing of April 23, 2009). With specific reference to blood traces she stated that they
were drips of pink colour "not characteristic of the red blood substance" (page 134).
Only on the washbasin faucet was the substance blood red in colour; all the others
were pink. About the procedure of evidence collection using one single absorbent
paper, she did it because "the upstream drops and the downstream drops had the
same continuity; there were small drops on the same line, therefore by colour and
continuity drippings I regarded it as appropriate to collect them with a single paper
disc" ( page 134, hearing on April 23, 2009).

Traces that appeared to be of a blood nature [101] were also present on the box of
cotton buds, on top of the toilet seat, on the light switch and in the bidet, ‚and there
was always the drop upwards, really on the edge and the same continuity up to the
bidet siphon, of the common colour and in the same line‛ (pages 134 and 135).
Traces were present also over the bathroom door, not watered down but a vivid red
colour. She specified that she had attended a course where ‚collecting biological
substance is taught" (page 148). She was equipped with gloves, overalls and shoe-
covers. She could not remember how many times she changed her gloves but if she
noticed that they were spotted proceeded to change them. The evidence collecting in
the small bathroom she did it with a ‘carta bibula’, which is an absorbent paper [disc]
and to a question put to her by the defence of Amanda Knox, she stated the
following: "when we say finding a drop upstream and a drop downstream ... on the
inside for example of the sink ... a drop on the edge of the sink and for continuity
there was a drop that ended up towards the sink siphon and had a continuity, is not
that one was to the right, one to the left, one here and one over there; it had its own
continuity, I had deemed it proper to use the same disc of absorbent paper, as they
were equal in colour, pink‛. Such material singled out was pink, of "washed blood ...
in the sense it did not have the characteristic red colour of blood‛. The same colour
other than in the bathroom sink was noted inside the bidet (p. 152). She specified
further that it was not a strip, but "more little specks < with the same continuity‛
(page 153): they were ‚drippings< that gave this continuity‛ and the colouring was
the same, always pink. She did not believe then it might be different traces because
of the continuity between the different drops.

Dr. Stefanoni collected the toilet paper smeared with feces present in the other
bathroom.

She spoke also of the presence of traces that appeared to be blood and looked like an
imprint of the sole of a shoe; with regard to this matter she specified that "exiting
from Meredith Kercher’s bedroom and going towards the *house+ exit, [102] these

108
marks became increasingly fleeting and faint‛ (page 138). Connecting the various
points of those tracks, a line could have been drawn that was directed towards the
exit (page 159, Brocci’s statements).

She added that she was present when the body was removed and everything under
the body was observed: huge patches of blood and a pillow. "Lifting this pillow we
realised that there was the piece of bra we found that was not attached to the rest of
the bra near the feet of the body‛ (page 156). We did not indicate that small piece of
a bra with a specific letter because the letter had already been set on the bra. They
proceeded, though, to photograph that particular item (page 157).

In the large bathroom there were no traces of blood (‚absolutely none‛ page 158).

(C)
Other investigative activity concerned the telephone traffic checks of Amanda Knox,
Raffaele Sollecito and Meredith Kercher’s cell phones, with the identification of
network coverage, in particular in the house at Via della Pergola 7, and Via
Sperandio where two cellular phones used by Meredith had been found.

Also examined was Raffaele Sollecito’s Apple laptop computer.

SURVEY AND EVALUATION OF THE FORENSIC RESULTS

(A)
At the hearing of July 3, 2009, Dr. Lalli explained, in substance, what he had already
written in the consultancy report dated December 12, 2008, made on behalf of the
Public Prosecutor. He arrived at Via della Pergola 7 around 14:00/14:40 pm, where
the corpse of a female subject had been found and identified as Meredith Kercher.
He was wearing single-use protective gloves and shoe-covers. He entered the room
in which the dead girl was lying on the floor, almost entirely covered by a duvet,
leaving visible only "a part of the head stained with blood and the left foot, which
was sticking out from the lower edge of the duvet" (page 2 of the report). He did not
do any tests, as he had been asked to preserve the crime scene as perfectly as
possible in order to allow the scientific police to carry out their work.

109
[103] However, he did note (at around 14:40 or 15:00 pm) that the girl's foot
presented "cadaveric rigidity...of the ankle and the toes" (page 6, hearing of April 3,
2009).

He recalled that the entrance to the flat was restricted to Scientific Police personnel,
first from Perugia and subsequently from Rome, who were wearing suits, shoe-
covers and gloves. Dr. Lalli remained in the immediate vicinity of the house and
stayed in contact in case his presence was needed and he could make his own
verifications.

The inspection of the corpse was postponed, and was finally performed at around
0:30 am on November 3, 2007. At this point, it was possible to uncover the body
completely and note that it was indeed "a female subject aged around 21, height
164cm, weight around 50 kilos; naked except for a shirt that she was wearing but
that was pulled up over her breasts and was heavily soaked with blood". Also, her
hands were bloodstained and were protected with plastic bags in order to allow
sample collection, as some hairlike fibres could be seen.

At around 0:50 am, the following time-of-death data was determined: rigor mortis
was present in all muscular regions; wine-red hypostasis staining was located in the
posterior region of the corpse, which became white when pressed with a finger;
rectal temperature was 22 degrees Centigrade and the ambient temperature was 13
degrees Centigrade (pages 9 and 10, hearing of July 3, 2009).

From a brief external inspection, he noted diffuse blood staining on the face and the
presence of some wounds on the neck. The main wound was located at the level of
the left side of the neck; from this wound issued "what is called a mushroom" of air
mixed with blood (page 11). The same "mushroom" issued from the mouth and
nostrils.

From what could be observed in that setting, there were no significant injuries to the
chest, abdomen or lower limbs.

The cadaver was then transferred to the morgue of the Perugia Polyclinic for further
observation and tests. The next day, with the assistance of a [104] gynaecological
specialist, an inspection was made of the vulva, the vagina and the anus, and swabs
were taken in order to test for the presence of sperm or other substances.

Following divarication of the major and minor lips, it was possible to note small
areas of bruising, coloured darker than the surrounding areas. The hymen was

110
indented without any lacerations or traumatic injuries, indicating that the young
woman was sexually active. Nor did the vaginal canal or the cervix present injuries
"of any pathological or traumatic significance" (page 13). The anus appeared slightly
open, which was compatible with the time elapsed since death, and free of
pathological or traumatic injuries.

The significant elements discovered by this examination were described as follows:

a fine pattern of petechiae on the internal eyelid conjunctive;

the presence of tiny areas of contusion at the level of the nose, localised around the
nostrils and at the limen nasi [threshold of the nose];

inside the mucous membranes of the lips, injuries compatible with a traumatic action
localised in the inner surface of the lower lip and the inner surface of the upper lip,
reaching up to the gum ridge [fornice gengivale];

also found on the lower side of the jaw were some bruising injuries, and in the
posterior region of the cheek as well, in proximity to the ear;

three bruising injuries were present on the level of the lower edge of the right jaw
with a roughly round shape. In the region under the jaw an area with a deep
abrasion was observed, localised in the lower region of the middle part at the left
[parte mediana sinistra] of the jaw.

Once the neck had been cleaned, it was possible to observe wounds which Dr. Lalli
attributed to the action of a pointed cutting instrument. The main wound was
located in the left lateral region of the neck, and was [105] 8cm in length; the width
could not be measured because the edges had separated due to the elasticity of the
tissues both in relation to the region and to the position of the head, which could
have modified the width. These wounds had a small "tail" at the posterior end. The
wound "penetrated into the interior of the structure of the neck in a slightly oblique
direction, upwards and also towards the right" (page 15). Underneath this large
wound another wound was visible, rather small and superficial, with not
particularly clear edges "becoming increasingly superficial until they disappeared",
in the reddish area of abrasions.

Other wounds were present in the right lateral region of the neck, in particular a
wound (also attributable to a pointed and cutting instrument) that appeared to
"penetrate into the deep structures". Above this wound were "superficial, slight areas
of excoriation which appear to be parallel to each other".

111
There were no noticeable injuries to the chest or abdomen.

The presence of two relatively slight areas of bruising, with scarce colouring and
barely noticeable, were detected in the region of the elbow.

On the hands were small wounds showing a very slight defensive response.

A small, very slight patch of colour was noticed on the "anterior inner surface of the
left thigh" (page 16). Another bruise was noted on the anterior surface, in the middle
third of the right leg" (page 17).

The doctor also stated that, after sectioning the corpse, he noted at the level of the
head "a very slight area of bruising" in the region just below the top of the head;
around the tongue were small and very superficial signs as of biting. He then
proceeded to open the layers of the neck and this operation revealed a series of small
internal haemorrhagic swellings caused by the action of the cutting instrument.

He stated that he had examined the hyoid bone and found it to have an "interruption
of continuity" (page 83 of the transcripts). He stated that the hyoid bone is located at
the back of the tongue muscle, and that such an interruption of continuity could
have been [106] caused by an action of gripping of the neck, or by the action of the
cutting instrument (page 83 of transcripts).

He stated that the results of the toxicological analyses revealed the absence of
psychotropic drugs and a blood alcohol level of 0.43 grams/litre.

Tests of histological preparations of fragments of the organs taken during the


autopsy were also performed. They revealed the presence of "pools of blood" inside
the lungs. The other organs were normal (page 19, hearing of April 3, 2009).

(B)

In relation to the elements he observed using these methods, Dr. Lalli made the
following conclusions with regard to the cause and time of death; and to possible
sexual violence that the victim may have suffered or not; and to the presence of one
or more agents.

The cause of death was attributed to acute cardio-respiratory failure caused by the
combined mechanism of haemorrhaging of the vascular lesion in the neck and
asphyxial mechanism. This latter could have been caused by the aspiration of blood

112
or by a further action of strangulation or suffocation. Such asphyxia mechanism was
confirmed by the presence of subconjunctival petechiae and the presence of intra-
alveolar pools of blood.

As to the means which caused the cluster of lesions, Dr. Lalli discussed a single-
bladed cutting tool with a point, and assumed that those injuries were consistent
with a virtually infinite number of instruments provided they had a blade with only
one cutting margin, provided that the blade was not serrated (page 61, hearing on
April 3, 2009). He recalled that in the Questura he was shown a pointed knife
compatible with the wounds that was in an envelope; he thought he had not
manipulated [the object] since he had not taken note of any specific feature of that
knife (page 62).

As regards the action [that] produced contusions, he noted that the same could have
been achieved even with bare hands since none of the ecchymotic lesions detected
[107] had particular characteristics indicative of a specific wounding instrument.

With reference to the time of death he took into consideration the various criteria
for its determination developed by forensic medicine science (pages 59 and
following of Lalli’s report dated December 2, 2008, and pages 28 and following of the
transcript of the hearing).

Highlighting the difficulty and uncertainty of applying the same criteria, especially
since it was decided to preserve the biological traces without modifying the crime
scene, delaying the examination of the corpse by about 11 hours from [the time] the
body was found, Dr. Lalli (in his report - usable since it was included in the trial file -
and also in explanatory testimony) demonstrated that at 0:50 am on November 3,
2007 the rectal temperature was 22 degrees Celsius and the ambient temperature 13
degrees Celsius. There was a "rigor" ubiquitously valid and hypostasis *areas+ ‚of
limited extension, by the lower spots of the supine position, partially imprintable in
their perimeters".

At 12 noon on November 3, 2007, he noted the following: rectal temperature of 19


degrees Celsius, ambient temperature of 18 degrees Celsius; rigor valid except the
upper and lower right where it had already been passively resolved to allow the
handling and transportation of the corpse; hypostasis always of limited extension to
the areas still partially turning white with the application of peripheral pressure. At
10:00 am on November 4, 2007: "rectal temperature homogeneous with

113
environmental, ubiquitous hypo-valid rigor; hypostasis of limited extension stabile
to digital pressure in every point".

In relation to the development of various elements and phenomena, the related


evaluations were exposed.

The criterion of temperature, given the normal cooling curve of the body (loss of 1/2
Celsius degree/hour during the first three hours, of 1 degree per hour in the
following 8 hours and subsequent gradual levelling between environmental and
body temperature within 20-24 hours from death) the influences of various factors
(blood loss, place and conditions [108] where the body itself was found) and also the
application of the Henssge nomogram, lead Dr. Lalli to place the time of death
between 21 hours and 30 minutes and 30 hours and 30 minutes prior to the first
testing, thus between 20:00 pm and 04:00 am on November 1, 2007 and November 2,
2007. He also pointed out that the intermediate value - equal to 26 hours before the
first survey – placed the time of death at 23.00 pm on November 2, 2007.

He stated that in the Henssge nomogram the calculation of the weight of the body is
used, and weight he had indicated in the report was an estimated weight based on
the anatomical structure, and not the actual weight (page 51 of the transcript).

The criterion of hypostatic stains: there were indications that the hypostasis appear
1-2 hours after death that and their fixation on the central part of the stain starts
between the sixth and the eighth hour following death, while full fixing to
acupressure occurs 24 -36 hours after death (report, page 62). On this point, during
the hearing on April 3, 2009 Dr. Lalli stated that when the first survey occurred, at
0:50 am on November 3, 2007, the hypostatic stain still showed assessed ability to
fade and thus reduce the intensity of its colour without disappearing after digital
pressure. In the ensuing investigation, which occurred at 12 noon on November 3,
2007, hypostasis "was now fixed to finger pressure", thus indicating a time of death
between 24 and 36 hours prior (page 35 of transcripts). Signs indicate that the time of
death was between 12 noon on November 2 and midnight on November 1.
However, the specific time from which date back to the 24 or 36 hours was set at 12
noon on November 3, 2007 as an extreme limit, but it was not known at what time
the fixation of hypostasis occurred in the time frame between 01:50 am and 12:00
noon on November 3, 2007, and therefore a sure indication of a time from which to
count back this time lapse of 24-36 hours was lacking. The criterion of hypostatic
stains in this case could not therefore provide more accurate information.

114
With respect to the criterion of rigor mortis Dr. Lalli showed that by the check at
0:50 am on November 3, 2007 this was ubiquitous and valid in all districts "was
solved at the upper and lower right limb to allow handling [109] and transportation
to the morgue, had not reformed in such districts‛ check of 12 noon on November 3,
2007 but was still valid in other districts and at the last check at hour 10.00 am on
November 4, 2007, appeared at resolution. He then mentioned that rigor mortis
begins 2-3 hours after death. It is completed by the 12th hour and it remains in effect
until the 48th hour, and it then begins to dissipate and disappear by the 80th - 90th
hour. Consequently, the indications given by this criterion are not in contradiction
with the indications given by the criterion of temperature.

Dr. Lalli also took into consideration the state of digestion. He stated that solids
are ingested into the stomach and are not able to reach the pyloric sphincter until
they are reduced to a semi-fluid or fluid consistency; the emptying of the stomach
then begins to occur when some of the contents have become sufficiently fluid to
reach the pylorus, which happens the third or fourth hour after eating. This is when
one can find food material at the level of the duodenum (page 63 of the Lalli report).
It was also pointed out that a meal consisting of sugar would leave the stomach
faster than a meal consisting of proteins which, in turn, are digested faster than a
meal of fats. "Therefore, if undigested foods are found during the examination,
signifying a more or less accentuated incompleteness of the kimification process, we
can deduce that not more than 2 to 4 hours have elapsed since the last meal".

In the autopsy, Dr. Lalli noted the following: "... oesophagus containing a fragment
apparently a piece of mushroom (page 46) ... stomach containing 500 cc alimentary
bolus, green brown in which were recognizable caseosis (mozzarella?) and vegetable
fibre ... empty duodenum, small intestine containing digested material in the last
loop ...‛ (pages 47 and 48 of report).

These claims were essentially repeated at the hearing on April 3, 2009 (see pages 36
and following the hearing transcripts, April 3, 2009) in which the presence of a
fragment of mushroom in the opening of the lower stretch of oesophagus was
confirmed, thus in a phase of non-digestion; Dr. Lalli specified that [110] death was
considered as occurring not more than two to three hours after eating (page 47 of the
hearing transcript, and the adjustment described in the footnote on February 13,
2008). He stated that the emptying of the stomach occurs between a minimum of two
hours and a maximum of four hours after the meal is consumed (page 62,
transcripts) and also confirmed that the duodenum was empty (page 63). Answering
specific questions from the defence of Raffaele Sollecito, Dr. Lalli stated that death

115
had intervened two to three hours after eating (page 47), while reaffirming that the
emptying of the stomach generally occurs between two hours and a maximum of 4
hours after eating (page 62, hearing on April 3, 2009). He added, however, that the
digestive process is influenced by many factors like the type of meal, cold, stress,
physical conditions and so on, and that to his knowledge there were no reliable
studies that could establish "by how much the digestive process can be changed by
these factors" (page 86).

As for possible sexual violence, he highlighted that the gynaecological examination


did not establish whether the victim had suffered sexual violence or not. The
circumstances relating to a certain dilation of the anal sphincter and the presence of
tiny purple bruises on the back side of the anal ring could result from issues such as
styptics and could therefore be meaningless to a finding on sexual violence. More
emphasis was given to purple stains of ecchymotic type present on the inner surface
of the labia minora, which could suggest hurried intercourse, with no signs
indicative of the physiological availability and preparation of the female subject for
this act of intercourse. Then the consultant concluded that "in the absence of vaginal
lubrication the introduction of the penis or even just some fingers of a person
[soggetto attivo] can cause these ecchymotic lesions due to the action of compression
and/or rubbing" (page 51 of report). Such conclusions were further explained at the
hearing of April 3, 2009, in which it was highlighted that signs were present of
sexual activity with characteristics of non-cooperation by the young woman, which
can be derived from the "lesion pattern at the vulvo vaginal level" (page 40 of
transcripts).

[111] These signs were present in the purple ecchymotic type spots detected on the
inner surface of the labia minora, the area where they are usually produced. It is the
first point of contact for the sex organ or object - including fingers – penetrating the
vagina and therefore the point at which an action ... performed without the full
cooperation of both actors would produce purplish spots of this kind‛ (page 42).

He excluded, finally, that the biological data alone could indicate the presence and
action of several people against the victim. The only thing he could affirm in this
regard was that the victim was not under the influence of psychotropic drugs or
ethanol, and thus could not be considered as unable to respond due to loss of full
awareness/capability"; and that there had not been an active and valid defence on
the part of the victim (page 44, hearing on April 3, 2009). On this point, he further
specified that in an action "performed even with repeated blows ... much greater
defensive actions are detected on the hands from trying to block the instrument of

116
assault" (page 105), adding that "the more intense the assault, the more repeated and
violent the blows ... the greater the defensive lesions" (page 106).

He was unable to specify how long the overall assault on Meredith had lasted, but
he did state that from the moment the major injuries were inflicted it would take a
relatively short time, just a few minutes, for death to result (page 113). The victim
could have screamed "theoretically when ... she was struck at the region on the right
side of the neck" (page 114). As for the signs of lesions on the inner labial mucosa,
Dr. Lalli stated that they could be assumed to have been caused by an "action of
compression from the outside, which compresses the mucosa against the underlying
structure made up of the teeth and the gum line ..."this action of compression was to
be deemed that was determined by a hand grabbing her mouth (pages 121 and 122).

(C)

[112] The consultants appointed by the Public Minister - Mauro Marchionni, Mauro
Bacci and Vincenza Liviero - were heard at the following hearings (April 4 and 18,
2009).

They stressed that they had been appointed after the inspection and the autopsy on
the corpse had already been done and therefore performed their evaluations based
on what had already been initially acquired by Dr. Lalli.

Professor Marchionni stated he dealt with any possible aspect of sexual violence ,and
with reference to the ecchymotic areas described Dr. Lalli that were predominantly
located within the vestibule, he ruled out that they resulted from a "normal but rapid
rapport, meaning without lubrication or preparation" (page 20 of transcripts, hearing
on April 4, 2009). He noted in this regard that, even without lubrication injuries of
this nature are not the result of consensual sexual intercourse, and he argued that the
cause of these lesions had originated from a "forcing" that could have been done by
the penis or by hands (page 21, hearing on April 4, 2009). He stated with regard to
timing that they must have been very recent "because you still see the redness, as if
just beyond the mucosa there were small haemorrhagic extravasations and there was
obviously no time to repair it – in short, because she died"(page 22, transcripts). He
ruled out that these areas could be ecchymotics of hypostasis (page 27, transcripts),
clarifying that "that is not the most declivous region of the body where they go ". He

117
also noted that it was not possible for hypostatic stains to form ‚only in a few tiny
spots" (pages 32 and 33).

Dr. Liviero, examined at the same hearing, reported that in order to carry out their
assignment commissioned by the Public Prosecutor, video photos were used as well
as the consultancy report by Dr. Lalli.

As to cause of death she confirmed Dr. Lalli’s assessment of a dual mechanism of


suffocation and bleeding.

She discerned the mechanism of asphyxia as very evident in the numerous round-
shaped bruises located on the chin, both right and [113] left, which appeared to be of
the "fingerprint type, such as by the grasping of a hand by fingertip" (page 50,
transcripts). The presence of "haemorrhagic suffusion by impression" on the labial
mucosa showed "an attempt to suffocate ... with the strength of a hand pressing the
mucosa inwards against the teeth" (page 51, transcripts). She also recalled the
presence of petechiae as highlighted by Dr. Lalli, symptomatic of a violent
mechanical asphyxia. To this mechanism of suffocation and strangulation as a cause
of death a haemorrhagic shock was added, [which was] determined by an extensive
lesion caused by a single-lip cutting and pointed weapon.

She dealt also with the fracture of the hyoid bone that was highlighted by Dr. Lalli,
observing that the fracture could be compatible with both actions of a hand - or more
hands - that grabbed the neck, and/or both the action of a knife that had penetrated
into the underlying tissues (page 53). Moreover, she indicated these two mechanisms
as being 50% consistent with the fracture of the hyoid bone (page 83). She also said
she believed that the lesions of an ecchymotic and contusion nature must have been
produced before the injury that caused haemorrhagic shock ‚because had this
cutting injury been there before the blood would have smeared the region .... and
made it a slippery area" (page 56, transcripts). She also argued that the knife seized
and shown as Exhibit 36 "brought by the personnel from forensics" was to be
considered "clearly compatible" with the deepest wound inflicted on the victim. In
this regard, she noted that when the blade " enters and totally deepens ... the part
where the blade is fixed to the handle hits [the surface] causing a bruise on the
tissue" so that "you can also find an ecchymotic area around it but, in this case, there
wasn’t any" (page 58, transcripts). With reference to the exhibited knife, she noted
that it had some fine scratches [zigrinature] on the blade, at a distance of two, eleven
and four centimetres (pages 82 and 83).

118
As for the dynamic of the homicide, with particular reference to whether the action
was performed by one or more persons, Dr. Liviero ruled out the existence of
scientific elements that would allow us to formulate a response to this question.

[114] Professor Bacci, a consultant appointed by the Public Prosecutor together with
Professor Marchionni and Dr. Liviero, gave his assessment at the hearing on April
18, 2009.

With reference to the problem of the time of death, after assuming that the
temperature of the body and its progressive change constitute one of the most
important parameters, he noted that the delay in the measurement of temperature,
together with several other variables related to the specific situation (a body which
was covered with a duvet, the presence of haemorrhaging, changes in external
temperature, from 13 degrees to 18 degrees after transfer to the morgue) had affected
the application of the most accredited mathematical methods/systems.

Then he explained that the datum relating to the contents of the stomach had also
been considered, and in relation to [the fact] that material in advanced digestive
status was found in the stomach, he thought the meal had been eaten three or four
hours before death. With regard to a piece of mushroom near the pre-cardio region
that Dr. Lalli had spoken about, he said that this could not have been consumed
during the afternoon/evening meal because it was in a different digestive state;
therefore, he believed that some other food must have been eaten after the meal
which, according to statements made by the British friends of Meredith, occurred
between 6 pm and 8 pm and did not include mushrooms. However, given the
inherent status of the last meal which Meredith’s English girlfriends spoke about, it
was possible to place the time of death between 3 to 4 hours later: therefore, this
[time] could fall between 21:00 / 21:30 pm and 23:00 to 24:00 (pages 7 and 8 of the
transcripts), a timeframe that appeared to be consistent with indications that other
thanatological criteria could provide.

As to the cause of death, Professor Bacci reasoned from the injuries that were found,
some major and some less so. Among those worth mentioning were those on the face
and neck. As for the minor ones, which nonetheless were significant in terms of the
dynamic of events, [115] he recalled the little bruises in the nose area, bruises in the
lip vestibular area, some small scratches, and a series of bruises around the lower
jaw region and also the neck. He noted the presence of a wound in the left cervical
area of the neck, about 8 cm long and of equal depth. Below this wound, almost

119
parallel, there was another smaller wound but its path [tramite] 10 ended by
intersecting the cut of the more serious wound above it. Between these two wounds
there was a deeply excoriated area.

In the region on the opposite side, i.e. the right, there was another cut-wound about
1 cm and a half long and some 4 cm deep. These wounds are consistent with the
photos showing the result of substantial blood loss and must have caused significant
anaemia.

Professor Bacci also highlighted the presence of ecchymotic prints clearly


symptomatic of a violent grasping. In relation to this, it was thought that a
compressive action occurred on the neck and mouth over the nostrils, indicating a
coercive action which could have constituted a certain asphyxiating element. Based
on these factors, he deemed that her death was to be traced back to the joint
mechanism of anaemia and the asphyxial component.

As for the timeline, Professor Bacci believed that the constrictive action on the neck
must have preceded the wound made by the cutting implement for two reasons: the
wound in the left lateral region of the neck was very deep and very wide, and a
hand gripping there would have inevitably ended up inside it given the positions of
the bruises with respect to the wound. In addition, since blood is very slippery, a
somatic region covered with blood would never have allowed a constriction with
such outlined imprints, because it would have caused the hand to slip and prevented
the grasping necessary [to produce the imprints]. He also noted that, from a
psychodynamic perspective, it was very unlikely that an attacker, armed with a
wounding implement such as a knife, would decide at some point to set the knife
down and switch to [the use of] hands.

[116] With respect to the lesions detected on the inside of the lips, he believed they
were not necessarily indicative of an attempt to suffocate and may instead have been
connected with the intention of silencing the victim.

He also addressed the question of the kind of knife that could have caused the
injuries observed and, given that it would have to have been a sharp instrument
with a cutting edge, he answered questions concerning the compatibility with the
knife that was seized and shown as Exhibit 36 in the following terms:

10
The word tramite is translated often as “depth”, sometimes as “cut” or “wound”. It is literally a
geometric term to indicate the depth, shape and direction of a void path across a solid material, as in the
case of a penetrating wound. It is thus the wound‟s third dimension, what is not visible from the surface
cut.

120
This knife was a kitchen knife with a very voluminous blade. In relation to the
biggest wound the compatibility was deemed to exist on the grounds that although
he was aware of the arguments against such an assessment, it was not possible to be
certain in terms of attribution or exclusion "because the lesività [wounding
phenomenon+ is dependent on too many factors: the moment < in which the events
takes place, the force that the sharp/cutting object has, movements of the victim, of
the perpetrators, their physical positions"(page 12, transcripts). On this specific
point, he concluded substantial compatibility.

He ruled out that the knife (Exhibit 36) could have caused the wound on the
opposite side (still inflicted on the neck but on the right side) because of the size of
the wound (1 cm and a half with a depth of 4 cm) and the fact that at 4 cm from the
tip the width of the blade of the knife is about 3 cm and therefore much larger than
the width of the wound (as indicated, 1.5cm).

With regard to sexual violence, he referred to the inspection of the genital area
conducted by Dr. Lalli at the morgue operating room. On the internal surface of the
labia minora, attention was focused on areas of discolouration, which can be
interpreted as small bruises, small abrasions associated with small haemorrhages
indicative of "small lesions" (page 16, transcripts) consistent with a violent action of
friction, pressure and compression and, while affirming the absence of ‚glaring signs
typical of sexual violence "(page 16, transcripts) he concluded compatibility with
‚non-consensual sexual intercourse‛ (page 16, hearing on April 18, 2009).

[117] He dismissed the possibility of interpreting these ecchymotic areas in terms of


hypostasis *death lividity+, noting that ‚such peripheral areas are ... typical of
scratches and small haemorrhages and small abrasions" (page 16, transcripts).
Professor Bacci also considered it possible that there was violence and anal type
penetration, highlighting the presence of small pinpoint haemorrhages, small bruises
that other consultants attributed to constipation: he was not fully convinced by this
interpretation, since there was no evidence of such constipation, which would have
been a very important issue (page 18). While concluding that sexual activity in the
vicinity of death took place, an event that had a non-consensual connotation, he
highlighted the absence of accessory injuries (bruises to the legs or arms caused by
grasping action) of any particular importance. There were bruises present at thigh
level that might have indicated an action of grasping; however, the injuries were
quite different from those that one is accustomed to seeing in [cases of] violence in
the strict sense (transcripts, page19).

121
As to the presence of other injuries, the following were recalled: bruising of the right
upper limb at the elbow; one bruise at the level of the arm; on the right hand, small
cuts were present that could have defensive significance but not obviously so.

The hyoid bone was fractured. He noted that "usually these fractures result from a
constrictive action on the neck"; it could not, however, be excluded that it could have
been severed by the knife, though this could not be affirmed with certainty because
the morphology was not clearly visible and did not allow for a response in sure
terms. He observed, however, that the most important wound inflicted with the
knife, on the left lateral neck area, ‚discontinued the airway" and "cut the larynx"; in
this regard, he drew attention to a photo showing the presence of "a foam fungus‛. In
view of this, with regard to the major wound on the neck, he expressed his deep
perplexity that an attempt at strangulation could have taken place, adding that it
would be as if someone were trying to strangle a person who has had a tracheotomy
(page 21).

[118] He indicated that the biological data did not allow for a determination of
whether the injuries were caused by one person or by several people, claiming they
were compatible with both possibilities "because one person could have acted and
hit at [different] times in a kind of struggle, if we can use the term in quotation
marks; he might have been one person acting alone and that would be compatible, or
it could be with the avvicendamento [joining or alternation] of several people and this
also would work" (page 22).

To a question about the last time the victim would have been able to scream or emit
a loud shout, the consultant replied as follows: "before being hit by the cutting injury
blow", the most important one, which also cut off the airways. While answering
questions from the defence of the accused, he explained he had been shown only one
knife, Exhibit 36, but he had not examined it because it was handled only by police
and he did not perform scientific measurements or examinations. It was enclosed in
a plastic bag and shown to him at a distance of more than a meter.

Answering questions about possible sexual violence, he highlighted that possibly we


would find actual lacerations and much greater bruising [than this] even if the most
serious situations are found in [the case of] minors, while in [the case of] an adult
who has a regular sex life the injuries, even if caused by violent acts, are much
smaller. He also said that in case of group violence the signs are very obvious and
that, in the case at hand, such evident injury signs were absent.

122
Turning to the issue of the time of death and to temperature criteria applicable in
this case, he underlined the uncertainty arising from available elements.
Temperature measurements were made with reference to diverse situations that
didn’t allow for "the inscription in the context of the typical curve of temperature
decrease. The corpse, in fact, from an outside temperature of 13 degrees was moved
to another environment with a temperature of 18 degrees. Even within the room, the
inspection activity [119] and the presence of more people could have altered the
corresponding and relevant framework.

With regard to the stomach contents he indicated the following:

The stomach was not emptied and still contained an abundance of material. In
general, he observed, the stomach takes 2 to 3 hours after eating to empty. He
wanted to stress, however, that this was a subjective indication that may vary
depending on the subject’s condition, as well as on the amount and kind of food
consumed. He also stated that while it takes 2-3 hours for emptying to take place,
‚when it starts the emptying is fairly quick, when food has reached ...that semi-
liquid or fluid aspect... emptying happens quickly‛ (page 32, transcripts).

(D)

The consultant [expert witness] for the civil party, forensic police doctor Professor
Gianaristide Norelli, testified at the hearing of June 5, 2009.

With regard to the time of death, he stressed that the data gathered did not allow
one to express oneself in definitive terms, but gave indications [allowing one] to
place it *the death+ ‚in the late evening, the very late evening of the 1st or the earliest
hours of the morning of the 2nd *of November+, more or less‛ (page 18 of the
transcripts). With regard to the gastric contents, he stressed that this finding could
not be used conveniently to establish the time of death, due to the variability of
digestion times, both from the physiological point of view and because of situations
which may cause variability of these [digestion] times; above all, because of the
impossibility of ascertaining when a meal was actually consumed ‚because it is clear
that if I know for certain when the meal was consumed, then the situation can have
significance with reference to the time of death, but if I don’t know with certainty
that the meal was consumed at a given time or what [kind of] meal was consumed at
that time, it is obvious that I can say very little on the basis of the digestive datum‛.

123
He concluded affirming the impossibility of ‚making a parameter say something
which the parameter is not in a position to say‛.

With reference to the sexual assault, he highlighted the particular complexity [120]
of the case. He pointed out, in this regard, the absence of vaginal lesions or of other
lesions which might point towards a precise diagnosis of sexual assault. He
underlined, however, the presence of small marks in the area of the ‚osteo vaginale‛
(page 19, transcripts). With regard to the outcome of the histological examination
and to the fact that an ecchymotic lesion [bruising] should give evidence of a loss of
blood from the vascular bed which cannot be seen histologically [i.e., at the level of
the cells], he pointed out that it could also be checked whether the area affected by
this ecchymotic extravasation [i.e. loss of blood/fluids from the vessels containing
them towards the outside/exterior] had not been made the sample point for the
histological examination; the aspect, which it was possible to see from the
photographs, also made one think more of an ecchymotic type lesion rather than of a
hypostatic type phenomenon [i.e., where the red blood cells settle and pool after
death+ since ‚they were rather displaced with respect to the hypostatic area, which
should instead have been the lower part‛. Furthermore, he also observed that
‚hypostatic marks have a tendency to be contiguous < it is unlikely that the
hypostatic marks would take the shape of a localized morphological square‛ (page
20 of the transcripts).

He further underlined the presence of a slight bilateral suffusion in the area of the
iliac spines, i.e. in the areas corresponding to the anterior lateral part of the flank,
which represent the end/terminal parts of the wings of the [pelvic] basin and the fact
that ‚lesions in this area are fairly characteristic of seizure *grasping+ and
immobilization‛; *it is+ an area which is ‚highly suggestive‛ in the context of the
investigation of sexual assault.

With regard to the cause of death, Professor Norelli underscored the necessity of
evaluating the case ‚as a continuum, a sequence within which, with various
overlaps, several damaging moments were identified, the most important of which
could be seen to be the asphyxia, which could be established through three distinct
mechanisms.

The first was represented by a mechanism of manual compression, the signs of


which were the ecchymotic type areas situated in the region under the chin and
bilaterally in the area of the neck, and were indicative of the grasping action which
the victim was subjected to (page 27, transcripts).

124
The second was deduced/inferred from the presence of blood in the area of the [121]
airways. It was, in fact, determined histologically that there was blood in the
bronchial branches of the lung, and for this reason inhalation of haematic material
was mentioned: this mechanism is also important, but is secondary with respect to
the other more evident mechanisms of asphyxiation. In fact, when death by
asphyxiation is caused by obstruction of the airways, this obstruction arises from a
notable quantity of blood and an abundant amount of haematic material would be
found in the upper airways; on the contrary, in the upper airways there was a very
scant quantity of blood, and this led [one] to conclude that the said asphyxiation
mechanism was secondary in the dynamic of the death.

The third mechanism is that concerned with compression and obstruction of the
external airways, [and] of the respiratory orifices in particular, and is therefore a
mechanism of suffocation. This was considered to be the most important among the
causes of death: an obstruction of the airways with compression, and associated with
this are the lesions typical of this manoeuvre in the labial area [around the lips], in
the area of the tongue and in the area of the mucous membrane of the lips, with
compression on the dental arches. Therefore a mechanism of obstruction with
compression of the external structures and of the respiratory orifices, which caused
the characteristic asphyxiation lesions, represented by the small sub-conjunctival
haemorrhages, [which are] typical of asphyxiation mechanisms.

An asphyxial cause [of death], therefore, [which was] composed of three


mechanisms: a grasping of the chin and also of the neck, and immobilization; lesions
from a pointed and cutting weapon; and compression and obstruction of the external
airways (page 29 of the transcripts).

(E)

In examining the various wounds, Professor Norelli confronted the problem relative
to the compatibility of the most important wound, the 8cm-long wound, with the
sequestered knife, Exhibit 36. He pointed out , in the first place, that a point [i.e.
stabbing or puncture] and cutting wound [i.e. a wound inflicted by a pointed and
cutting weapon] may have a length greater than the width of the blade because a
pointed and cutting weapon, as it enters and above all when it exits, lengthens the
wound with respect to its width, such that ‚a weapon which has a width of 3 cm
may easily cause an 8cm-wide wound‛ (page 30 of the transcripts). Then, with

125
regard to the [122] alterations present on the sides of the wound that might make
one think of a characteristic of the back of a serrated blade, Professor Norelli
considered that such an explanation was possible, and considered it possible also to
hypothesise a ‚rotation of the weapon < which these traced aspects may have been
caused by‛ (page 31 of the transcripts).

The depth of the wound being less than the width of the blade did not impose an
assessment of incompatibility, since ‚it is not said that a blade is always embedded
[plunged into] the target right up to the handle [literally, to where the blade is
inserted into the handle]; the blade may also go [in] only to a certain portion of its
length, and not right up to its end‛ (page 31).

He excluded, however, compatibility between the sequestered knife (Exhibit 36) and
the 4cm-deep wound inflicted on the right latero-cervical part. In fact, ‚if we
consider the knife in judicial attachment, in order to have a depth of four
centimetres, the wound would have had to be wider than the not even two
centimetres which characterise it‛.

The stabbing and cutting wounds, he observed conclusively on this point, had
caused the haemorrhagic-type mechanism which, however, was overlaid on the
more important asphyxia mechanism; in fact, it could not be held that the young
woman had died because of the haemorrhage; the haemorrhage, however, should be
considered as a joint causal phenomenon.

With reference to the manner in which the wounds on the neck were caused, it was
not possible to establish this since it was possible ‚that there was an active
movement by someone when inflicting the wound; it was possible that there was a
movement of the passive subject who impaled herself on the weapon; it was that
there was a combined movement which made these wounds even more damaging‛
(page 33 of the transcripts). In relation to this, the ‚traditional dynamic of aggression
with a stabbing and cutting weapon‛ where ‚repeated strikes are inflicted with the
aim of killing‛ could not be hypothesised, and in fact, he further observed, ‚the
classic defence wounds on the outer side of the forearm, on the hands‛ were not
found, and this was because *they/we+ were dealing with ‚a situation in which the
stabbing and cutting weapon was not used in the traditional aggressive manner
found in a homicidal dynamic <‛. A situation, therefore ‚which is not the
traditional homicidal dynamic of [123] a stabbing and cutting weapon with
characteristic defence wounds: in this case, if the weapon was not used in the
traditional way, nor can the wounds be traditional defence wounds‛. These were

126
therefore interpreted as being separation/distancing/pushing-away wounds, fairly
scarce, found on the palm of the hand and on the surface of the fingertips. This was
not, therefore, aggressive-type damage/harm with a stabbing and cutting weapon
carried out with the aim of killing the subject in this manner, but aimed at
intimidating in order to force the subject to do things which she did not want to do.

The consultant further pointed out that when a subject struggles and writhes, and
there is the possibility of struggling and writhing, the harm that is suffered is
considerably greater than that found in this case. He pointed out, moreover, that
everything had taken place in an area that was territorially fairly definite; therefore,
the subject had not attempted to escape, to go into other rooms or any such thing. He
also pointed out that there had not been a specific repetitiveness of the action: ‚if a
subject carries out a harming/detrimental/damaging action he/she is compelled to
reiterate the harming/detrimental/damaging action in qualitatively analogous
terms‛; in this case, on the contrary, there had been several harmful actions, *which
had been] reiterated, but [were] each different from the other. All this led to the
conclusion that one single person could not have carried out all the harmful actions
which had occurred in this case.

At the request of the accused’s *masculine, therefore Raffaele’s+ defence team, he *the
consultant] explained that the breaking of the hyoid bone would not allow [the
victim] to scream. He further specified that one and the same knife, smaller than that
of Exhibit 36, could in principle have caused both wounds, that of the larger one on
the left and that of 4 cm depth on the right.

With regard to the time of death, he reaffirmed that it could be situated between
23:00 pm on the 1st and 1:00 am on November 2.

With regard to the state of digestion, he highlighted zones of uncertainty which


would not allow the time of death to be pinpointed. He indicated two to four hours
as being the time required for the stomach to empty, underlining however that the
situations vary in function of the foods, of the type of subject [i.e. of person], and of
possible forms of intolerance for some foods which may be harder to digest than
others.

[124] The temperature is an important criterion because during the first three or four
hours it falls by about half a degree every hour; during the following eight to ten
hours, one degree per hour, and then gradually until homogenization with [i.e., until

127
it reaches the same temperature as] the ambient [temperature]. Even the
temperature, however, may be influenced by very diverse factors and events.

He specified that he had taken all the parameters into consideration and had
examined Dr. Lalli’s report and the report of the expert witnesses.

With regard to the weight, he recalled that the expert witnesses had said that they
had not been able to apply a Henssge nomogram since the young woman’s weight
had not been noted precisely. He highlighted the relevance of the weight in order to
be able to apply the nomogram and specified that in this case he would have applied
a weight of roughly fifty kilograms, considering that this could be the young
woman’s weight, and that if the corpse is weighed this does not correspond to the
weight when alive.

He reaffirmed that he held suffocation would have been the final mechanism,
subsequent to the steel weapon [i.e. knife] lesions, and that the aggressor would
have held the respiratory orifices blocked for the time necessary to cause death, that
is for five or ten minutes.

He could not exclude that all the actions were carried out by one single subject.

He excluded that the suffusion in the area of the iliac spines could have been caused
as a result of falling forwards, because when one falls, in order to have bilaterality
and symmetry, particularly symmetry of the damaging/wounding/harming
configuration [i.e. symmetry in the shape of the lesions], one would have to fall in a
manner absolutely perpendicular to the ground and it was held to be nearly
impossible that such a hypothesis would happen. Furthermore, when one falls,
defensive and instinctive mechanisms come into action which protect one from the
crash/knocks/bumps and which deflect [the impact] and this brings one back,
therefore, to the argument of the limited plausibility of the symmetry of the damage.
In a backwards fall it [i.e., the damage/lesions] would have been absolutely
impossible, given the position of the iliac spines.

The most damaging wound inflicted on the neck would not, in itself, necessarily
have required considerable force. In this regard, he reaffirmed that he could not
interpret it in terms of a typical ‚throat-cutting‛ wound inflicted [125] with a
homicidal intention ‚because it is in a completely different place/area with respect to
those which are *on+ the base of the neck, which are more lateral‛ and consequently,
he further observed, should be considered as ‚two actions which probably were
carried out in this case and do not occur in the traditional throat-cutting lesion and

128
that is the active movement of the subject who inflicts the lesion and the active
movement of the subject who suffers the lesion‛ (page 55, transcripts). He explained
that the wounds in question could not be defined as throat-cutting because this
happens when the [blood] vessels of the neck are cut; the lesion in question, on the
contrary, was a stabbing and cutting lesion.

With regard to the asserted compatibility of the 8cm-deep wound with the
sequestered knife (Exhibit 36) with the 17.5 centimetre-long blade, he noted that ‚if I
insert a centimetre of blade in the knife [sic: of course, it should be: ‚if I insert a 1 cm
of the blade into the victim‛+ and the victim suddenly moves towards me, how
much of the blade will be driven into the inside of the body surface area is absolutely
unpredictable and depends on the action of both‛ (page 57, transcripts).

With regard to the scarce evidence of defence wounds and of lesions indicative of a
sexual assault, he observed that ‚if the subject is not in a position to defend herself in
a determined manner, in a marked manner, in a specific manner, it is clear that the
necessity of grasping her to hold her still is much less with respect to another. Thus,
if we actually had to do a ranking of the assault, while yet remaining in the sphere of
subjectivity, this is one of the reasons for which, personally, I am not convinced that
there was only one person carrying out the combined
damaging/detrimental/wounding action‛ (page 60 of the transcripts).

Concerning the wounds which the victim had on her hands, the consultant
highlighted that these showed no signs of scarring and therefore could not have
arisen earlier, or at any rate more than 12 hours [earlier].
With regard to the dynamism which had caused the death, Professor Norelli further
underlined that ‚throat-cutting is a lesion which typically is manifested due to a
stabbing and cutting weapon or a cutting weapon, in which the action of cutting is
that which plays the most important role and which causes a lesion on the vascular
trunks, that is the carotid and the [126] jugular which pass through the neck.‛ In this
case, the vascular trunks were saved and the weapon was not used to cut but was
plunged into the neck and therefore one could not speak of a throat-cutting lesion.
The action which had caused the death consisted of the asphyxial action which was
carried out manually; the action of the knife had instead caused only a lesion of the
right-hand superior thyroidal artery and had in a certain manner also played a part
in the anaemisation at death, but as an absolutely marginal element (pages 68 and 69
of the transcripts).

129
He also demonstrated the full compatibility with the reconstruction outlined (time of
death and dynamics of this last) of the victim’s loud scream at 23:30 pm. He clarified
that the knife which had caused the 8cm-deep wound must have been suitable to
cause death and moreover the part/area which was struck should be considered
vital.

He indicated, moreover, that it was possible that the blade of the knife might have
met an obstacle[s] such that, even though it was longer than the 8 centimetre depth,
it had inflicted a shallower wound. He made mention, in this regard, of the lesion in
the ortho-larynx region and also indicated another structure which had been
damaged by the passing through of the blade, clarifying how *it was+ ‚that same
oro-pharyngeal structure that was damaged by the blade [which] caused a resistance
*a resisting action+‛. He also observed that even the epiglottis, which was shown to
be injured, exerts a certain resistance. He highlighted, nonetheless, the difference
between a projectile which strikes a bone and stops there, and a blade subjected to
unspecifiable variables. He clarified that the different colouration of the areas which
he had indicated as ecchymoses on the iliac spines with respect to [the colour of]
other ecchymoses/bruises was due to the different cutaneous structure (page 73). He
excluded that the ecchymoses on the iliac spines dated from a few days earlier since,
otherwise, they would already have begun to change colour to yellowish, greenish-
yellow.

(F)

Professor Francesco Introna, forensic pathologist and consultant for Raffaele


Sollecito's defence, testified at the hearing of June 20, 2009.

He stated that he did not participate in the autopsy, and that his consulting activity
was based entirely on the examination of the photographs present in the dossier, the
videos of the autopsy, the videos taken during the inspections, the testimonies of the
other consultants, and the tests contained in the dossier which were relevant to
biological aspects of the case.

He then indicated the points on which he focused his attention in the course of his
own investigation: the time of death, the cause of death, the means of death, the
hypothesis of sexual violence and a possible reconstruction of the course of events.

130
Time of death: In studying this aspect, Professor Introna started from the
established fact that on November 1, 2007 at 21:00 pm, Meredith Kercher was seen
alive for the last time and accompanied home. Towards 13:30 pm her lifeless body
was found, and the first serious attempt at determining the time of death was made
by Dr. Lalli at 00:50 am on November 3rd, a second at 12:00 noon and a third on the
following day, at 10:00 am.

Recalling Dr. Lalli's findings, Professor Introna observed that neither the hypostatic
stains nor the state of rigor mortis could offer useful indications for determining the
time of death. He thus concentrated his attention on the cooling of the corpse and on
the stomach contents, which, he observed, "have great value in forensic medicine,
when analysed correctly, as compared to simple analysis of the hypostasis and the
rigor mortis" (page 10 of the transcripts).

With respect to the cooling, accepting the data supplied by Dr. Lalli at 00:50 am on
November 3, that the surrounding temperature was 13 degrees and the temperature
of the body was 22 degrees, he testified that these data were susceptible to different
interpretation, because of the fact that "the body was found under a duvet" and
because the degree of humidity in the surroundings where the body was found was
unknown. At this point, he recalled the same formula used by Dr. Lalli, Henssge's
nomogram, used with corrective factors. The application of this formula, he
explained, requires knowledge of certain reference values: [128] the ambient
temperature of 13 degrees, the initial body temperature of 37.2 degrees which is
considered standard, the rectal temperature of 22 degrees. It also requires a
corrective factor which takes into account the special conditions in each situation,
which in this particular case consist in the fact that the body was covered by a duvet
and was thus placed in a thermally protected microclimate. The corrective factor of
1.7 used by Dr. Lalli was judged "very high". Then, he observed, the weight of the
body must also be used. Dr. Lalli had guessed at a weight of 55 kilos, obtaining a
Gaussian (bell) curve whose centre indicated the time of 22:50 pm as the most
probable time of death, with the "range of times of death lying between 21:30 pm
and 03:30 am the following day" (page 12 of the transcripts).

With respect to these indications given in Dr. Lalli's report, Professor Introna stated
that Dr. Lalli was not able to weigh the body. He observed that for a girl whose
height was one metre and sixty centimetres, weight tables predict a normal weight of
slightly over the 55 kilos guessed by Dr. Lalli. He also observed that "two kilos more
or two kilos less usually escape attention altogether", but they have a significant
effect in the use of Henssge's nomogram. He added that Meredith Kercher was not a

131
weak, thin girl, and if Dr. Lalli had guessed her weight as 57 kilos rather than 55
kilos, the centre of the Gaussian curve indicating the probable time of death would
have been at 21:50 pm, and if he had entered the value of 56 kilos, it would have
been at 22:20 pm; for 54 kilos it would have been at 23:20 pm.

Professor Introna ended his discussion on this subject by stating that since the actual
weight was not known, the application of Henssge's nomogram pointed at around
22:50 pm as the most probable time of death.

He paid particular attention to the digestive process, preceding his explanations


with the following [129] critical remarks: "the stomach contents represent a concrete
problem...because there are so very many variables, above all at moments of
stress...the analysis of the stomach contents implies technical knowledge, is
physiologically quite difficult, and the results are always open to some doubt..."
(page 15, hearing on June 20, 2009). Professor Introna maintained that in order to
apply these criteria, it was necessary to know the values of certain initial parameters:
the time when the last meal began; whether the stomach had any pathological
problems which might slow down the digestive processes; whether the stomach was
quite full or had already begun to empty itself.

He recalled the data from various testimonies, from which, as he observed, it


emerged that at around 18:00-18:30 pm, Meredith began to eat a homemade pizza
with various toppings (cheese, mozzarella, eggplant and perhaps also onions) and
then ate apple crumble with ice cream. This meal ended at about 20:30 pm, so he
considered that the mealtime lasted from 18:30 to 20:30 pm.

He recalled the reports by Dr. Lalli and the other experts stating that under
macroscopic examination, the stomach contents revealed a piece of apple and floury
fragments which might have been from the crumble or from the pizza. He also
recalled that the emptying of the stomach under standard conditions starts around
three and a half hours after the start of a meal, say between three and four hours
after, and that the term "emptying" indicates the stomach emptying its contents (into
the duodenum). He asserted that "knowing that Meredith's meal started at 18:30 pm,
knowing that there were about 500 cc of stomach contents, and knowing from the
autopsy that there was no pathology of the stomach...which could slow down
digestion, and above all", as reported by Dr. Lalli, knowing that the duodenum was
still empty "because the stomach had not even begun to empty itself" (page 19 of the
transcripts), the time of death must lie between 21:30 pm (three hours after 18:30)
and 22:30 pm (four hours after 18:30), and that this timing agreed with the less rigid

132
data provided by the analysis of the hypostasis, of the rigor mortis and of the body
temperature, considering the uncertainty of the body weight which was guessed
without weighing the body. He also observed [130] that the beginning of the attack
must have been a moment of tremendous stress for Kercher and may have arrested
the digestive process. One could and should obtain a precise indication from this, in
the sense that the stress to which the victim was subjected must have started
between 21:30 pm and 22:30 pm.

Proceeding to an examination of the wounds, he noted the following:

* scraped and bruised areas around the wings of the nose, but these were of little or
no relevance.

* Very small bruised areas around the lips.

He emphasised that death by suffocation "is a death which implies a tremendous


fight between the victim and the attacker" since "no one lets himself be killed
willingly, no one lets himself be suffocated willingly. Suffocation implies the
blocking of the respiratory passages by a strong attacker on a victim who must be
inert for a long time - five or six minutes - until the subject is no longer breathing"
(page 24). This fight between the victim and the attacker is visible during autopsy
"by an enormous region of injuries on and around the inner and outer parts of the
lips. There are fractures or lacerations of the fraenum of the upper lip, which is
unharmed in this case, and fractures or lacerations of the fraenum of the lower lip;
the fraenum is the little flap of tissue attaching the inside of the lip to the gum, which
is extremely easily torn under lateral friction. There are fractures of the dental alveoli
and inward projection of the teeth, and lacerations and contusions on the surface of
the labial mucosa caused by its being pressed against the teeth, but in the present
case, there is nothing of all this", just the tiny scrapes around the nasal orifices, tiny
bruises without even a tear in the lower fraenum, and two tiny bruised areas around
the outer parts of the lips.

He thus excluded the possibility of manual suffocation, contending instead that


there was a brief shutting off of the respiratory passages, probably in order to make
the victim be quiet or stop her from screaming.

Similarly, he excluded that an act of strangling could be recognised. He stated that


strangling "usually implies an attacker much stronger than the victim, who takes the
neck of the victim and blocks the respiratory passages with the hands by an act of
lateral gripping/squeezing". On Kercher's neck there were three small abrasions

133
which could be "the result of a [131] wounding action of the nail of the attacker on
the neck of the victim" (page 25).

As for the infiltrations of blood in the tissues under the abrasions, "they are placed
almost at the centre of the stab wounds" and probably indicate secondary
haemorrhages of the stab wounds rather than a strangling or gripping of the neck.
Thus, according to Professor Introna, the comprehensive picture characterised by
three small nail scratches and some hints of bruising does indicate that the subject
was seized by the neck; however, this seizing could not possibly indicate that death
was caused by strangulation. Nor would it be possible to cite the broken hyoid bone
as an indication of strangulation. Given that the hyoid bone is a very delicate and
very tiny bone and that the external part (the cornu) of the hyoid bone is only
completely ossified from the age of 30, homicide by strangulation implies a lateral
grip on the victim's neck exercised by an attacker who grips the central portion of
the neck. What is broken in such cases are the cornua of the hyoid bone in their
posterior portions, but never the main body of the hyoid bone, which is anterior. In
the present case, however, there was an oblique fracture of the central portions
which was described as a clean break, slanted from from the back to the front, from
the left to the right and from the lower part to the upper part. Consequently, it must
be excluded that what happened to the hyoid bone could have been an effect of
death due to asphyxiation by strangulation.

Professor Introna maintained, however, that the neck was seized within the context
of a harmful dynamic during which the respiratory passages were blocked, the neck
was gripped and the victim was stabbed.

He noted the presence of five bruises underneath the jaw. These bruises could not be
considered as belonging to a moment of intentional strangulation, since "someone
who wants to choke or strangle presses on the central part of the neck where the
respiratory passages are, not the part underneath the jaw; this has another purpose,
that of holding the subject". These bruises are so slight as to be scarcely visible (page
28 of the transcripts), indicating a momentary choking off of the victim's respiratory
passages by seizing [132] her neck, without this act representing an attempt at
strangulation.

The victim also had injuries inflicted by a cutting instrument; a large stab wound in
the left part of the neck and a second, smaller stab wound whose path crossed the
path of the larger wound.

134
Dr. Lalli had described the path of the wound as being from left to right, upwards,
and back to front; the same inclination as the fracture of the hyoid bone. The path of
the wound stopped there, and the blade entered entirely into this wound, and there
was a harmful interaction between the attacker and the victim due to the persistence
of the attacker with the knife stuck into the neck and the movements made by the
victim trying to free herself from it.

The second stab wound was much smaller, with a path that crossed the larger
wound. He noted the presence of a reddish, scraped area, indicative of the fact that
"there was an impact on this region of skin by the near part of the handle of the
knife, and," he emphasised, "this is the sign that the knife blade penetrated
completely" (page 31 of the transcripts). He added that "on the other hand, it makes
absolutely no sense during a fatal attack...for the blade to be thrust only partially into
the wound as if it were some kind of game. When an attacker strikes in order to kill,
he strikes completely and with all the strength he has, and that means that the blade
entered completely." The abrasions were present only around the lower edge of the
wound, and this indicated that what caused the abrasions was the impact against the
skin of the lower edge of the knife handle, and thus, as described by Dr. Lalli, the
path of the wounds must necessarily incline upwards. If the blade had entered
perpendicularly to the skin, we could have expected scrape marks on both edges of
the wound. And furthermore, the penetration must have been by the complete blade
of a length of at most 8-9 cm: "If the blade had been longer, it would have gone
through the neck and come out the back and there would have been an exit wound
from the blade in front of the hyoid bone; the hyoid bone is not a suitable structure
[133] to stop the path of a knife...the hyoid bone is so easily broken and so small, so
important but still so fragile that it could not possibly stop the thrust of a knife blade
or a knife point. So the knife actually sectioned the hyoid bone, which means that
this wound, the main wound in the left part of the neck, was caused by a knife with
a 9cm blade" (pages 31-32, hearing on June 20, 2009).

The stab wound corresponding to the injuries on the right side of the neck was
indicated as being a little wound of very small dimensions with a very small path.
The path of the wound is 4cm long and only 1.5cm wide. The blade used to make
this wound must have had a width of 1.5cm at 4cm from the point. This blade only
entered 4cm into the neck "because it encountered the angle of the jaw" (page 33 of
the transcripts).

135
There was another small wound on the left cheek; this was a tiny wound which
could have been caused by the point of a knife simply to threaten the victim at some
moment of the attack.

A knife of the brand Marietti Stiles was then shown to the consultant; a knife of a
total length of 31.2cm with a single-edged blade of length 17.5cm; a knife which had
the same characteristics as the sequestered knife identified as Exhibit 36.

Recalling the circumstances explaining why the wound on the left side of the neck
was 8-9 cm long, and the fact that "at the edge of the wound was the sign of the
entrance, of the impact of the nearest part of the handle of the knife against the skin
which tells us that the knife blade entered completely into the wound and that the
wound is thus an exact [mirror] image of the length of the blade", Professor Introna
excluded that a knife with the given characteristics could be compatible with the said
wound. He added that it was also impossible that such a knife could have
determined "the injury on the left side of the neck, since this one must have been
caused by a knife with a blade at most 8-9 cm long and 1.5cm wide at a distance of
4cm from the tip, with a regular and homogeneous spine" (page 36).

[134] He then proceeded to describe the two bruised areas present on the left elbow
of the victim, and with regard to these, he stated that these were not marks caused
by restraining, but hypostatic stains. But since he could not absolutely exclude that
they might be bruises stemming from an effort of the victim to defend herself, he
noted that the fact that they were present only on the left forearm at the level of the
elbow would mean that the forearm remained free, making it difficult to attribute
the bruises to the fact of having been restrained.

The injuries around the pelvis, described as extremely slight, and around the iliac
crest, could absolutely not be considered contemporaneous with the other bruises
present on the body, since they had a different colouring.

He also mentioned bruising infiltrations on the scalp at the occiput.

As for the wounds on the right and left hands of the victim, Professor Introna
expressed strong doubts about the fact that these might be defence wounds. The
wounds are extremely tiny, whereas defence wounds are wounds caused by an
instinctive action by which the victim being stabbed stops the blade of the knife with
the hand and thus suffers enormous cuts. He advance the hypothesis that the victim
had received the wounds to the hands by falling onto all fours and encountering tiny
fragments of glass on the floor, and in regard to this, he noted that during the

136
inspection, the video of the Scientific Police showed a fragment of glass near a
footprint.

Sexual assault: The only signs of this were three small scrapes at the vaginal
entrance. He advanced the hypothesis that Meredith Kercher was the object of
"digital penetration...but the state of the body does not allow us to say whether this
digital penetration was long, protracted, non-consensual, unwanted" (page 46 of the
transcripts), even if, as he added, the very presence of scrapes and bruises do
indicate [135] a lack of consent since otherwise there would be neither scrapes nor
bruises. He concluded his arguments on this subject in the following terms: "The
injured regions of the vagina or rather, outside the vagina...indicate a violent action
exercises with the hands on the portion exterior to the vagina, the vaginal vestibule"
(page 47 of the transcripts).

He also stated that the action was that of a single attacker. Firstly, he stated this by
taking into consideration the size of the room in which the entire episode took place
and the presence of furniture in the room. He stated that the free space was very
small, so that "there was no possibility for three attackers to have accomplished the
homicide together" with the girl in the position where her body was subsequently
found (page 52 of the transcripts).

(G)

He described the action which caused the death of the girl in the following terms: the
victim was seized by the neck, and by the mouth, closing off her respiratory orifices,
and stabbed. Death occurred by haemorrhage and by asphyxiation due to the
inhalation of her own blood, and by the breaking of the hyoid bone with consequent
dysphonia, dysphagia and dyspnea (page 52). Thus, a double asphyxiation
represented by the collapse of the laryngeal function and the inhalation of the
subject's own blood. The inhalation probably lasted around ten minutes (according
to what could be inferred from the fact that at the alveolar level a concentration of
particular cells was found microscopically), and thus the death throes of the subject
from the moment of the stabbing which caused the largest wound lasted at most
fifteen minutes, followed by death.

He excluded the presence of injuries due to gripping or seizing, as only banal


contusions were found, and these were not specific and not necessarily attributable

137
to a sexual activity without the consent of the subject consisting in a violent digital
rape of the vagina (page 53).

[136] In answer to a specific question posed by Raffaele Sollecito's defence, he


declared having seen the photos of Rudy Guede's hands sent by the German police,
in which signs of "healing of the skin in a very advanced stage...of tiny scratches
which were present on the little finger of the right hand, the second phalange of the
middle finger of the right hand and the palm of the right hand" (page 54), all injuries
compatible with inflicting a knife wound with the right hand.

In response to further questions, also during the cross-examination, Professor


Introna stated that if Meredith weighed 52 kilos, then Henssge's nomogram would
indicate the time of death as 24:20 pm, whereas if she weighed 53 kilos it would be
indicated as 23:50 pm. He also stated that the correction factor of 1.7 was near the
maximum.

With respect to the stomach contents, he clarified that he took the start of the meal as
a parameter and never the end, "because at the start of a meal, the first bolus arrives
in the stomach, starts to be attacked by the gastric juices and will be the first chyme
to pass the pyloric sphincter into the duodenum. The stomach does not wait for the
last mouthful before starting digestion; the stomach starts the digestive process from
the first mouthful" (page 82 of the transcripts). According to the data reported by Dr.
Lalli, the duodenum was empty and the stomach contained 500 cc and thus "the
stomach at the moment of the attack still held all of the gastric contents and had not
even begun to empty" (page 83).

He reaffirmed that the sequestered knife (Exhibit 36) was not compatible with the
main wound, both because of the bruising showing that the blade had entered
completely, and because an attacker with homicidal intentions stabs with all of his
strength.

He reaffirmed that the homicidal intentions could be inferred from the repetition of
the blows, and on this aspect he explained that on the epiglottis there were "two
parallel injuries which indicated that the knife made two stabbing motions, two
actual cuts from the same large stab; this is the repetition" (page 92). With respect to
this, he recalled what had been described as a "visible irregular cut [cincischiamento]
[137] made by the weapon in the neck of the subject caused by the aggressive
movements of the attacker and the movements of retraction and disengagement of
the victim. This interaction created the three, at least three different cuts created by

138
the one stab...the third one being the one which is also due to the confluence of the
lesser wound with the greater one on the other side, as the two actually come
together..." (page 93 of the transcripts).

He explained that the piece of glass was placed near the feet of the victim.

With respect to the piece of mushroom mentioned in the consulting report of Dr.
Lalli, he advanced two hypotheses. One was that upon arriving home, the victim
had already completely digested the pizza and ate something else with mushrooms;
this hypothesis is, however, not acceptable because there was only a single
mushroom and also because of the fact that pieces of apple could be distinguished in
the stomach contents, indicating that they came from the victim's first meal. The
second hypothesis was that in the pizza, there was also a mushroom. He recalled
that Dr. Lalli had indicated the victim's weight as 50 kilos, whereas by Henssge's
nomogram one could hypothesise that her weight was nearer to 55 kilos.

He explained the presence of small spots inside the eyelids by the fact of death by
asphyxiation, which, as he had already explained, depended on the mechanism of
the attack consisting in being seized by the neck while the respiratory orifices were
blocked, not for the purpose of suffocation but in order to prevent the victim from
screaming, followed by stabbing, probably after the manual rape. The stabbings of
the victim would have occurred very quickly from the right and from the left with
the breaking of the hyoid bone and injuries to the upper thyroid artery. This
stabbing caused an arterial haemorrhage which constituted the primary cause of
death, which would also have been caused by the inhalation of blood protracted to
such a point that the extent of the macrophages at the level of the alveoli filled with
blood was significant enough to justify a long agony, of around ten minutes. "Thus,
the inhalation of her own blood as an asphyxiating medium and above all great
difficulty in breathing"; on the breaking of the hyoid bone: "my larynx opens, I have
a closure of the laryngeal inlet, a closure of the respiratory paths, I have [138]
dysphonia, I can no longer speak, my vocal cords are no longer extended, I cannot
scream, I can't breathe any more or at best with difficulty since I can only breathe
through the laryngeal dead space and I slowly die of asphyxiation" (page 117 of the
transcripts).

He reaffirmed that the scrapes underneath the most important wound was caused
by the impact of the handle of the knife on the skin, a knife which must thus have
sunk the entire length of its blade perpendicularly in.

139
As for the possibility that the effect of stress on the victim had stopped the gastric
emptying [of the stomach], he stated that "in the literature it is absolutely not said
that stressful events correspond to blockage of the gastric emptying; it is possible
that it corresponds to nothing, a slight lateness in emptying, blockage of the
emptying...Hypothesising...that the gastric emptying was never actually
inhibited...and that the gastric emptying was in fact normal, then that would mean
that it was not the acute stress which occurred between 21:30 and 22:30 but death
which occurred between 21:30 and 22:30" (page 123 of the transcripts).

(H)

During the course of the hearing therefore, as an experiment, a reconstruction of the


dynamic of the act of the murder on the basis of the indications of the expert witness
Professor Introna was proceeded with.

It was therefore hypothesised that the victim gets undressed; she is naked from the
pelvis down. The aggressor arrives from behind, already armed. The victim is not
seized, her airways are closed, and this accounts for the minimal abrasions found at
the level of the nose and the minimal bruising found at the level of the mouth.

The aggressor blocks the airways so that she cannot scream. He then proceeds to an
attack on the neck, immobilising it and inflicting on her the bruises and the abrasions
present on the neck; then he frees his right hand and ‚attempts to finger her because
she is without panties and he throws her down into a position on all fours. At this
point the victim is overpowered and he passes on to the damaging action, he pulls
back the victim’s head, grasping it by the edge of her jaw, the three bruises which we
notice under the jaw: he pulls her head and stabs her on the left. The victim reacts
because the blow she has received is serious but it is not immediately fatal; [139] she
moves, we have the repetition of the injury; the head escapes from the grip under the
jaw; a second stab, with the cut which stops against the angle of the jaw. At this
point we have the injury to the hyoid bone; the victim can no longer speak, she
cannot scream any longer, she is bleeding from an arterial wound, she is no longer
breathing and she falls. She strikes her head in the occipital seat, turned around
automatically by the attacker, who was holding her towards the right‛. In this
manner, observed Professor Introna, "we have recreated all the injuries which we
have described, including those to the hands, obviously hypothesising that there was
glass in the areas where [the hands] were balancing" (pages 128 and 129).

140
He specified that the bra had been cut after the victim had suffered an injury;
otherwise there would not have been blood on the outside of the bra cups. He added
that the attacker must have pulled the back strap11 of the bra ‚because if he had
slipped the knife under the fastener we would have found cutting injuries
corresponding to the fastener of the bra ... This forced action also determined that
deformation of the hook. He inserted the knife and cut it, the same [way] as the
straps, why cut and not torn? The bra straps are extremely strong ... the bra straps
were cut near the bra fastener and the bra was removed when the body was already
on the floor face down‛ (page132).

As for the breaking of the hyoid bone, this would have taken place ‚in the moment
when the victim is in an all fours position on the floor – we have the victim already
wounded in the face, the subject cut off her bra from the back, there are some moments which
escape us, which could have been the recognising of the aggressor ...words spoken...12 – the
aggressor moves from the attempt at violence to the murder and stabs the victim,
who is now on the floor, with the knife held in dagger fashion. He raises her head,
bruises under the jaw, he stretches her neck and stabs her ... This is the major injury,
there is a movement of interaction between victim and attacker, the back of the blade
is to the front as everyone has said, the edge of the blade, the cutting edge of the
blade is to the back, in this moment there is the cut which affects the pharynx, the
larynx, the cartilage of the epiglottis and the body of the hyoid bone, which
fractures. The subject reacts and is still jammed against the thorax of the victim who
is above him (her)13 and who continues to be stabbed with the knife grasped in the
same manner, so that the back of the blade corresponds [140] with a cut that goes
backwards, directed from the right towards the left and which stops in
correspondence with the angle of the jaw to the right.

[This is] a small and short cut [tramite], which severs the upper thyroid artery. At
this point the victim can no longer breathe, she is defenceless, seconds before she has
already been struck in the hyoid bone, the subject gets up, the victim falls and
knocks her head in the occipital region as we then find her, even if [she has been]
moved‛ (pages 133 and 134).

With reference to the wound depth [tramite] of 8 centimetres, he recalled that it had
been described by Dr. Lalli *while+ doing the autopsy and ‚at a certain point when

11
The word fascia designates the back strap with the fastener, while bretelline are the shoulder straps
12
Original text is in italic
13
This misstatement is in the original quoted transcript of prof. Introna‟s words (saying “victim”
when he meant “aggressor”?).

141
they are doing the sectioning of the upper respiratory ways, Lalli says that the body
of the hyoid bone is affected by the cut. He says this and then does not record it in
his report, but on the soundtrack of the film of the autopsy it can be heard perfectly,
body of the hyoid bone affected by the cut‛ (page 137).

To the question with which it was asked whether at one moment the attacker would
have to have had both hands involved with the bra since he was pulling with one
and cutting with the other, Prof Introna replied claiming that the victim, in spite of
this, could not get free since ‚the aggressor had overcome the victim, the victim was
immobilised by the aggressor, by the legs of the attacker ... She was on the floor ...
He further affirmed that the aggressor had intervened in the victim’s room with
sexual aims and he had the knife to threaten .

The cutting of the straps, he reaffirmed, would have been undertaken from the back,
with the aggressor on the victim who is on the floor on hands and knees ... he pulls
the bra, he cuts the bra which, nonetheless, remains because the bra is however
covered at the level of the shoulders by two cotton t-shirts which the victim was
wearing; it doesn’t fall off on its own; a bra cut from the fastener of the straps must
be taken off from the front, which will happen after (page 154).

(I)

Forensic pathologist Professor Carlo Torre, consultant for the defence of Amanda
Knox, testified at the hearing of July 3, 2009.

He stated that he had not been able to attend the autopsy, but qualified the
documentation from the autopsy as excellent, and specified that he had been able to
examine and participate [141] in the various hearings of the trial on aspects
concerning forensic pathology. He began his explanations by discussing the cause of
death. He gave testimony on the presence of injuries concentrated on the neck
region, with three knife wounds and "traces suggesting a constriction of the neck"
(page 7 of transcriptions). He gave evidence of the fact that "white foam...known as a
foamy mushroom" emerged from the main wound, and explained that this was "a
foam which is formed in the lungs, in the bronchi, in cases of asphyxiation, in
particular when this asphyxiation is produced by inhalation of a liquid, but also in
cases of strangulation or choking" (page 7). Another sign of asphyxiation was
indicated as being the fine spots on the inner eyelids. He stated that "both a

142
haemorrhagic mechanism and an asphyxiative mechanism participated in or caused
this death" (page 8), and maintained that the asphyxiative mechanism had a double
cause: abundant inhalation of blood into the respiratory passages, as in a sort of
drowning, and constriction of the neck.

On the subject of the time of survival [after the wounds], he limited himself to
asserting that the presence of spotting indicated a time of survival of at least two
minutes from the start of the asphyxiative action (page 9). He attributed the cause of
death to the double mechanism of haemorrhage and asphyxiation.

He recalled that there were three wounds from a cutting instrument, and stated that
the paths [tramite] of these wounds were all essentially similar in direction; with
respect to the body, they all went from left to right, upwards, and towards the back.
He also stated that in the major wound, apart from a very clear print of the edge of
the blade - the wound was 8cm wide and 8cm deep - there were two very obvious
additional incisions which signified that the blade of the knife went in, came out,
went in and came out, two or three times, making the first secondary cut on its way
back in and the second one on its way back in again. He emphasised that the
insistence of the knife inside this wound, apart from the fact that it was manifestly
and unequivocally proven by the presence of the secondary incisions, was also
confirmed by ‚the examination [142] of the internal injury caused to the muscles and
viscera of that region of the neck that were completely mangled; it is impossible that
a single stab could have determined this set of lesions, causing the muscles to retract;
this is case in which someone went back and forth with that knife in the wound for
8cm" (page 14 of the transcripts).

Professor Torre interpreted the wound underneath the main wound as having been
produced by a dragging action of the point of the blade of the knife, and by a little
prick probably determined by a movement of the victim's neck.

On the third wound, inflicted on the other side of the neck, Professor Torre gave
evidence that the wound encountered the solid bone of the jaw, a very robust bone
which had blocked the knife from going deeper.

He then considered the knife identified as Exhibit 36: this is a knife whose blade is
17.5 cm in length, with a thickness of 1 - 1.5 mm everywhere, and a maximum height
of 3 cm. He excluded the compatibility of this knife with the last-mentioned wound

143
above because of its dimensions; one centimetre, or [maybe] even one centimetre
point 2 [millimetres]14, and a depth of 4 centimetres.

He also maintained that the same small knife [coltellino15] which made this wound of
4cm in depth may have caused the more serious wound of 8cm in depth "by sawing
back and forth, mangling the deep tissues, and this made the wound that it could
make, namely an 8cm wound" (page 17 of the transcripts).

The main wound - the 8cm one - could not have been caused by the sequestered
knife (item 36), because in that region "there is nothing resistant, only the hyoid bone
which is just a fragile little thing... [è roba proprio da poco]". Thus, not encountering
any resistant structures, especially during an insistent action, the use of a knife with
a blade 17cm long would "certainly have gone right through the neck" (page 17).

[143] Also the other wounds could be absolutely compatible with a pocket knife with
a blade 8cm in length and 1cm or 1.5cm in height.

The deep abrasions under the main wound could have been caused by a strong
fingernail: "fingernails", he observed, "can produce deep scratches with half-moon
shapes like these" (page 19).

The injuries on the mouth and nose he interpreted as bruises due to compression: a
hand and fingers placed on a mouth with the goal of silencing it; this was a sign of
the neck having been held.

It did not seem likely that the injury to the left elbow could be caused by grasping,
since it is not particularly meaningful to grasp someone by the elbows. It could have
been caused by a bump.

The bruises on the iliac crest appeared difficult to see, and with a different colouring,
and did not yield any positive information about their nature or significance.

As for the wounds on the hands of the victim, the consultant Professor Torre gave
evidence of the smallness of these wounds. This smallness could not be explained by
the fact that the girl had been restrained, since if one is restrained it is not the case
that one is only slightly wounded; one is not wounded at all. He also observed that if
one is faced with a knife having a large and long blade, then defence wounds - due
to an action of holding off the blade which would be easy to grab due to its large size
- should be quite large. He maintained that "these very tiny wounds are compatible

14
Between 1cm and 1.2 cm
15
Coltellino, “a small knife”, e.g., a pocket knife

144
with pricking by a small knife or with the serrated spine of the blade of a small
knife" (page 24).

As for the dynamic of the crime, he held a stabbing from the front to be more likely
than a stabbing from behind as Professor Introna hypothesised; above all because of
the traces and squirts of blood which were left in the room.

On the subject of the main wound, he emphasised that the region concerned by this
wound is a "zone consisting of soft parts, containing the little hyoid bone", which,
[144] he indicated, would be "insignificant in terms of being able to stop the blade of
a knife". He reaffirmed that it was "incomprehensible that such a long knife would
not have made a deeper wound, because the repeated stabs suggest an intensity of
violence; Professor Introna suggested, and he may be right, that the scrapes under
the main wound...could be due to encountering the end of the blade, and perhaps
the scrape was even left by the finger grasping that blade, meaning that the blade
went completely in" (page 34 of the transcriptions).

As for the hyoid bone, Professor Torre expressed perplexity in determining whether
"the hyoid bone was fractured by a manual strangulation or by the knife". But,
hearing the comment by Dr. Lalli during the filming of the autopsy, who said when
describing the wound: "the path passes through the hyoid bone which is severed", he
leaned towards that hypothesis, although noting that "actually cleanly severing a
bone is not easy" (page 34).

As for the bruises on the nape, Professor Torre emphasised their importance,
maintaining that they were "due to bumping into a flat surface, but not from a fall by
a standing person, because if I'm standing and I fall down and hit my head from
behind, I will easily get a wound of laceration-contusion type [una ferita lacero
contusa]; but if I am already sitting or leaning back, I hit the ground and get exactly
that beautiful bruise in the region of the nape, and this is the other element
which...indicates to me an action from the front" (page 36).

The consultant held it to be possible that the victim might have screamed, observing
that "if I see a person in my house I could very well scream; a hand placed on my
mouth could prevent me from screaming, and likewise a wound like the one on the
neck..." (page 38).

He maintained that "in any case there is nothing there which could lead me to think
that there was more than one attacker" (page 43).

145
As for the compatibility of the wounds with the sequestered knife, Exhibit 36, which
was the object of further questions [posed to the consultant], he stated that whereas
in the case of the smaller wound there was absolute material incompatibility, with
regard to the larger wound it could not be excluded that it could have been caused
by that knife, but no more so than by [145] a myriad of other knives. He did,
however, specify that that knife was compatible with the morphology of the wound
but not with the depth of the path of the wound, since "with a knife with that cutting
edge and that length, it would be impossible for it to have entered so little, because
in that region of the neck it would only encounter soft parts" (page 45), and
moreover there had been "a back and forth motion of the knife... someone who
tenaciously persists in pushing in a knife yet never goes in deeper even after three
tries, but stops at a depth of 8cm every time..."

On the abovementioned subject of the presence of three different paths within the
same wound, indicating that the knife entered three times, the consultant gave the
following explanation: "I say that the internal parts of this wound are very chewed
up; if I was seeing just one stab into the interior of that muscular system, I would see
sliced muscles, but here, having gone back and forth several times, I say three times
because I say that one time was the initial stab, then an extraction and a re-
penetration making a new incision, I say three times because it's all mangled and
there are three incisions of the cutting edge of the knife so I imagine they correspond
to three paths...On the photo one does not see three incisions...it is a little risky to say
that number. But inside, it is clear that this is not a wound from a single stab, there
are strands of muscle [lacinie muscolari] all over the place; this is a wound inside
which one seems to perceive another wound; but above all, examining the surfaces
of the edge of the wound I have this...I have this principal cut which is this one here,
when the knife penetrates, its cutting edge makes this very clear incision, and when I
penetrate again or pull it out or insert it, I make these secondary injuries with the
blade, meaning that the cutting edge of the blade went in and out several times,
because if it hadn't, it would be impossible to have these different secondary
incisions clearly left by the cutting edge of the blade" (page 79). The wound 4cm
deep has a single path in contrast: "the incision caused by the cutting edge of the
blade is very clean..."

He explained the difference between the dynamics of the two wounds by the fact
that while the 4cm wound encountered the jawbone, in the other part of the neck no
such obstruction was encountered and there was a persistent action. He considered
it to be possible that during this persistent activity, the victim may have [146] "made

146
some head-turning movements". He did not exclude that through these rotations the
victim may have caused the ‚mangling‛ that Professor Torre explained by the
hypothesis of three penetrations, but in that case, he observed, "we have to imagine a
stabber holding the knife immobile and a head which is moving around in that
direction; it seems more reasonable to me altogether to imagine the action of a hand
stabbing" (page 80 of the transcripts).

(J)
Professor Vinci testified at the hearing of August 18, 2009. He considered the subject
of the "bloody stains" found on the undersheet in Meredith Kercher's room. In
relation to these stains, on the basis of graphics given in the report dated June 30,
2009, he asserted that the knifeprint found on the undersheet in Meredith's bedroom
could have been made either by an 11.3cm knife blade, or by a 9.6cm knife blade
together with a mark 1.7cm long left by the handle of the same knife. In either case,
the blade could not be wider than 1.3/1.4 cm.

He emphasised that all the wounds inflicted by a cutting instrument would be


compatible with a single knife.

(K)

At the hearing of September 18, 2009, Professor Vinci was heard. He also dealt with
the aspect relative to these ‚haematic stains‛ found on the mattress cover in the
bedroom of Meredith Kercher and in relation to them, on the basis of graphic
elaborations which he reported in the statement given on June 30, 2009, he affirmed
that the prints found on the mattress cover found in the bedroom of Meredith
Kercher could have been in relation to the dual placing of the blade of a knife 11.3
centimetres long, or of a knife blade 9.6 centimetres long and with a section width (of
1.7 centimetres) at the top of the same knife.

In each case the blade must have had a maximum width of 1.3 / 1.4 centimetres. He
stressed as well that all the wounds of a stabbing and cutting weapon were
compatible with the use of a single knife.

147
(L)
At the hearing of September 19, 2009 the experts appointed by the judge (GIP) at the
sitting of the preliminary hearing were heard: Professor Anna Aprile. Professor
Mario Cingolani, Professor Giancarlo Umani Ronchi.

Professor Umani Ronchi stated that he had dealt with in particular the problem
relative to the time of death, taking into account what had been established by Dr.
Lalli, and the gastric content. He claimed that the gastric content, which came to the
examination of the experts, was about 200 cubic centimetres; that indicated by Dr.
Lalli’s report was 500 cubic centimetres. This gastric content was essentially made up
of digested matter and not distinguishable as much as concerns a part which Dr.
Lalli had recognised as shortcrust pastry and as mozzarella [cheese]; a part was
however more clearly distinguishable and recognisable as slices of apple.

[147] He noted that from the witness depositions it had emerged that the victim had
consumed various foods (pizza with mozzarella cheese, ice cream and apple cake)
and had consumed various drinks, but not alcoholic drinks. He specified that gastric
digestion is very much debatable insofar as time is concerned. The presence of 500
cubic centimetres of material in the stomach meant that a large part of the stomach
had not emptied. He could not, however, say whether it had partially emptied. On
this particular point he specified as follows: ‚It is true that the duodenum was
empty; however, it is also true that there was some alimentary content before the
ileoececal valve, alimentary content which is defined as digested ... that of the
stomach was also digested for the most part and since the examination performed by
the person who carried out the autopsy does not appear to have been conducted
according to the prescribed techniques of forensic pathology, i.e., the ligature of the
various segments etc. ... usually ligatures are done to see how far food has reached to
prevent the passage<of any ingested food into lower zones during the lifting up
and turning over of the intestinal ansae loops‛ (page 21 of the transcripts).

He further stressed that precise indications which would enable specification of the
time needed for the alimentary material to reach the ileoececal valve did not exist
and that this was because digestion is determined by a whole series of conditions
which are absolutely individual and which are not consistent, even for the same
person. However, it can take three, four, five hours for the stomach to empty,
although it could also take much, much longer (page 22, the hearing of September
19, 2009).

148
He also added that, since ligatures had not been made, a certain downward slide
could have occurred.

As far as the time necessary for gastric emptying, he stated that three or four hours
could be necessary, or even more, such as five or six (page 24); under standard
conditions, the time would be four or five hours, or even three. In this regard, he
mentioned what was contained in the expert report (ordered by the preliminary
hearings judge (GIP), acquired by the Court and admissible) on pages 44 and 45.

[148] He specified that three or four hours after consuming a meal, ‚there should
already be some material in the duodenum ... and that it still should not have passed
down‛ (page 38 of the transcripts).

He confirmed that the time of death, on the basis of the elements available, should be
indicated as having occurred from twenty to thirty hours before 12:50 am on
November 3, 2007; thus between 20:50 pm on November 1 and 04:50 am on
November 2. He did not remember whether traces of mushrooms had been found.
He confirmed the difficulty of using digestion as a parameter for deriving an exact
time of death.

He further specified that the three or four hours needed for digestion and for the
stomach to empty should be understood as beginning to take effect, so to speak,
when eating begins.

As far as the knife which had been seized, Exhibit 36, he declared that he had seen
this knife, but from a certain distance, without holding it in his hand or gauging its
weight. He had not seen the streaks. He recalled the opinion expressed in the expert
report where the absence of significant elements to establish whether one or more
than one knife had been used was affirmed, "the only possible judgement being that
of the non-incompatibility of the wounds with the knife under judicial seizure‛, an
opinion that he confirmed. In this regard, he stated that the judgement of non-
incompatibility had been based on the fact that the knife was single-bladed; ‚as far
as the discussion about the length of the blade, of the width of the blade, etc. ... we
recalled that compatibility can hardly be established from the length and the width
of the blade for one very simple reason: because of the human factor ... of the person
who has the weapon in hand to exert the pressure, the direction ... the going
backwards and forwards...‛ (page 60).

Following relevant questions by the defence for Raffaele Sollecito regarding the
gastric content, he explained that there had been a whole series of hypotheses

149
‚because unfortunately concrete elements were missing‛ (page 68); on the possibility
that a sliding of the food from the duodenum to lower parts had occurred, he
specified that it was not easy to hypothesise that the examination had taken place in
such a way as to avoid that such an eventuality had been detected (‚because the
[149] intestinal skein is a skein and therefore at a certain point it is necessary to pull
on it to open it..." page 69); in this regard he testified to the presence of alimentary
residuals in the small intestine.

With regard to the time of death, he confirmed the range indicated in the expert
report and noted that the hypostatic stains did not allow the reduction of this range
because they had been identified too late; the only datum which had been noted
quite early was that of the rigidity of the foot, but that alone, without considering the
rigidity of the other joints of the body, could not be considered a significant element
to apply the criterion of rigor mortis‛, also because the foot was on the outside with
respect to the blanket which was covering the victim. Henssge’s nomogram could
not provide sure indications because it ‚requires that the temperature be constant
over time. If there are variations in the ambient temperature, this leads to situations
which are not what we would call reliable‛.

Prof Cingolani was then heard during the same hearing.

He declared that the available written and computerised material had been used to
draw up the report. They were also able to view some of the histological specimens
described in the report of Dr. Lalli and 200 cubic centimetres of the gastric content
out of the 500 indicated by Dr. Lalli as present in the stomach. He mentioned,
moreover, that they had had access to a container in which there was some blood, on
which toxicological investigations were then conducted at the Laboratory of the
Institute of Forensic Medicine of Macerata, as well as on parts of the gastric content
and on a part of the frozen liver.

As far as the cause of death was concerned - although he testified that the fact of
having worked on the documentation and not directly on the body did imply some
limits to the investigation and the analyses – he stressed that the lesions which
appeared significant and important were those located around the region of the neck
and the orifices, that is the mouth and the nose, and they were wounds which were
partly contusive. But above all, there were three fundamental lesions which had the
characteristics of stabbing and cutting wounds, all three penetrative, two more so
and one less. Two had the cuts [150] substantially on top of one another or

150
intersecting, and they were to the left of the median line of the neck; the third was to
the right.

He referred as well to the presence of tiny spots under the serous membrane and
under the eyelids, which he indicated as possible elements identifying asphyxiation.

He also mentioned the pulmonary profile, which alternated zones of thickening and
zones of emphysema: this also, he observed, was coherent with a possible death by
asphyxia.

The largest lesion was on the left and high up, in correspondence with the zone
below the jaw-bone, and inserted into the organs of the neck, and from the
examination carried out in the established preparation it was observed that ‚it
crossed or damaged the anterior surface of the epiglottis ... and it disappeared in the
right wall of the oropharynx ... this was the largest lesion: it did not affect any large...
vascular structure of the neck; however, it affected the interior of the muscles and
affected the airways ... the depth of the cut was 8 centimetres‛; he added that ‚the
superficial lesion was very relevant‛. This circumstance was not of much
importance, however, since it could have been caused by a weapon ‚positioned in a
very oblique manner in respect to the surface of the skin...‛ (page 86 of the
transcripts).

A little lower, in the mid-cervical region, another stabbing or cutting lesion was
present, with a cut 4 centimetres long, and this reached and affected the upper
thyroid artery. Then there was a series of contusive lesions in the [lower jaw area]
and small contusive lesions on [note: or near] the internal mucosa of the lips.

On the basis of the total picture, the cause of death was identified in the coming
together of two elements: asphyxia and haemorrhagic factor.

The asphyxia was traced back ‚in part to the mechanical activity exercised in
correspondence with the neck and with the breathing orifices and in part also to
what in nosographic terms is defined as internal submersion, connected, that is, with
pulmonary aspiration of blood, originating in this case from the lesions produced,
and this clearly emerged from part of the histological picture‛ that showed ‚areas of
alveoli full of haematic material‛ (page 87 of the transcripts).

[151] On the point regarding compatibility of the wounds with the knife Exhibit 36,
he affirmed that this had to be ruled out for the lesion on the right, 4 centimetres
deep and 1.4 centimetres wide, and recalling the assessments made on pages 47 and

151
48 of the report, he stated that at 4 centimetres from the point of the blade, the blade
is wider by 1.5 centimetres, and therefore a blade of those dimensions penetrating
for 4 centimetres would have had to cause a bigger ‚breach‛; therefore it could not
have been the blade of the knife which was Exhibit 36. He did not, however, have
elements of certainty to establish that the blade which had caused the wound 4
centimetres deep had stopped at the said depth because [it was] stopped by the
jawbone.

In analysing the major wound, the one on the left, he examined the aspect relative to
possible anatomical obstacles, such as to have been able to impede the complete
penetration of the blade, and he recalled the presence of the hyoid bone and the
epiglottis, which is cartilaginous and has a certain resistance. He stated that there
was a lesion on the hyoid bone which could be consistent with the passage of a
blade. As far as the epiglottis was concerned, he made the observation that the
cutaneous lesion was a little above the epiglottis, but it was not possible to know in
what position the neck was in (page 93 of the transcripts). ‚Therefore, the lesion of
the hyoid bone can also be due to the passage of the blade ... since ... the blade had
continued its course into the body‛; there certainly had been resistance, but not such
as to stop the blade. He therefore reaffirmed that the hyoid bone is not such as to
prevent a blade going beyond it.

With regard to the contusion which appeared underneath this major wound, to the
apposite question of the defence of Raffaele Sollecito (asking whether it could have
been caused by the handle of the knife) the expert replied that this was possible (‚it
could, yes‛ page 97). He specified, replying to further questions on the point, that it
was an abrasive lesion, i.e., compatible with all the means capable of producing an
abrasive lesion.

He then went on to detail the outcome of the alcohol level test. He recalled that the
level of alcohol found in Perugia at the Institute of Forensic Medicine was 0.43 grams
per litre; the [level] that had been [152] detected in the blood, however, at the
headquarters of the expert report commissioned for the pre-trial hearing [incidente
probatorio] was 2.72 grams per litre. On the basis of such contrasting results, a check
was carried out on the alcohol percentage in other regions: in the gastric content and
then in the liver. A value substantially of zero had been found in the gastric content
and, he stressed, ‚in the gastric content the quantity of alcohol is frighteningly
greater than in the blood‛ (page 106). In the liver too a very slight quantity had been
detected, equal to 0.2, which was comparable from the pharmacokinetic point of
view with the 0.43 verified by Dr. Lalli at the Institute of Forensic Medicine of

152
Perugia, rather than with the value of 2.72. He concluded on this point that that was
no pharmacokinetic condition which could justify all three of these values, that is
zero in the stomach, 2.72 in the blood and 0.2 in the liver. On the basis of these
elements they had concluded that Meredith was not in a condition of alcoholic
intoxication.

He could not indicate why the analysis of the blood had given a particularly high
value, ‚close to ethylic coma,‛ (page 108) other than in terms of a simple hypothesis:
the exchange of samples; a contamination with the passage of alcohol to the sample,
taking place when the exhibit was in the refrigerator.

He indicated the percentage of alcohol detected by Dr. Lalli and equal to 0.43 as
compatible with the consumption of one beer or of one glass of wine. That there was
then found to be zero in the gastric content could be explained by the fact of
evaporation or by the fact of the digestion of the alcohol.

With specific reference to the wound 4 centimetres deep, he clarified that from the
description provided by Dr. Lalli, the angle of the jawbone did not seem to have
been reached and *it was+ ‚quite distant in respect of the plane of the cut‛
(transcripts, page 124). He further declared that there was a disproportion between
the lesions suffered by the victim and the defensive lesions, which could be
interpreted as lesions [sustained when trying to] get away. He was unable to provide
an explanation for such a disproportion, which he held to be compatible with the
presence of more than one person, but also with the action of a sole person who acts
in a progressive manner (pages 128 and 129).

[153] On requests for further clarifications about the biggest wound, the one 8
centimetres long and 8 centimetres deep, Professor Cingolani pointed out that ‚at
least a pair of incisions are observed ... there is this rippling of the upper edge, this
could be indicative of an insistence on the penetration of the blade‛ (transcripts,
page 132).

The measurements of the confiscated knife, Exhibit 36, indicated on page 18 of the
expert report, were recalled; ‚along the knife irregularities in the form of thin
reeding were observed, respectively at 2.2 centimetres from the point and in
continuity with it, and at 11.4 centimetres from the point" (page 136). He specified
that these irregularities were ‚on both sides ... on one side of the blade and also on
the other‛ (page 135) and that these irregularities were present on the edge of the

153
blade. He stated that on the face of the blade he had not noticed any reeding or any
particular sign, except for the impression indicating the brand of the knife.

He confirmed that the lower wound joined up with the major one.

The expert declared, on the express question of the defence for Sollecito, that if the
intent is to kill, then it is obvious that the weapon is pushed in until it stops for some
anatomical reason (page 148).

In confirming the judgement of the non-incompatibility between the confiscated


knife, Exhibit 36, and the major wound, he repeated that the abrasion under the
wound could also have been caused by the impact of the handle of the knife on the
skin, but also by other causes having equal validity. That the abrasion then was
present only lower down, observed the expert, could have depended on the
inclination with which the blade penetrated: on one side, the handle can compress
more; on the other side, it may not compress. Therefore, it is the sign of half handle
(page 157).

With reference to the section in the expert report dedicated to the toxicological
investigation, the expert gave evidence that that use of drugs, especially by people
who are not used to consuming them, can loosen inhibitions and detract from the
awareness of what is being done (page 163).

He clarified that irregularities present on the blade, on the edge of the blade, could
have created the rippling in the wounds.

[154] In the course of the examination, the confiscated knife, Exhibit 36, was then
shown to the expert. The expert declared that he could not see any irregularity on
the face of the blade: ‚on the face of the blade there does not seem to be anything ... I
do not see any particularly relevant things ... it seems to be smooth to me‛ (page 165
and following).

He specified that the hyoid bone can constitute an obstacle to the penetration of a
weapon, but a modest [one]; [it] offers less resistance than that normally offered by a
bone but greater resistance than other structures present in the human body (page
179).

He further specified that the abrasion underneath the biggest wound could have
been caused by the handle of the knife or by any other cause capable of producing
the rubbing of that part of the skin against a body, which could be the hand or the
fingernail (page 184).

154
Professor Anna Aprile was examined next, on questions relating to the sexual
violence.

She gave evidence of the presence of signs, which led to the assertion that Meredith
Kercher had been sexually active shortly before dying. She pointed out these signs in
images which documented a colouring at the level of the sexual organs and
furthermore in a swab taken from the level of the vagina, which was negative in
regard to the presence of biological material identifiable as sperm, but positive for
the presence of biological material identifiable as belonging to a male subject, and
she observed, ‚finding in the vagina ... biological material traceable to a male
subject...permits us to say that biological material belonging precisely to this subject
came in contact with the vagina ... It could be saliva, they could be epithelial cells
flaking from the hand, or it could be indicative of penetration ... that occurred
without ejaculation or on the part of an aspermic subject" (page 194). Furthermore,
"from the photos and from the description of the advisors of the Prosecutor, one can
infer, with reasonable certainty, the presence of a pattern of small spots of bruising
at the level of the entrance to the vagina, just as there is evidence of some small spots
of bruising at the level of the anal sphincter‛. In particular, Professor Aprile stressed
that while the second exhibit mentioned was a little less significant, the pattern of
small spots [155] of bruising at the level of the entrance to the vagina led to the
conclusion that an action of rubbing and contusion had occurred.

She also confirmed the presence of elements which led to the conclusion that
Meredith had had activity of a sexual nature shortly before dying. On the consent or
otherwise to this sexual activity, precise answers could not be given because, she
observed, violent sexual relations can be verified without lesions, and vice versa.

As far as the specific case was concerned, she recalled that there had been
histological investigations made on the genital samples conserved in formaldehyde
and that therefore the ‚anatomical preparation‛ was no longer under optimal
conditions; the histological investigation had nonetheless indicated ‚the presence of
congested blood capillaries, replete with red globules, not with haematic overflows‛
[stravasi ematici]. Consequently it could be affirmed that the macroscopic data of the
pattern of small spots of bruising or of the congestion had found partial confirmation
in the histological examination (page 197). In relation to this and considering the
complex context of the event, it was held that Meredith had been the object of sexual
acts committed against her will. Therefore confirming [what was written in] the
explanatory relevant report.

155
In reply to the specific question asked by the defence for Amanda Knox, she took
note that in two passages of her examination, which took place during the pre-trial
phase [incidente probatorio], she had spoken about hypostasis; she clarified that this
had been a mere material error, as she had meant to say that they could not be taken
as hypostasis. She therefore specified that ‚the photos and the investigations lead to
the conclusion that it was a matter of patterns of small spots of bruising, suffusions,
small haemorrhagic suffusions, and not hypostasis‛ (page 202 of the transcripts).

(M)

At the hearing on September 25, 2009, Dr. Patumi, a consultant for the defence of
Amanda Knox, was examined. He recalled that the victim presented three wounds
in the region of the neck: two on the *victim’s+ left side, one on the right side. In
relation to the two on the left side of the neck, the more cranial one, i.e., the one
positioned higher, was surely the more important one; that one, together with other
mechanisms, had caused the girl’s death. This wound [156] was 4cm wide, 8 cm
long, with a cut 8 cm deep. The superior rim, the upper margin, of this wound
presented two accessory incisions, signifying that, certainly, the victim was not
struck by a single blow ‚but rather by multiple blows, not fewer than three, i.e., the
blows were repeated after the first knifing at least two more times‛ (page 87 of the
transcripts). On the lower edge was noted ‚the presence of this area contiguous with
the lower cutaneous rim of the wound, which is an area we can define as excoriated
contusions‛ which, maintained Dr. Patumi, ‚represents in all likelihood the anterior
face of the handle of the grip of the knife, of the cutting implement that was
used<in the moment in which the knife wound was inflicted, the anterior part of
the knife came into close contact, in strict contiguity with the skin, pushing it [the
skin+ inwards, rubbing against the skin creating this type of image‛ (pages 87 and
88). Consequently, the confiscated knife, Exhibit 36, with a blade length of a good
17cm, could not have caused a cut of 8cm. The final argument supporting its
incompatibility was constituted by the repetition of blows and their violence,
deducible from the fact that a bone was directly pierced that, although not having
the consistency of a femur, does possess a boney component that renders it resistant
[to the knife]. He thus argued that there was great violence, which had to lead to
excluding the possibility that the blows were not thrust into the full length of the
blade, as if the attacker [the person inflicting the wounds+ ‚had...for whatever reason

156
not wanted to attack furiously... but limited it *the depth of the cut+ to just 8cm‛
(page 89).

As for the possibility that the victim could have made an attempt to ‚distance her
head and thus her neck from the cutting implement, which could have reduced the
blade penetration,‛ he observed that ‚the head of the victim and especially the
mandibular region were subjected to a strong grasping action: the victim presented
the characteristic signs of a hand which gripped and violently blocked the mandible‛
and, moreover, observed the consultant, she did not have much chance of distancing
herself and fleeing from the cutting implement at the time of the aggression‛ (page
89).

[157] The hypothesis of the complete penetration of the cutting implement remained
therefore quite valid.

That this knife was absolutely incompatible derived from the examination of the
wound on the right part of the neck, which had absolutely incompatible dimensions:
1.5cm long and 0.4cm wide with a depth of 4cm. The cutting implement seized,
Exhibit 36, in producing a depth of 4cm, presents a height of 2cm.

He specified that in many cases there was no correspondence between the length of
the blade and the depth of the cut.

He affirmed that, in this murder, he found no sign of sexual violence; [or] of physical
abuse whose goal was sexual violence.

Regarding the cut, he stated that it would be possible to have an even longer wound
than the actual depth of the cut, given the nature of the tissues, and thus the
possibility for the knife to plunge and press on the skin (page 137).

EVALUATION OF WHAT HAS BEEN SET FORTH BY THE EXPERTS AND


FORENSIC CONSULTANTS

The opinions given by the experts and by the forensic consultants make it possible to
confront the problems posed by the present event. Those problems which concern
the forensic aspects are the following:

1) Was Meredith Kercher subjected to sexual violence or not?

2) What were the causes of death and how was death inflicted?

157
3) When did the death of Meredith Kercher occur?

4) When Meredith Kercher suffered the injuries and the violent acts which caused
her death, was she in a state of alcoholic intoxication?

The Court holds that the first of these questions must be answered in the affirmative.

During the course of the examinations performed on Meredith's lifeless body, Dr.
Lalli made a gynaecological examination and took vaginal swabs which were then
given to Dr. Stefanoni for biological analysis. In one of these swabs was found
biological material belonging to a male subject identified as Rudy Hermann Guede.
This material, which turned out not to be spermatic, [158] could be from saliva or
from epithelial cells from exfoliation, or, as Professor Aprile pointed out, could also
indicate "penetration which occurred without ejaculation or by an aspermic subject".
In any case, the objective fact remains that biological material from a male subject
came into contact with Meredith Kercher's body, and with a definitely erogenous
zone, as shown by the positive result of the vaginal swab. The region of the body in
which these biological traces were found leaves no room for doubt as to the type of
behaviour which rendered such an eventuality possible: this was a typical act
manifesting the sexual impulse of the agent, a male subject, through the invasion of
Meredith Kercher's sexual sphere, and thus it was a sexual act. In this regard, it
seems sufficient to note that the notion of a sexual act contains all those behaviours
which express the sexual impulse of the agent and which consist of an invasion of
the sexual sphere of another subject, including touching, feeling, rubbing of intimate
parts (Cass. 3.10.2007 n. 3447). Thus, an activity of penetration which left biological
traces inside Meredith's body is behaviour which rightly belongs to the category of
sexual acts.

The fact that this behaviour occurred against Meredith's will can be derived from
what was observed in the course of forensic pathology examinations and also from
the comprehensive evaluation of the scene as immortalised in the photos, which
showed the almost entirely naked body of Meredith Kercher, the bloodstains, and
the cut and torn bra.

In his study of the body, Dr. Lalli noted the presence, in the lower region of the
vagina, of small areas of ecchymosis indicative of a non-consensual sexual activity
on the part of the girl.

In regard to the ecchymotic areas, it is excluded that they can be interpreted as areas
of hypostasis. In fact, these are peripheral areas typical of grazes and small abrasions

158
(see the observations of Professor Bacci) which are rather spread out in location, with
respect to the posterior sloping surface on which [159] hypostatic stains would
naturally appear, and they do not have the continuity and homogeneity that are
encountered when it is a matter of hypostatic stains (see the observations of
Professor Norelli). Nor, differently, can it be argued on the basis of the histological
result that this did not make it possible to determine a flow of blood from the
vascular bed. It can in fact be verified that the histological examination, relative to a
small part, to be sure, and not to the entire area, concerned a zone not concerned by
blood flow from ecchymosis. To this it can be added that, as Professor Aprile noted,
the histological examination was conducted on a "preparation" preserved in
formalin, which was no longer in optimal condition: this examination did however
reveal the presence of congested blood vessels filled with red blood cells indicative
of a pattern of tiny spots as noted by Professor Aprile.

[The Court] does not hold that this non-collaboration in the sexual activity could be
indicative of a rushed sexual act, accomplished without any "preparation" of the
female subject, as proposed, though in purely hypothetical terms, by Dr. Lalli. Such
an interpretation, which would presuppose consent to the [sexual] act, and would
attribute the cause of the ecchymotic areas to a lack of adequate physiological
preparation for the [sexual] act, is clearly contradicted by the context of serious and
widespread harm manifested by the body of the victim, which has been discussed
and to which it will be necessary to return. It is also clearly contradicted by the strap
of the bra that the victim was wearing, which was found stained with blood,
indicative of the violent action which others performed on that garment before
removing it and uncovering the victim's chest.

THE CAUSE OF DEATH AND THE MEANS BY WHICH IT WAS


OCCASIONED

(A)

The wounds found on Meredith Kercher’s body by the experts and the consultants
have already been discussed.

Concerning certain of these injuries, marginal in determining the cause of death but
undoubtedly significant for reconstructing the dynamic, dissimilar interpretations

159
were advanced. This was the case for the small areas of contusion [160] confirmed in
the vaginal region for which a reading was hypothesised in terms of hypostatic
marks, different from that which this Court believes, of small lesions following from
a violent action.

Dissimilar interpretations have also been advanced with regard to signs found on
the iliac spines, the upper limbs (signs of falling or gripping), and to certain small
wounds found on Meredith’s hands, which Professor Introna attributed – although
in purely hypothetical terms – to a fall of the girl who, by placing or, in any case, by
bringing her hands to the floor, would have suffered a few small wounds on them
due to a piece of glass present on the floor of the room.

This piece of glass (which in the film of the November 2, 2007 inspection, as
indicated by Professor Introna, appears at 19:26 and 42 seconds) is noticeable as
being quite close to a print left by a bloodied shoe and deprived of any stain which
would have led to a discovery of whether the origin of the small cuts on the hands
was really this piece of glass. Above all, the reason given to explain the wounds on
the hands as coming from the harmful action of this piece of glass appears unlikely,
both in itself (as it is quite difficult to imagine that one would fall precisely onto that
little piece of glass, injuring oneself again) and also considering that there were
multiple wounds to the hands and only one little piece of glass in the room.

Neither can one put aside the fact that during the course of the event Meredith
Kercher received several wounds from a pointed and cutting weapon; it is therefore
likely that she had tried to interpose her hands to attempt some deflection of the
blows that were being inflicted on her neck, receiving in this way some defensive
wounds as well.

Rather, the presence of this small piece of glass in the victim’s room allows for
another consideration. The itinerary that the phantom burglar would have taken,
entering via the breaking of the window and window-pane, has already been
mentioned: Romanelli’s room; the living room space crossed to go into the larger
bathroom in which he left his sign of usage by not flushing; exit from the larger
bathroom; another passage through [161] the living room to go along the hall and
enter into Meredith’s room. If it were so, one is unable to comprehend how it was
possible that a piece of glass was dragged from Romanelli’s room in various places
and made to arrive in Meredith’s room. It is more logical to think that, after the
simulation of the burglary and the breaking of the window, the person who did this
went into Meredith’s room – to close the door and/or to cover her lifeless body with

160
the duvet – and the glass fragment – which could have ended up, hypothetically, in
a fold of the clothing being worn or in some other place – came to fall, or rather it
came to be brought in Meredith’s room, into which, immediately after the breaking
of the glass, it was carried by whoever broke that glass.

Turning to the question of the cause of Meredith Kercher’s death, and the means
which led to it, it is noted that, beyond the variations of interpretation mentioned
above, the description of the lesions as given by Dr. Lalli has not been significantly
contested by the experts and consultants.

However, with regard to these lesions, represented also in the relevant court
documents, reference must now be made in order to address the question now
before us.

Dr. Lalli has identified the cause of death as acute cardiorespiratory failure provoked
by a dual mechanism:

haemorrhaging derived from the vascular lesion at the level of the neck;

asphyxia due to the inhalation of her own blood and a to further action of
strangulation or suffocation. Dr. Liviero concurred with this assessment,
maintaining that the action of suffocation can be determined by the numerous
rounded ecchymoses present in the submandibular area and by haemorrhagic
suffusions detectable on the inner labial mucosa, typical of a suffocation attempt.

Professor Bacci has attributed the cause of death to anaemia due to abundant blood
loss and to asphyxia. In regard to this, he noted the presence of ecchymotic imprints
at the level of the neck, the oral cavity and the nostrils. His opinion therefore was
that a compressive action on the neck, mouth and nose occurred, capable of causing
a certain asphyxial component [of demise or death].

[162] Professor Norelli identified the cause of death as attributable to three


mechanisms, all of them of asphyxial in nature: manual compression of the neck
deducible from the ecchymotic-type areas therein present; the presence of blood in
the air passages caused by the neck wounds inflicted upon the victim; compression
and obstruction of the external respiratory passages.

He further specified that the suffocation must be considered as the last mechanism,
succeeding the lesions from the weapon and the aggressor must have held the
respiratory orifices closed for 5-10 minutes.

161
In his turn, Professor Introna has identified the cause of death as haemorrhaging and
the asphyxial component due to blood inhalation and to the breaking of the body of
the hyoid bone with consequent dyspnea. Blood inhalation must have been
protracted for approximately 10 minutes according to what could be inferred from
the presence of macrophages in the blood-filled alveoli. The victim, therefore, must
have been wounded on the neck, and on the mouth with closure of the respiratory
orifices, and stabbed.

Professor Torre also spoke of asphyxia, attributing it to the cause of death and
stressing the presence of so-called ‚mushroom-shaped mucus‛ which could be seen
protruding and coming out of the major wound, and which is symptomatic of death
by asphyxia, as well as the occurrence of an invasion of the airways by liquid, in this
case by blood. He identified other signs of asphyxia in the subconjunctival petechiae
and the dark colour of various hypostatic marks. He further specified that
subconjunctival petechiae signified survival of at least two minutes from the
beginning of the obstruction of the airways.

The experts nominated by the GIP, who were examined at the hearing of September
19, 2009, attributed the cause of death to the concurrence of asphyxia and the
haemorrhagic factor. The asphyxia was produced by physical activity on the neck
and air orifices and also, according to what could be derived from the histological
picture, which revealed how the pulmonary alveoli were full of haematic material,
by the aspiration of blood that was produced by the lesions sustained.

[163] Based on the conclusions and evaluations of the consultants and the forensic
pathology reports, this Court finds that the death of Meredith Kercher was due to
asphyxia caused by the wound of greater gravity inflicted on the neck, subsequent to
which blood finished up in the airways impeding respiratory activity, a situation
exacerbated by the breaking of the hyoid bone – this action also attributable to the
action of the cutting instrument – with consequent dyspnea.

The signs of this death by asphyxiation are the pulmonary alveoli full of blood, the
foamy ‚fungus‛ that one of the photos shows coming out of the neck wound, and
the subconjunctival petechiae.

As regards the compressive action applied to the neck and respiratory orifices (the
nose and mouth) indicated by the ecchymosis present in the submandibular zone
and the ecchymotic suffusions present on the nostrils and in the inner labial region,
while such action could constitute a further asphyxial component in the cause of

162
death, this Court does not hold that this occurred in the present case. In fact, the
various harmful actions must be seen within the comprehensive dynamics of the
event, in the temporal sequence of their occurrence.

It is held, therefore, that the submandibular ecchymosis was caused by a


compressive action carried out prior to the stabbing. That such compression
preceded the wound from a pointed and cutting weapon comes from various
considerations:

the regions traversed by the neck wounds made these regions fill with the blood that
was issuing abundantly from those wounds, and a compressive action would
therefore have been rather difficult to perform on that part of the body after the
action of the knife (regarding this matter, see Professor Bacci’s observations on the
slippery nature of blood);

moreover, one sees no reason why – after inflicting the wounds on the neck which,
due to the vital part of the body struck, the breaking of the hyoid bone and the blood
flowing out, must have appeared particularly serious, preventing the victim from
being able to scream (with reference to the most serious wound, see what the various
Consultants have observed in this regard, particularly Professor Bacci) [164] – it
would also have been necessary to seize and strangle the victim's neck.

The compressive actions carried out on the neck must therefore have preceded the
action of stabbing; thus they must have stopped at a certain point, and they must
have occurred when Meredith was still alive because the wounds, considering the
blood that came out of them, were inflicted on a person who was certainly alive. If it
is thus, the neck compression action, because of its temporary nature and the fact
that it preceded the other harmful actions, cannot be held to have had any efficiency
as a cause of death by suffocation, at least if one does not associate it with the
fracture of the hyoid bone and the effect of dyspnea that it would have caused, this
last certainly not temporary. However, what the various consultants noted about the
characteristics of the hyoid bone, its position, and the fact that it was broken in its
central part rather than the lateral parts leads us to exclude this possibility.

Nonetheless, the ecchymosis visible in the submandibular area and also the
circumstance by which certain forensic pathologists hypothesised that the grasping
of the neck constituted a causative contributing factor to death by asphyxiation,
connote such an activity as having significant relevance, and at this point it appears
useful to recall the observations made during the discussion of the sexual assault

163
carried out upon Meredith Kercher, as shown by the penetrative activity
documented by the outcome of the vaginal swab, in order to identify the probable
dynamics of what occurred.

Meredith Kercher, returning home around nine in the evening, and without
anything in mind other than having a rest (the night before, Halloween, she had
stayed up very late) and doing some studying. Like her English friends, she thought
she had a class at 10 the following morning, and would not have had any intention
of acquiescing to the demands, held to be of an erotic-sexual nature by what has
already been observed, of whoever entered her room.

Besides, she felt attached to Giacomo Silenzi, with whom she had just started an
intimate relationship, and she was serious young woman with a strong
temperament. She had also practiced football and karate.

[165] It is therefore to be considered that invitations of an erotic-sexual nature would


find a proud refusal in Meredith Kercher, and the grasping of the neck – so violent
as to produce ecchymosis and even to be indicated by some of the consultants (such
as Professor Norelli) as the principal factor in death by suffocation – must have been
for the purpose of intimidating her, in addition to limiting the girl’s freedom of
movement, in order to convince her to not offer resistance and allow her attacker to
give free rein to the impulses that must have dominated him in that moment.

The neck hold was not, in any event, sufficient to bend Meredith’s will and reduce
her to the mercy of her attacker. It is possible even to think that such opposition led
to an escalation of violence and, instead of persuading the one carrying out the
aggressive act to withdraw from the attempt at abuse, was taken as a challenge; thus
more harmful actions were accomplished, with more serious intimidation, and the
neck compression must have thus ceased. Thus, such action, which certainly was
performed as shown by the submandibular ecchymosis, had no causative effect on
the death by suffocation, nor did it succeed in taming the young lady’s resistance;
she was therefore struck on the right latero-cervical region with a single-edged blade
which produced a wound with dimensions of 1.5cm by 0.4cm, with a penetrating
depth of 4cm: an action not relevant in determining the cause of death but intended,
as before, to subdue Meredith Kercher’s resistance.

It is likely that it was at this point that her trousers and underwear were removed
and she was made the object of the sexual assault described above, probably
preparatory to further aggression and violence, also of a sexual nature. In fact, her

164
top, which she was still wearing, was lifted up and rolled up towards her neck and,
therefore, her upper trunk freed in such a manner; there was an attempt to unfasten
her bra which, almost like the girl herself, provided such resistance that to remove it,
it was necessary to apply force and cut it off.

The bra and the cut bra fragment were thus removed and discarded; the pillow was
taken on which they evidently wanted to position the girl [166] to allow and
facilitate (one can see no other purpose) further sexual activity. This pillow was in
fact found under the young lady’s buttocks and the handprint, from Rudy Guede’s
hand and stained with the victim’s blood, shows that Meredith had already been
struck and was bleeding; it is also observed that the bra fragment with the clasps
was found under the pillow, which indicates the moment, following the forcing of
the bra and when this garment was removed, in which the pillow must have been
positioned, and leads one to hold as probable the above-mentioned purpose of
positioning of the pillow: the girl was stripped almost completely and had been
wounded; a pillow was placed on the floor probably to lay out the young girl and
sexually abuse her with greater ease. But the sexual violence to which the girl was
subjected, and the pain that such violence must have produced; the neck wound
inflicted on her and the actions of constricting and stripping (when her bra was also
removed) that followed, are to be held as leading to the girl’s scream: a cry of pain
and extreme effort, in the hope that the loudest possible scream would interrupt the
criminal activity in progress.

The response was the compression of the upper airways (the ecchymosis in the labial
region and under the nose constituting the signs of this) accompanied by the last
wound, deep and grievous, to the right side of the neck, inflicted immediately after
the bra was cut off, removed and thrown aside, such that a large portion of the bra
came to be stained and almost soaked in blood (see the right bra strap in particular).
It was this wound and the compression of the upper orifices done by a hand that, to
prevent further screams, pressed to close the mouth and ended up against the
nostrils impeding the breathing, that led to the death by asphyxia that would occur a
few minutes later.

Professor Introna, in his reconstruction of the events, hypothesised that the attacker
– and he holds that it is a case of the action of a single attacker – found the girl naked
from the pelvis down. He surprised her from behind and, grasping her by the neck
with one arm and holding her firmly in this way, applied violence with the other,
taking advantage of the situation where the girl was completely naked in her private
parts.

165
[167] This assumption cannot be shared by the Court. It would in fact be necessary to
think that the young woman was undressing herself exactly at the moment in which
there was the entrance of others into her room, and that she was undressing herself
starting by completely removing clothing from the pelvis down; to which can be
added that her two shoes, while [found] fairly close to each other, were found in the
room in an area nearly opposite to the clothes that Meredith supposedly removed
straight afterwards, namely her trousers and underwear (see photo 104 in the
photographic evidence binder, volume 2). To which can be added that such a
reconstruction presupposes that entry into the house occurred in a furtive and
violent way and it has already been seen how such a hypothesis does not appear
logically and objectively sustainable.

We consider it therefore much more likely and logical to think that Meredith was
still dressed and it was whoever attacked her that removed her trousers and
underwear as explained above.

At this point we must confront the question of the means by which the wounds and
the death were caused. The question can be posed with specific reference to the
wounds present in the neck region and which were attributed by various consultants
and experts to a pointed and cutting weapon. The relevance of this question is
tightly bound to the discovery, in Sollecito Raffaele’s house after the arrest of the
current accused, of a knife, Exhibit 36 already mentioned multiple times, on which,
during the genetic investigations, was found biological traces which the scientific
police attributed to the biological profile of Amanda Knox (on the handle) and of
Meredith Kercher (on the blade). With reference to the outcome of these analyses,
questions and doubts were put forward, to which we will return. However, it is
clearly evident that should one conclude during the forensic pathology
investigations, that the knife is incompatible with the wounds – with all the wounds
– inflicted on the victim, it would be pointless to consider the further question, of the
genetic examination (also) conducted on the said knife.

It must immediately be stated that said knife has a length of 31.2cm and is furnished
with a single-sided blade of length 17.2cm, embedded into a black-coloured handle.
The thickness of the upper [non-cutting] edge of the blade is 1.5mm, and the width
of the [168] proximal third [blade one third of the distance from the handle] is 3cm.
Along the edge, there was evidence of irregularities in the form of thin ridges at
2.2cm and at 11.4cm from the tip.

166
The experts and consultants who were examined during the course of the trial,
taking into examination the various wounds present on the neck, excluded the
compatibility of the knife Exhibit 36 and the wound inflicted on the right latero-
cervical and having the following dimensions: 1.5cm by 0.4cm, with a depth of 4cm
in an oblique upwards direction. They in fact showed that the confiscated knife, at a
distance of 4cm from the tip, has a width of approximately 3cm and thus almost
double the 1.5cm width of the wound, a width thus incompatible with the
dimensions of the blade of this knife.

The Consultants for the defence(s) also excluded compatibility with reference to the
wound present in the left latero-cervical. A wound with a depth of 8-9cm and which
Dr. Lalli in his report described in the following terms ‚in the left latero-cervical,
8cm inferior to and 1.5cm anterior to the external acoustic meatus, a wide wound with
clean edges of length 8cm, obliquely positioned, in the caudal and lateral directions
widely gaping, exposing the underlying tissues which appear to be sectioned right
up to the osteo-cartilage. The edges present minimal haemorrhagic infarction
predominant at a distance of 3cm from the extreme lateral edge, where a small tail is
detectable. Very small excoriated and ecchymotic edge with maximum width of
0.2cm is present at the extreme anterior of the upper edge. This wound followed a
trajectory [tramite] which reaches deep into the soft tissues with an apparent oblique
direction front-to-back, from left-to-right, and slightly from low to high *upwards+‛
(pages 26 and 27 of the Lalli report). Said description was repeated also by the
experts appointed by the GIP at the pre-trial hearing [in sede di incidente probatorio]
(see page 10 of the forensics report).

Various arguments have been advanced by the defence consultants, particularly


Professors Introna and Torre, ruling out the compatibility of the confiscated knife
with the aforementioned wound.

[169] In the first place, Professor Introna maintains that the ecchymotic area
underneath the wound constituted a sign of the impact of the proximal part of the
knife handle against the skin. He had to necessarily derive from this that the entire
length of the blade must have penetrated and thus, that the wound with a depth of
8-9 cm could not have been caused by a knife with a blade of 17.5 cm in length.

He also asserted that an attacker with homicidal intentions would strike with all
their force, and thus, in making use of a knife with a 17.5cm-long blade, there was no
reason to limit himself to producing a wound equal to half of what such a knife was

167
capable of. Under this outline, he pointed out the presence of two parallel lesions on
the epiglottis, symptomatic of repeated thrusts, with clear homicidal intention.

Professor Torre also emphasised the repeated thrusts, and the circumstances by
means of which the cut would have reached a depth of only 8 cm indicates the blade
could not have been longer than that. He also pointed out the fact that in that region
[of the neck] there is no substantial obstacle apart from the hyoid bone which could
not constitute a serious obstacle, and thus, especially considering the repeated action
that was accomplished, deducible from the presence of a real butchering in that area,
the use of a knife with a blade nearly 17 cm long would have caused a wound much
deeper than the approximately 8cm-long one observed. He considered it possible,
furthermore, that the ecchymotic area underneath the wound had been caused by
the stopping of the blade, or rather by the hand holding the knife pushed in for the
entire length of the blade and thereby ending up impacting against the skin and
producing the underlying ecchymosis.

Professor Torre considered it also possible that the same pocket knife could have
caused the various wounds, citing the homogeneity of their trajectories, all from left
to right and upwards. Dr. Patumi, Amanda Knox’s defence consultant, also asserted
that the ecchymotic area underneath the most serious of the wounds represented in
all likelihood the anterior face of the grip of the knife handle, which therefore
implied that the entire blade had penetrated. He added also that the repeated thrusts
and the fracture [170] of the hyoid bone which, although not having the consistency
of other stronger bones such as the femur, for example, is still a bone, signified that
the thrusts were inflicted with great violence and intentionality, so that the entire
blade would have had to have penetrated, and would have penetrated.

The alleged incompatibility of the wound caused to the neck in the left latero-
cervical with the knife Exhibit 36 was, instead, excluded by the GIP-nominated
experts, the consultants of the prosecution and of the plaintiff, albeit each with
different emphases, which led some to speak of definite compatibility (Dr. Liviero),
some of compatibility (Dr. Lalli and Professors Bacci and Norelli), and others of non-
incompatibility (the GIP-nominated experts).

On the basis of the indications and explanations given by the various pathologists,
and in consideration of the documentation brought to our attention by the same, this
Court makes the following observation:

168
the set of lesions caused in the submandibular zone labelled by the GIP experts with
the numbers IE-14, IE-15, IE-16, and IE-17 (see photo on page 11 of the GIP experts’
report) reveal a comprehensive injury pattern which is inhomogeneous, making it
difficult to hold that the same knife, used therefore by the same person, could have
produced an injury pattern that does not appear homogeneous and such as to make
it possible to accept that it was used by a single attacker.

With specific regard to the knife indicated as Exhibit 36, its incompatibility with the
right latero-cervical wound can be affirmed in relation to the comparison of the
dimensions of the said wound with same knife, according to what we have already
had the occasion to observe, recalling, on this point, the apparent agreement of the
consultants and experts, an agreement which appears convincing and which is
accepted in light of the unarguable, even geometric as one might say, reasoning
brought to sustain it.

The Court does not believe that this incompatibility is present with regard to the two
wounds in the left latero-cervical, one with a depth of about 8cm, and the other 1.4
cm. We will return later to the latter wound, which appears to have been caused by
the point of the knife which remained almost stuck [impuntatura].

[171] With reference to the largest wound, the incompatibility with the confiscated
knife, Exhibit 36, had been affirmed with regard to the homicidal intent, to the
absence of structures able to stop its course, to the presence of two incisions on the
epiglottis indicative of repeated thrusts, to the presence of an underlying ecchymotic
area which would have constituted a sign of the impact of the knife handle onto the
skin.

None of these arguments appear acceptable.16

The two epiglottal incisions cannot be held to signify the behaviour of a person who,
animated by intent to kill, repeats the knife thrusts, extracting the knife from the
wound and striking again, according to the description offered by Professor Torre in
particular. Such a reconstruction does not give a reason, it is held, as to why the
blow arrived at the same place: if this blow is to be anchored in the homicidal intent
and in the observation that the death had not yet occurred, the attacker would have
had to direct their action towards another bodily region instead of insisting on this
region, which had already been attained and revealed itself as unsuitable; on a
different note, it appears difficult to imagine that the knife, once extracted, could

16
i.e., condivisibile, “shareable”, i.e. reasoning that is the court does not concur with is not upheld

169
have ended up in the same wound just produced, which would have been covered
by blood that would have hidden it.

The two epiglottal incisions noted by Dr. Lalli and the butchering mentioned by
Professor Torre cannot therefore have derived from the repeated action of a person
extracting the weapon and striking again; it seems much more logical to consider,
therefore, that what was observed in the depths of the wound in question was the
result of the victim’s reaction who, in desperate defensive movements, tried to draw
back the part of the body that had been struck, succeeding, however, in making only
small and limited displacements, so that the knife, which, lodged in her neck,
created a kind of butchering in the affected tissues, and at the same time, a small
withdrawal from the weapon (defensive action) coincided with an opposite action of
approach by the person who was attacking her and holding her, causing the
additional incision on the epiglottis.

Also, the line of reasoning which holds that in homicidal intent, the offensive
instrument available would be used with the greatest offensive capacity [172] that
the said instrument is capable of, does not appear acceptable. It in fact makes an
assumption which finds no confirmation in the depths of the cuts of the various
wounds which can be attributed to a pointed and cutting weapon and which have
been confirmed as being present in Meredith’s body. Sufficient for this to consider
the one underneath the one now being examined, with cut of a depth of
approximately a centimetre and a half , in respect of which it cannot certainly be
sustained that there was an impact with a structure that would have prevented
greater depth. It must also be observed that wound-depth depends also on the type
of reactions that the person being struck can bring to bear, and by the positions that
the one doing the attacking and the one being attacked are able to assume during the
course of the action. And the assumption by which the homicidal intent must
correspond with maximum offensive blade use does not take into account the
various shades of the psychological factor, and of the various intensities of harm.
There are, as has been noted, various increasing levels of intensity of malicious
intent, and one speaks of reckless, direct and intentional malice [dolo eventuale, dolo
diretto, and dolo intenzionale] (see Court of Cassation, Section Un. 12-10-93 no.748),
and in the present case, the elements supporting the contention that Meredith
Kercher’s attacker was animated by intentional malice [dolo intenzionale], so the
maximum degree of intent to kill. The sexual violence to which Meredith was
subjected points, in fact to a different aim than that of killing, and even the
ecchymosis and certain superficial lesions inflicted on the young woman exclude the

170
possibility that the death of Meredith was the ultimate goal of the aggression that
was accomplished against her. Rather, it should be held that in the development of
the action, a crescendo of violence was reached (as per what was observed above)
such that, in relation to the body parts that came to be and which were vital (the
neck) and [in relation] to the weapon that was being used, there was the mere
acceptance of a risk of death that was becoming concretely possible. An homicidal
intent characterised, then, by reckless malice [dolo eventuale] and thus of the
acceptance of the risk of possible death as a consequence of actions directed towards
other goals (the bending of the victim’s will; forcing her to submit to an action she
did not want to submit to; preventing her from screaming and putting up further
resistance), behaviour thus accomplished notwithstanding the awareness of the [173]
possibility of death itself ensuing, an event therefore which came to be accepted (see
recently also Court of Cassation, Section 1, no.12954 of 2008): an intensity of the will
to kill not at the maximum degree and therefore the asserted equivalence between
the homicidal intent and the use of a blade to its maximum offensiveness – such that
the blade ought to have ‚plumbed the depths‛ to its total length, not encountering
any substantial obstacles in its course – is considered misleading and not acceptable.

The argument regarding the broken hyoid bone, holding it to signify the large
amount of violence that was carried out, can be turned on its head to affirm that the
force used was not so very great, so that the impact with the hyoid bone did not
allow the blade to produce a wound as deep as the length of the blade itself.

The incompatibility of the knife Exhibit 36 can be asserted, as has already been said,
also on the basis of a further argument, illustrated in particular by Professor Introna,
who, after having pointed out the presence of an ecchymotic area beneath the
wound in question, advanced the hypothesis in which that ecchymotic area was a
sign of the impact of the proximal part of the knife handle against the skin, a knife
that therefore would have produced a cut as deep as the blade was long, thereby
allowing the handle to impact the skin.

Such an explanation of the ecchymotic area underneath the wound present on the
neck in the left latero-cervical region, with a length of 8cm and a depth of 8cm, is not
held to be convincing.

In the first place, it must be observed how the said ecchymotic area does not have a
shape that allows it to be attributed to the print of the handle of a knife, as the
outlines of this area are not well-defined, which one would expect if the cause were
attributable to a knife-handle impact on the skin. It must also be added that, if the

171
print were produced this way, it would also have done so on the upper part: the
wound in the middle, and the handle print on the two edges between which the
knife blade found itself engaged. However, there is no ecchymotic area to be found
on the upper part of the wound corresponding to that on the lower part. Certainly, it
may be objected that the blade of [174] that knife was not engaged in the centre of
the handle, but on one of the two faces of the handle itself: a hypothesis that was not
put forth and which is unlikely in that it presupposes a very specific knife of which
nothing has been made known as to whether, effectively, it may exist. To explain the
absence of a counterpart on the upper side, it was also affirmed that the blow was
not done perpendicular to the skin. Even in this case, though, given the rather small
area of the knife handle, and the violence which was hypothetically used, and the
natural elasticity of the part of the body that was struck, some ecchymosis would
have been produced if the whole blade had been inserted fully into the wound and
the knife handle had ended up on the skin, ‚impacting‛ on it.

Instead, it must be observed that said ecchymotic area appears to have a


continuation into the zone beneath the wound positioned in the same left latero-
cervical region of the neck and having dimensions of 1.4cm x 0.3cm: it would, thus,
be part of a much larger ecchymotic area (see, in this regard, the photo to be found
on page 26 of Lalli’s report), whose cause – surely different from that attributable to
a knife penetrating for its entire blade length – must therefore be identified as the
same one that produced this much larger ecchymotic area. For the rest, in the same
region of the neck, on the left and right, there are present numerous and large
ecchymoses occasioned by an action of a grasping and of finger-press quite
widespread and insistent, as can be seen from their number, and in some of these
ecchymoses may have also been the impact on the skin of fingernails which, as
found by Professor Torre, are able to produce excoriations of the type found on
Meredith’s face (page 19, hearing 6 July 2009).

In relation to the above, the thesis of the incompatibility of the most serious wound
and the knife Exhibit 36 is held to be unacceptable, though this knife is incompatible
with the 4cm-deep wound, as we have seen. Nor does this conclusion contrast with
the circumstances illustrated by Sollecito Defence consultant Professor Vinci in his
report relating to the ‚analyses of the haematic stained shapes discovered on the
mattress cover in Meredith Kercher’s room‛.

[175] The reconstruction offered by Professor Vinci certainly appears suggestive.


Some doubt remains in the reconstruction of the dimensions of the knife derived in
relation from the marks found on the bed sheet. If these marks indeed derived from

172
the knife placed on the bed sheet, then they should in fact have been more abundant,
and should have outlined the shape of the knife with greater precision, for the
following reason: the knife, if it was placed on the bed sheet, was placed there
immediately after it had been used to strike Meredith; therefore, the fresh and
abundant bloodstains present on the blade should have been imprinted onto the bed
sheet in a more evident and copious way than is actually appreciable. It cannot in
any case remain unobserved that, if one of the knives used had a blade length of
11.3cm, or else 9.6 cm – according to what was indicated by Professor Vinci in the
conclusions to his report – the argumentation set forth to sustain the incompatibility
of the knife Exhibit 36 would not, on this alone, have any foundation.

(B)

Regarding the aspects of forensic pathology concerning this event, the question
relating to the determination of the time of death remains to be examined.

The various consultants and experts heard on this point have all emphasised the
difficulty of this issue. Indeed, there is a high level of difficulty in the application of
the complex criteria of forensic medicine, arising from the presence of variables
which are not always determinable and measurable with the necessary precision. In
the case at hand – as Dr. Lalli has shown – the difficulty was increased by the
decision to give priority to the collection of biological evidence, which postponed the
examination of the body until 11 hours after its discovery.

The application of criteria usually used in determining the time of death


(temperature decrease, taking the Henssge nomogram into account; rigor mortis;
hypostatic marks) led Dr. Lalli to conclude that ‚death may have occurred between
21 hours 30 minutes, and 30 hours and 30 minutes, before the first measurement, and
thus between approximately 8 pm on November 1, 2007 and [176] 4 am on
November 2, 2007. The intermediate value also indicated by the mathematical
reconstruction (26 hours prior to the first measurement) puts the time of death at
approximately 11pm on November 1, 2007 (Lalli report, page 61).

These conclusions were re-affirmed during the April 3, 2009 hearing, during which it
was also shown that the calculation of body weight was used in applying the
Henssge nomogram, and this weight had been determined by a [visual] inspection

173
of the victim’s morphology. Dr. Lalli also took the state of digestion into
consideration.

In his turn, Professor Bacci pointed out that body temperature, and its progressive
variation, constituted the most important criterion for determining time of death.
The delay in measuring the temperature, and the variables connected to that
particular situation did not allow for the use of more accredited and otherwise
applicable mathematical techniques. The time and quantity of gastric emptying and
the observations of Dr. Lalli on this point, allow for a time of death of between 9 pm
and midnight on November 1, 2007: this data is consistent with what can be gleaned
from other thanato-chronological criteria.

Professor Norelli, a consultant for the plaintiffs, underlined that the collected data
did not make it possible to pinpoint the time of death precisely; it could only allow
us to situate TOD as being in the late, very late evening of November 1, or perhaps
in the earliest hours of the following day. As for the stomach contents, he was highly
perplexed about the use of this parameter to establish the time of death for various
reasons: digestion times vary from person to person, and even for the same person
vary depending on conditions that can have an influence on digestion times. He
added that the final difficulty was related to the determination of the exact time of
the last meal, which is not always possible. He concluded, therefore, that this
parameter could not supply information that would be useful in solving the problem
of determining time of death.

[177] Professor Introna revealed how, in the case at hand, due to the lateness of the
collection of the relevant data, the criteria of rigor mortis and hypostatic marks were
not able to provide useful indications for solving the problem in question.

He also took note of the range indicated by Dr. Lalli, with which the other
consultants agreed, and maintained the possibility of reducing this range by means
of applying Henssge’s nomogram, and also based on the observed stomach contents,
on the time for gastric emptying and on the circumstantial elements that have
emerged in this regard (the last meal consumed).

He observed that Dr. Lalli had used a computer program which made it possible –
given the rectal temperature of the body, the outside temperature, the ambient
conditions to which it was exposed, and its weight, – to obtain indications of the
time of death.

174
He recalled, the data input by Dr. Lalli: ambient temperature 13º C; initial
temperature (standard) 37º C; rectal temperature 22º C; correction factor taking into
account the ambient conditions 1.7; body weight 55 kg.

This data, he observed, produced a curve, called a Gaussian curve, the middle of
which indicated 22:50 pm as the most probable time of death, with a 95% tolerance
level; the range had to be between 21 and a half to 30 and a half hours from the [time
of] measurement: the time of death being thus circumscribed within a temporal
region ranging from 18:20 pm on November 1, 2007 to 03:30 am on November 2,
2007 (page 16, Professor Introna’s report).

In his own report, Professor Introna explained that the tolerance represents the fixed
probability shown by the numerical percentage index given. Thus, in the present
case, the hypothesis that the death occurred around 23:00 pm on November 1, 2007
is at the 95% level of probability (see Professor Introna’s report, page 16, note 3). He
added that Dr. Lalli had not weighed the body and had given an approximate
weight of 55kg. If Meredith Kercher had weighed two kilos more, that is 57kg, the
time of death with a 95% tolerance level would be moved back to 21:50 pm (see table
on page 17 of Introna’s report, where it can be seen that for each additional 2 kg of
body weight the TOD must be moved back by one hour [178] and vice versa).
Professor Introna criticised Dr. Lalli’s assessment of Meredith’s weight based on the
standard weight formula applied to a 21-year-old woman measuring 1.64 metres. In
this regard, he mentioned various formulas which give results that oscillate between
57kg (Lorenz’s formula) and 60kg (Broca’s formula). He affirmed, therefore, that,
had Meredith’s weight been only 2 kg more (that is, 57kg instead of the 55kg used by
Dr. Lalli), the time of death with 95% tolerance-level would have been moved back
to 21:50 pm on November 1, 2007 (page 8 of the report).

Regarding these observations, it must above all be observed that the indication of the
tolerance at the 95% level of the time death, as the outcome of various values
considered and input , is within a curve, at the top of a curve; as a consequence,
other indications of the time of death, inclusive within the indicated range, have a
rather high tolerance; the minimum tolerance is positioned at the extremity of the
range and, treating it, as has been seen, as an extended range, it is possible to
formulate hypotheses of the time of death that lie some ‚tens of minutes‛ before or
after 22:50 pm, and that have a fairly high tolerance, near the 95% that is indicated as
the maximum tolerance.

175
On another point, and relating to the formation and construction of the Gaussian
curve, it was emphasised that it [the curve] is subject to substantial and significant
modifications whenever any of the parameters are modified even by a very small
amount. In particular, in the present case, the correction factor indicated as 1.7 could
be somewhat lower, and in this regard we recall the measurements performed by
Professor Norelli, who considers the correction factor of 1.7 used by Dr. Lalli to be
unacceptable, while Professor Introna evaluated it as correct. In this regard,
Professor Norelli recalled (see report dated June 29, 2009) that ‚concerning the
typology of coverage of the body in compiling the nomogram, various hypotheses
are available, and each of them corresponds to a correction factor< In the case in
question, the covering was represented by a duvet which, at the most, may by
analogy be assimilated to the 1-2 thick covering shown in the table, for which the
consequent [179] corrective factor is 1.2; making the body coverage conditions
extreme, one could assimilate it to the 3-4 layer thickness, whose corrective factor is
1.3 (see Professor Norelli’s report, sheet 3 and sheet 4). The application of these
different correction factors produces, as is evident, a different Gaussian curve, and
the time of death with 95% tolerance can no longer be indicated as being 22:50 pm.

The relevance of the body weight has already been explained by Professor Introna,
such that a difference of 2kg produces a displacement of one hour in the time of
death with 95% tolerance: if Meredith had weighed 52kg, keeping the correction
factor set at 1.7, the time of death with 95% tolerance would have been at 00:20; if
54kg, at 23:20; if 56kg, at 22:20; if 58 kg, at 21:20; if 60kg, at 20:20.

Professor Introna made reference to what would have been the ‚ideal weight‛ for
Meredith and – taking into account her age of 21 years, her height of 1.64m and of
the Lorenz formulas used to calculate the ideal weight – he concluded that Meredith
would have weighed 57kg, resulting in an indicated time of death with 95%
tolerance of 21:50 pm on November 1, 2007. However, other formulas used to
calculate ideal weight give substantially different results; and Professor Introna
himself recalled Broca's formula, according to which Meredith’s ideal weight would
have been 60kg. Using this datum, the time of death with 95% tolerance would have
been 20:20 pm—when Meredith was very much alive, since she did not arrive home
at via della Pergola before 21:00 pm. Therefore, it appears from all the evidence that
basing Meredith’s weight on formulas used to calculate the ideal weight does not
produce reliable results. At this point, it appears extremely useful to recall that Dr.
Lalli, in his report, indicated Meredith’s weight as 50kg. This indication, even
though purely approximate, turns out to have been derived by an external

176
examination of the body, in the [crime scene] inspection on November 3, 2007 at
00:30 am, from which was also furnished the height (strictly no longer a height but a
length) equal to 164 cm. It is true that later, in applying the nomogram, Dr. Lalli gave
a value of 55kg. Considering that when he estimated the body weight as being 50kg,
[180] Dr. Lalli had the body in front of him and was particularly careful in observing
it just as it was, it is to be held that this weight measurement does not depart much
from the reality and, taking into account the subsequently supplied 55kg datum, it is
held that Meredith’s weight may be indicated, with a good approximation, as 52-
53kg, a weight which, applying the nomogram and taking into account the indicated
parameters, therein including the same correction factor of 1.7, it would give as a
time of death with 95% tolerance, midnight, or ten minutes to midnight.

Another criterion on which Professor Introna placed great value for establishing the
time of death is that consisting of the stomach contents and the times of the
emptying of the stomach. As this concerns an aspect which has already been
discussed, it is considered sufficient to recall the essential elements of the evaluation
offered in this regard.

A first datum consists of what Dr. Lalli verified with respect to the presence of a
quantity amounting to 500cc in the stomach; another element is the absence of
material in the duodenum. Professor Introna therefore recalled the witness
depositions of Meredith’s friends, from which it would have resulted that Meredith
began eating her last meal at around 18:30 – 19:00 pm on November 1, 2007 (page 25
of the report already cited several times, and the declarations made in the court
hearing of June 20, 2009). Based on these elements, and considering a time of gastric
emptying of 2 to 3 hours after the commencement of the ingestion of the last meal,
Professor Introna asserts that the violence suffered by Meredith, and which probably
caused the cessation of the digestive process, began between 21:00 pm and 21:30 pm.

This court does not hold such a prospect to be sustainable.

In the first place, we recall what has been explained by the various consultants and
forensic pathology experts concerning the difficulty in establishing digestion times,
these being influenced by multiple factors. Thus Dr. Lalli, while affirming that
gastric emptying begins as soon as one part of the stomach’s contents has become
sufficiently liquid to pass through the pylorus, and that this occurs around the 3rd to
4th hour after the meal, made a point of adding that [181] many factors influence the
gastric emptying times, such that any deduction of time of death based solely on this
data is rather unconvincing (page 64 of the Lalli report).

177
Professor Norelli emphasised the difficulty of [using] this parameter to determine
the time of death, stressing the variability of digestion times and also the possible
difficulty in establishing with certainty the time that the last meal began.
Furthermore, Professor Introna did not fail to emphasise the difficulty of conducting
an analysis performed on gastric contents and their emptying times due to the
numerous variables by which they are influenced (page 15, hearing on June 20,
2009).

However, it was the experts appointed by the GIP for the pre-trial phase [incidente
probatorio] who in particular emphasised the unreliability of such a criterion.

Professor Umani Ronchi testified that digestion is determined by a whole series of


absolutely individual conditions and that these are not constant even for the same
person. Moreover, he added that the stomach may need three, four, five, or even
more, hours to empty itself (hearing on September 19, 2009). Even under standard
conditions he indicated that a considerable and variable period of time was
necessary. In the report lodged during the pre-trial phase [incidente probatorio] there
was also a table and the [reference] literature relating to gastric emptying times,
from which it followed that variability is substantial, depending on the type of meal,
with the opinion that the said indications were of ‚dubious value‛. In any case, it
was indicated that a farinaceous meal would require 6 to 7 hours (see report of
Umani Ronchi, Cingolani, April, page 45). Consequently, assuming that Meredith
began to eat at around 6 pm, the gastric emptying could have occurred around
midnight, or even later. The responses given by experts, on precisely this point, at
the November 27, 2007 hearing before the GIP during the pre-trial phase were even
more clarifying. Specifically, with reference to the pizza and thus to the foodstuffs
that Meredith would have begun to eat at around 6 pm on November 1, 2007,
Professor Umani Ronchi spoke of a gastric-emptying time of 6 to 7 hours (page 46 of
the transcripts of the [182] statement of said hearing). With even greater expository
efficiency, Professor Cingolani emphasised that the criterion of stomach contents is
the most untrustworthy, the most unreliable criterion for determining the time of
death, since it can result in variations that can go from 1 to 12 hours, or even more
(see the hearing testimony of November 26, 2007, page 55).

Besides this, the alimentary remnants in the small intestine must also be considered,
and thus, as hypothesised by Professor Umani Ronchi, it would be possible to think
that these remnants could have been found in the duodenum either because of an
imperfect apposition of the ligatures, or because of an apposition of the ligatures that
took place with such manner and timing as to make it impossible to avoid a sliding

178
of material from the duodenum to the small intestine. The fact [that the] duodenum
[is] empty is not [necessarily] fully reliable.

The following considerations add a further element of uncertainty to using the


criterion of gastric emptying: Meredith’s friends, in speaking of an afternoon meal
on November 1, 2007 that was eaten with Meredith, stated that no alcoholic
substances were consumed; they drank only water. According to statements by Dr.
Lalli, based on the toxicological tests, the presence of ethyl alcohol in a concentration
of 0.43gram/litre was found (Lalli report page 54); Professor Cingolani declared that
it was a quantity equivalent to about a glass of beer or wine. During the autopsy, Dr.
Lalli discovered a vegetal fragment in the oesophagus, apparently a piece of
mushroom (page 46, Lalli report). In relation to this data, it is possible that Meredith,
arriving home around 21:00 pm, ate something to accompany this meal – the last one
of her life – with a bit of wine or a beer. This eventuality, with regard to
hypothesising based on the above-mentioned objective elements, adds a final
uncertainty to the notion of using the criterion of gastric emptying to determine the
time of death with any certainty.

In relation to the above, from the difficulty of restricting the range by using the
criterion of gastric emptying as well as Henssge's nomogram, it is held that the time
of death must be indicated by the time range for which the various experts as well as
the consultants substantially [183] agree, and that is from 20 to 30 hours before the
first examination on the body took place at 00:50 am on November 3, 2007 (on this
point, see also page 47 of the transcript of the November 26, 2007 hearing, in which
even the Sollecito defence consultant, Professor Vinci, declared himself in agreement
with this range).

Taking only the thanato-chronological data in account, the time of death can
therefore be situated at between 04:50 am on November 2, 2007 back to 18:50 pm on
November 2, 2007. This range can be further restricted, therefore, only on the basis of
circumstantial evidence, according to which, as has been seen, Meredith was still
alive at 21:00 pm and on her way back to her home at number 7, via della Pergola.

Finally, it is excluded that, when Meredith suffered the lesions and the violence that
caused her death, she was in a state of alcoholic intoxication. Dr. Lalli already
arrived at this conclusion, having found an alcohol level equal to 0.43gram/litre. As
[we have already] seen, the GIP-appointed experts also reached the conclusion that
Meredith was not alcoholically intoxicated, and that the quantity of alcohol found by
Dr. Lalli corresponded to the consumption of a glass of wine or beer.

179
GENETIC INVESTIGATIONS

(A)

Dr. Patrizia Stefanoni, a biologist working with the Forensic Genetics section of the
Scientific Police of Rome, testified at the hearing of May 22, 2009. She explained that
she works in forensic genetics, and thus performs DNA analyses with the goal of
studying findings and specimens found in various crime scenes. She testified that
DNA can be analysed from many points of view, including medical/health. With
reference to forensic analysis, DNA analysis can be useful whenever (or if) it is
possible to make a comparison. Indeed, the analysis of an unknown specimen alone
does not yield the identification of an individual; the technical data thus obtained is
only of value if the same technical data is possessed for a given person and one can
make the comparison. Thus, if the DNA of a suspect is known, then it is possible to
compare that DNA with DNA found in a specimen "using the same methodology,
[184] with the same analytic means, and state whether the sample does or does not
belong to the suspect. Also the victim of an attack can be compared with a specimen
taken from a given place in order to determine whether the specimen leads back to
the victim or not‛ (pages 6 and 7 of the transcripts).

Turning to the event which is the subject of this trial, she stated that during the early
afternoon of Friday, November 2, 2007, following notification of a technical
inspection in Perugia due to a homicide, she went to the house at via della Pergola 7,
arriving at around 19:00-20:00 pm, together with other personnel from the Scientific
Police of Rome, and immediately started working on the place where the victim had
been found, work which continued on the following days, and consisted of
individualizing and acquiring investigative elements which could turn out to be
useful.

This activity also concerned the car, an Audi A3, owned by Raffaele Sollecito, and on
November 13, 2007, a search took place at the Perugia flat at Corso Garibaldi 110
inhabited by said [Raffaele Sollecito]. On November 14 another search was made at
Patrick Diya Lumumba's pub, Le Chic, located in Perugia at via Alessi, and on
November 20, a search was made at the studio at via del Canerino 26 leased to Rudy
Hermann Guede.

180
On November 12, laboratory testing commenced on the material acquired up to
then; on November 22 a second phase of laboratory operations began, and continued
on November 27. Another start was made on December 10, 2007, and continued on
December 14, 2007.

On November 18, 2007, there was a further search at the house at via della Pergola 7,
and the laboratory testing relative to the results of this search started on December
21, 2007. The whole operation ended with the official viewing [presa visione] of the
results by the technical consultants on May 20, 2008. Subsequently, Dr. Stefanoni
handed in the technical report and the printout of all the analytical results obtained
from the analysed findings. The report was dated June 12, 2008 and it was deposited
with the Office of the Public Prosecutor (page 39 and following of the transcripts).

[185] With respect to the activity of searching for and collecting the various
specimens, she emphasised that she operated according to selective criteria, as it was
not possible to collect everything. Thus, she proceeded by first giving precedence to
collecting the obvious biological specimens, then seeking non-obvious biological
traces and, above all, potential specimens of blood, using the customary due care
and precaution necessary to ensure optimal preservation of the crime scene, and to
avoid "any careless handling of things which might cause contamination" (page 44,
transcripts); the purpose of this was both to protect the collector who might come
into contact with pathogenic substances and to protect the biological specimens. The
collector "must take care not to contaminate any possible findings and traces with his
own DNA...for this reason he uses personal protective devices which are gloves,
suits, shoe-covers and masks, in order to avoid any exchanges between himself and
his surroundings; obviously he must also prevent the findings from contaminating
each other" and to this end "each separate specimen or trace is preserved...in a safety
bag" (page 45); for the sample gathering phase sterile single-use material was used
such as tweezers, scalpels and test tubes.

During the first search in via della Pergola the technical operations were carried out,
proceeding from the most interior part of the house and going outward towards the
exit; this was done because the corpse was in the farthest room at the end of the
corridor, and also to avoid crossing several times over the same point. Before
carrying out any technical activity, she pointed out that every area of the house had
been filmed with the Spheron a device that allows filming as if it were a sort of video
camera which rotates on itself. In this way, the state of every room was "frozen", so
that it would be possible to see the positions and the scene as it was at the beginning.

181
The search in via della Pergola 7 started at around 19:00-20:00 pm on November 2,
2007; the personnel of the Provincial Cabinet [Gabinetto Provinciale] of the Scientific
Police of Perugia and the forensic pathologist Dr. Lalli were already on the scene and
had shown them the various areas of the house, in addition to the corpse, which was
still covered. Together with Dr. Lalli, they agreed on a timetable for the various
operations and relative tasks. [186] Indeed, there was forensic evidence right at the
feet of the victim that needed to be sampled and there was little room; it was
necessary to gather all the forensic evidence in the victim’s room and the corridor
which went from Meredith's room to the living room "because it was very obvious
that there were bloody shoeprints " (page 47 of the transcripts). It was thus necessary
for the activities relating to the inspection to be carried out in such a way as to
preserve those shoeprints, indicating them numerically during the re-creation
[allestimento] of the crime scene.

Thus, Dr. Stefanoni added that, before proceeding with the removal of the corpse, it
was necessary to start with "the floor of the corridor and the room of the victim, with
the bloody shoeprints and the objects on the floor at the feet of the corpse" (page 48);
immediately afterwards the corpse was removed by the forensic pathologist and the
first biological specimens were obtained from it, in particular the swabs among
which were the vaginal and rectal swabs.

She stated that the bloody prints in the corridor were very visible and clearly
shoeprints. These very obvious prints became fainter as they went towards the exit,
towards the main door, becoming progressively "fainter and almost filiform" (page
49). There were no visible prints of bare feet.

Once the corpse was removed, the search in the victim's room took place, starting at
the end of the evening and continuing on into the night, until about 02:00 am on
November 3. Dr. Stefanoni pointed out that the clock of the video camera used for
the filming was an hour ahead. The search continued the following day with more
gathering of evidence. They then moved on to the gathering of evidence from the
small bathroom, the one which was next to the victim's room, and then from the
larger bathroom, which was situated next to the house’s main entrance door. The
living room-kitchen corner [angolo cottura] was last examined in which bloody prints
were present on the floor. In this area, a few cigarette stubs, which were in an
ashtray on the table, were also bagged as evidence [repertati].

182
(B)

With reference to the non-visible biological traces, she explained that the
methodology used to detect this type of specimen consists of using a reactive
chemical called Luminol which, due to a chemical reaction, reveals, by fluorescence
(sic, actually chemiluminesecence), [187] traces of blood which may be present but
are invisible to the naked eye (latent). Revealing such traces not only helps to
reconstruct the dynamic of the events, but can also allow analysable DNA to be
found that may yield the genetic profile of the individual who left it. She specified,
however, that positive results from Luminol were also given by animal blood and by
certain other elements such as rust, fruit juice, vegetal chlorophyll, bleach, etc.

Dr. Stefanoni then proceeded to explain the technical tests performed in the
laboratory and the results of the analyses, indicating the items from which the
biological specimens being tested were taken.

She recalled that 460 specimens were found and analysed, and the analytical activity
was entirely detailed in the paper copy of the report (deposited and constituting part
of the trial dossier).

Before presenting the results, she gave an explanation of some general knowledge
notions in regard to DNA analysis.

She first explained that the examination of DNA gives no temporal information: one
cannot establish when a specimen or two specimens found at a crime scene were
actually left there, or if they were left at the same time, or one later than the other.

She explained that DNA is a biological molecule found in the nucleus, which is a
tiny organ present in the cells of nearly all tissues, with the exception of t red blood
cells, since red blood cells lose the nucleus at a certain point during their
differentiation process.17 Thus, apart from red blood cells, practically every cell of
our organism (seminal fluid, saliva, organic tissues in general, teeth, white blood
cells etc.) can be used for genetic testing insofar as it is possible to examine the DNA
contained in its nucleus.

She also explained that the DNA in the cells is subdivided, so to speak, into twenty-
two pairs of chromosomes, which are like short sticks with a threadlike structure,
which are the same as each other (autosomes) except for one pair, the sex chromosomes,
which determine the sex. The DNA of a [188] woman, she added, has two sex

17
i.e., during their development

183
chromosomes of type X (XX), and the DNA of a man has a Y and an X sex
chromosome (XY). As for the structure, she continued to explain, the DNA molecule
can be visualized like a long threadlike chain, and the analysis examines "certain
zones of the DNA; we don't analyse the entire DNA, it would be impossible; we look
at certain characteristic features of the DNA in each person" (page 10). These zones
are called "loci" [loci genici] The form of DNA is identical in every cell of a given
person: every one of our cells has the same DNA and "it contains the molecular
information to recreate all of the living processes of all organisms; thus, every
organism has its own DNA...until now, no two individuals have ever been found to
have the same DNA, with the exception of identical twins" (page 10). The DNA is
inherited at the moment of conception, with an equal contribution from each parent.
The Y chromosome, one of the two chromosomes from the pair determining the sex,
is transmitted unchanged from father to son throughout all the generations, so that
every male actually carries a piece of his own origin, since his Y is identical in the
father, the paternal grandfather, the great-grandfather and so forth; it will be
transmitted to all his sons and he will therefore share it with his male cousins and
uncles from the father’s side.

She then pointed out that the biological items which arrive at the laboratory must
first be catalogued so as to be unequivocally identified right through the final phase
of testing, and that every item from the same event is given a number and a minimal
description indicating briefly what the single item is. She specified that the Scientific
Police uses the information system SQL LIMS, in which LIMS stands for Laboratory
Information Management System. The catalogued items are then photographed.

The first treatment consists of extracting the DNA from the content of the cell; it is
only the DNA that is of interest and not the other cell components or other
contaminating substances. Biological specimens are obviously taken from a surface
such as a floor, [189] or a car, which are by their very nature contaminated with dust,
from dirt spread over several surfaces, and from microorganisms such as bacteria,
yeasts [lieviti] and moulds which begin to degrade the trace at the very moment in
which it is created. The extraction of DNA is mechanical, using automatic systems.
In this case, she explained, a biorobot was used; this was a machine called the EZ1
workstation made by the firm Qiagen.

At this point, the DNA is subjected to a next phase of analysis, which consists of
determining whether DNA is present in the test tube and if so, in what quantity. The
DNA, if present, is immersed in an aqueous solution, colourless and absolutely non-

184
identifiable to the naked eye. There are instruments which detect the DNA
concentration.

[The DNA] is then subjected to another process known as amplification, which


consists of making copies of this DNA. The DNA specimen can be quantitatively
extremely small, but this method PCR (polymerase chain reaction) makes it possible
to increase the number of copies.

Finally, there is the stage of "electrophoresis, which is another analytic procedure


that allows a visible picture of the genetic profile to be obtained", and then "the
reading of the results which are determined by the electrophoresis" with the
determination of the genetic profile (pages 13-14).

The procedure which makes it possible to amplify the genetic points, and thus to
view them specifically, is a process called "polymerase chain reaction"(PCR). Once the
DNA is amplified using this PCR procedure, it is subjected to the method of analysis
called capillary electrophoresis, which uses movement of the DNA charges in an
electric field to derive a picture of the genetic profile to be seen. This genetic profile
is transmitted from the software which processes the data as a series of fluorescent
peaks.

The process of amplification known as PCR is the heart of the analysis. This process
allows 16 DNA points, which are present on both pairs, to be duplicated: 32 points
total, which contain, each one, many variations and this is the basis on which the
identification process is founded, since the combination of [190] these numerous
variants is unique for every individual, and thus determining them makes it possible
to identify that individual. These variants are expressions of the paternal and
maternal heredity, with the exception of identical twins.

The need to ‚duplicate‛ the DNA stems from the fact that the quantity of DNA
which is normally available and analysed is very small, sometimes just a few tenths
of a billionth of a gram. To this regard, the unit of measure used is the nanogram,
which corresponds to one billionth of a gram. Thus, in order to see a genetic profile,
it is necessary to make copies of those regions which are called "loci" [loci genici].
Returning to the PCR process, that is the polymerase chain reaction, Dr. Stefanoni
pointed out that the polymerase enzyme is the heart of the reaction: various
chemical substances are added, among which is a certain protein which catalyzes
and causes the DNA amplification, helped by various molecular substances (page
20, hearing on May 22, 2009): "Suppose we have a genetic locus, for example TPOX,

185
which is one of the several loci...then, by means of a thermal process, these two
helical strands – that is the DNA which, in fact, can be visualized as two adjacent
ribbons - separate because the heat makes them move apart from each other; and at a
certain point, another molecule attaches itself to the end of each helix...it is as though
it were searching for exactly the region that interests it, and from the chemical point
of view that is what it is does;...the two molecules carry this out in order to "see" each
other, they do see each other and, after they have seen each other, the enzyme,
namely the polymerase...sees the molecule, and sees what is written on the piece and
produces exactly the sister molecule", stated the witness on page 21. Therefore, this
process creates two identical molecules from a single molecule, and thus from just
one molecule one obtains two, and the process starts again: each of these small
pieces of helix detaches itself, the duplication occurs and thus from each one of them
one obtains two, always identical to the original one, and so forth. Therefore, in each
cycle there is an exponential increase of the number of copies of each of these points
(there are 16 different points on each chromosome in the pair), and at the 28th cycle,
which is the one where the reaction is made to take place because the kit is calibrated
to attain the [191] optimal result at 28 cycles, 67 million copies are obtained for each
point of the DNA of interest. Thus, for each point that originally came from a very
small quantity of DNA, after 28 cycles one has 67 million copies.

The result of a sample of blood found at the crime scene and analysed is represented
by the loci labeled as: TH01, VWE, TPOX, FGA and so forth. The characteristics
individualizing the DNA from the single trace are given as pairs of numbers: 6-8, 16-
19, 8-8, etc.

It was also observed that, if one considers two people, if the DNA of these two
people were to be analysed only at the three points at which there are pairs of equal
numbers, they would be indistinguishable from each other. The presence of these
pairs of equal numbers derives from the non-anomalous fact that many people share
part of the information contained in their DNA. But if additional points of the DNA
are then analysed, differences emerge, and it is thus possible to associate a trace to a
specific person. Thus, the more points are analysed, the more likely it is to be able to
associate a trace to a specific person.

All the possible variants that can occur at each point of the DNA can be represented
graphically, and the association of the different numbers, and the combinations of
numbers from each locus gives the complete genetic profile.

186
Thus, every individual has, in his own genetic profile, at least one of these
fluorescent peaks. At least one, because in the case where there are two equal
numbers (for example TPOX has 8-8), one does not see two peaks but just one, since
the other one which is superimposed over it has the same size, so that one only sees
one peak even though there are two. There are two because one comes from the
father and one from the mother.

Accordingly, "each peak represents a characteristic of the DNA in that point and is
thus defined as an allele" (page 24 of the transcripts).

In the graphs which represent the result of the electrophoresis, there are peaks of
varying height at the different points. These heights come out of the machine and it
is possible to state that the higher the peak, the more DNA is present.

[192] A complete genetic profile, consisting therefore in 16 points from 15 pairs plus
the pair of sex chromosomes, yields the identity of a specific person so precisely that
to have a probability of finding another person with the same genetic profile, one
would have to imagine seeking that individual in a population of a trillion people.

It can happen that not all 16 points are amplified, so that it is not possible to see all
15 pairs and the sex pair, but only some of the pairs. This can happen if the sample is
too scarce or if the DNA was ‚damaged‛ by some external cause (excessive heat or
contamination by bacteria, which begin to cut up the DNA immediately...).
However, with more than 11 or 12 pairs of alleles, the probability of identification
remains high, and it is even higher if a rare characteristic is found (for example, if a
rare allele is found in one locus, [for example] the one determining that an
individual has grey eyes).

It is also possible that two traces of DNA lie on top of one another at a crime scene.
In this case, the two DNAs are mixed and it is not possible to distinguish them at
first. But when the analysis is performed, in the end it reveals that the DNA is
actually a composition of two DNAs from two people, or three, or four. In this case,
the analysis is much more complicated. This event is commonly observed in cases of
sexual violence; in the vaginal swab taken on the victim it is frequent to find her
DNA (from her own vaginal cells) and the DNA, which can be spermatic, of the
attacker.

This situation is visible from the graphic representation of the analyses, in which at
certain points one can perceive more than one fluorescent peak, though not
necessarily at every point, since it is possible for two people to have the same genetic

187
characteristics at certain points. It is also possible to know whether a male or a
female is represented, by the sex chromosomes: if it is a mixture of DNA from two
females, there will be no Y chromosome, if two males (in a [193] fight or a stabbing it
is possible to obtain mixtures of the blood of two people) the Y would be more or
less at the same height as the X, due to the fact that the alleles, at every gene locus ,
are of about the same height. An imbalance between the alleles belonging to the
same locus arouses strong suspicion that the mixture may be of a male and a female.
The imbalance derives from a quantitative difference in the DNA from one person
and from the other (page 30). However, in such a mixed trace, one must take into
account that the female DNA has two X chromosomes and the male DNA has an X
and a Y. Therefore, if for example there are 100 cells from the woman and 100 cells
from the man, in order to establish the proportion of X to Y chromosomes one must
take into consideration the total amount of X’s and the total amount of Y’s.
Therefore, "a dose of X's and a dose of Y's gives three doses of X for one dose of Y...if
in height, therefore in RFU, the peak of X is 900 and the peak of Y is 100, this does
not mean that the quantitative relation of the two DNA's is 9 to 1, as one might
think, but it is 4 to 1" (pages 31- 32).

The part of the DNA analysis concerning the Y chromosome is particularly


important. In this regard, Dr. Stefanoni emphasised that, apart from the analysis of
the complete profile, it is possible to analyze specifically the peaks, those STR 18 that
are specific to the Y chromosome. It is thus possible to complete the same analysis
which is normally done on the whole DNA on just the Y chromosome. Obviously
this analysis is only possible on male DNA since female DNA does not have the Y.

The characteristic of the Y is that it originates uniquely in male DNA, and is shared
by all the descendants of a family from the father's side. It contains certain regions of
the DNA, the loci, which are analysable by the same methods as those used to
analyze the complete DNA, which yield the genetic profile.

In forensic genetics, this analysis of the Y makes it possible to identify the male DNA
principally in a mixed trace, and to give the precise characterisation of the male
DNA alone. The profile which emerges is a much simpler profile than the one which
also contains the [194] identifying peaks from the female component. The genetic
profile of the Y is called the haplotype, which is equivalent to the genetic profile of
the Y. Also the genetic profile of the Y has alleles, allele being a synonym for
fluorescent peak in this context.

18
short tandem repeats

188
The PCR reactions and the other DNA analyses are carried out using three
diagnostic kits which are used throughout the world, being as they are sold by
multinational corporations. When a biological specimen needs to be analysed it is
placed in a test tube in very precise quantities, and the PCR reaction occurs
following standard procedures that are used in every forensic genetics laboratory.
The kits used have been subjected to rigorous validation, and therefore are kits that
have been approved at the international level.

In the event under discussion, Dr. Stefanoni further specified that [the kit] was used
to "analyse the total DNA, the DNA from all 15 points plus the sex gene,...always
using the same kit produced by the firm Applera, from Applied Biosystem; a kit that
is called Identifiler. Whereas to analyze the Y chromosome, another kit, which is
called Way Filer, produced by the same firm, Applied Biosystem, is used." She
added that "these procedures, not only the kit, but the analytical procedures as well,
are those approved at the international level and have been published for many
years in numerous international journals in the field‛ (pages 35 and 36 of the
transcripts).

(C)

She explained that three vaginal and rectal swabs were taken from the victim,
identified with the letters A, B and C; on one of these swabs she performed a
particular "extraction" analysis called "differential" because it tends to separate into
two the cellular fractions, obtaining on the one hand spermatozoids and on the other
the epithelial cells of the vagina or rectum of the victim, as these two types of cells
are morphologically very different and can thus be quite clearly separated using
very precise analytical techniques. No seminal fluid was detected by these analyses,
but the genetic results obtained from the test on these traces did make it possible to
distinguish the genetic profile of the [195] victim and the genetic profile of Guede.
This latter profile, she emphasised, was found using only the Y chromosome.

In this regard, she recalled that the Y chromosome within mixed DNA is of
exclusively masculine origin, and thus the masculine part of mixed DNA can be
examined separately. She also observed that the feminine contribution to the sample
outweighed the masculine contribution by a large factor. She also stated that in the
general genetic analysis, where one can "see" all of the DNA, the masculine part is
not revealed, due to a technical limitation of the PCR. She added that the analysis

189
performed in order to check for the presence of the Y chromosome is conducted, so
to speak, blindly, since before obtaining the result, there is no element which can
actually indicate the presence or absence of male DNA.

It was assumed at first that male DNA might be found in the vaginal swab, and
indeed, in trace B (from one of the vaginal swabs) Rudy Hermann Guede's genetic
profile was found in the Y chromosomes present there. No male DNA was found in
the other swabs.

She emphasised that in general, the Y chromosome was analysed within biological
specimens that could be mixed, and the goal of the analysis was to reveal the
possible presence of male DNA. She specified that the analysis of the Y chromosome
focuses only on this chromosome while ignoring all the other points, and is thus in
some sense much more sensitive: the test ignores female DNA and only detects male
DNA. The search for the Y chromosome is made on certain particular samples; for
these, the Y chromosome kit is used, because it is more sensitive than the general
DNA detection kit. These analyses were performed but gave no results on the other
swabs, including the rectal ones.

As for what appeared to be hairlike filaments found on the victim's body, when
examined under a microscope they appeared to be strands of wool and gave no
results.

Only the DNA of the victim was found in the samples taken from underneath the
fingernails. It was noted, however, that the nails were very short and probably could
not have given any significant scratches to the attacker.

[196] She stated that the swab from which she determined the biological profile of
the victim in order to compare it with the other genetic profiles found on the victim
was taken from the largest wound. She recalled that DNA analysis ‚is a comparison
analysis: it is necessary to have a sample of DNA from an individual identified by
first and last name in order to be able to state: this is from this person, or this is not
from this person‛ (page 68).

In listing the objects found in the victim's room, she mentioned a glass, a bra, a green
towel, a light-coloured towel, a beige towel, a white sheet, three pieces of toilet
paper, a ball of cotton wool, and a hairlike filament. The bra was found at the feet of
the body of the victim, near the threshold of the room, and of the 6 samples taken
(labeled from A to F), only trace B yielded a Y chromosome (only the Y chromosome,
not the complete mixture) identified as belonging to Rudy Hermann Guede. The bra,

190
she said, was found in a peculiar condition: "it had clearly been torn off, the straps
were literally torn and part of the back had also been cut; there was one clear cut and
therefore it appeared to have been cut " (page 70 of the transcripts). It thus appeared
to be one of the most interesting finds, so that the analyses specifically searching for
Y chromosomes were performed on the samples taken from it, but all the traces
yielded negative results except for trace B which was identified as belonging to
Rudy Hermann Guede.

The victim's underwear, also found at the feet of the corpse, was negative for
seminal fluid after examination by ultraviolet rays, a method which reveals the
presence of seminal fluid by fluorescence, although differently from Luminol.

She emphasised that many samples were taken from the pair of jeans found near the
feet of the victim, but all yielded only traces of the victim's blood. She added that the
jeans were found inside out, and there were copious traces of blood mainly on the
upper part, and also traces of blood that did not seem to be caused by rubbing.

[197] Various samples of haematological blood-like substances were taken from


different parts of the victim's room: from the door panels and the door handle, from
the left panel of the closet, from the floor around the radiator, and drippings from
the base of the desk. All these samples gave the same result: they were the blood of
the victim.

The small piece of material with hooks was mentioned as a particularly relevant find
from the second inspection, on December 18, 2007. Another sample was taken from
the wall in front of the door, which showed a streak of blood apparently made by a
hand. An analysis was made on this sample in order to identify the genetic profile of
the person who had left that very visible streak between the bed and the night table,
perhaps leaving behind some skin cells in doing so. But the sample did not yield any
genetic results.

The small piece of material with hooks yielded a genetic result showing a mixture of
the DNA of the victim and of Raffaele Sollecito. This result was obtained both by
complete analysis of the DNA as a true mixture, and as a genetic result obtained on
the Y haplotype.

[Two] additional pieces of evidence were acquired during the second search of the
house: an imitation leather handbag, listed as number 166, which had been seen on
the mattress in the victim's room during the first search, and was found in the closet
of the same room on December 18, and the light-blue sweatshirt listed as number

191
171. Four samples were taken from the sweatshirt: A, B, C and D. The handbag and
the sweatshirt yielded similar results: besides the victim's DNA, the DNA of Rudy
Hermann Guede was also found, in a genetic mixture, and this result was confirmed
by the analysis of the haplotype of the Y chromosome performed on the same trace.
The sweatshirt gave the genetic profile of the victim on all four specimens, but only
one of them (trace B, found on the left cuff of the sweatshirt) yielded the genetic
profile of the Y chromosome.

[198] In the small bathroom, three traces of the victim's blood were found on the
bathmat; on the light switch plate with two switches there were traces "of diluted
blood, blood presumably mixed with water, as it was pale pink in colour" (page 76)
which also came from the victim; a sample was taken from the front part of the
faucet of the sink, which yielded the genetic profile of Amanda Knox; another
sample taken from a specimen visible to the naked eye on the edge of the drain of
the bidet yielded the genetic profiles of the victim and of Knox, a genetic mixture
also found on the box of cotton buds near the sink.

The drippings found inside the sink appeared to be diluted blood, pink in colour,
proven by testing to be human blood and yielding the genetic mixture of the victim
and Knox.

On the toilet cover there was a bloody substance which yielded the genetic profile of
the victim; this was also found on the door-frame. Near the toilet flush was another
stain presumed to be blood, but which ended up yielding a negative result.

A sample of feces and two pieces of toilet paper were taken from the toilet in the
larger bathroom. The paper yielded the profile of Rudy Hermann Guede, both on
total DNA testing and on testing for the Y chromosome alone. The feces gave no
result either by DNA analysis or by Y chromosome analysis.

Three samples were taken from two very wet lilac towels found by the Flying Squad
[Squadra Mobile] of Perugia inside the washing machine, but they gave no results, nor
did a grey hairdryer confiscated by the Flying Squad.

Concerning the negative result on the feces, Dr. Stefanoni testified that excremental
material is ill-suited to genetic analysis because [199] of the presence of large
numbers of bacteria which fragment the DNA and thus destroy it.

192
Samples were taken from the toilet paper because this paper, used in wiping, is
much likelier to contain epithelial cells, and they did indeed yield the genetic profile
of Rudy Guede.

Amanda Knox's room underwent technical testing only during the second
inspection, on December 18; some items were sent to Forensics subsequent to
individual collection by the Flying Squad of Perugia. The tests gave no significant
results. The shoes were tested, particularly the soles, and gave a negative result.

In Filomena Romanelli's room a few items were tested: a hairlike fibre [formazione
pilifera] on the lower part of the window frame, and a presumed haematological
substance on the wooden part of the window which held the broken pane. Both of
these items yielded negative results on analysis. During the second search, on the
suggestion of the defence’s technical consultant Professor Saverio Potenza, the large
rock and two fragments found on the floor of the room were tested, but they yielded
negative results.

Six cigarette stubs were found in the ashtray on the table in the living room-kitchen
corner. Three yielded the same genetic profile of an unidentified male; one of them
contained a mixture of saliva and genetic profiles from Raffaele Sollecito and
Amanda Marie Knox; the others yielded the genetic profile of an unidentified
woman.

Still in the living room-kitchen corner, five samples of haematological substances


were taken from the floor, belonging to the shoeprints which became progressively
weaker as they went towards the main door and exited the flat. The result showed
them to be human blood belonging to the victim. The last of these samples, taken
from a print right next to [200] the entrance, gave a negative result, probably,
according to Dr. Stefanoni, because the quantity was too small.

On the floor of the corridor of the flat (the corridor going from the small bathroom to
the living room-kitchen corner), some samples were taken of bloody spots nearly
circular in form, which were identified as the blood of the victim.

She then explained the results obtained from the Luminol tests, stating that "this test
was performed during the second search, at the end of all the other activities, on the
floor of the following areas: Filomena Romanelli's room, Amanda Knox's room, the
corridor, the living room-kitchen corner and the larger bathroom" (p. 83 of the
transcripts). She pointed out that on the basis of this test, she could not say with
certainty that blood was present, since other substances as well may cause Luminol

193
to glow. The sample called L1 in the inspection report, taken in Romanelli's room,
corresponded to the genetic profile of the victim; the sample called L2, also from
Romanelli's room, yielded a mixed genetic profile of the victim and Knox; the
sample L3, taken from Knox's room, as well as the other two (L4 and L5) yielded
Knox's genetic profile. Of the samples L6, L7, L8 and L9, only L8 (item 183) from the
corridor, almost in the middle of the corridor in front of the door to Amanda Knox's
room, gave the result: victim plus Knox. The last sample L9 yielded no result.

The living room-kitchen corner gave a negative result on the Luminol test, as did the
larger bathroom.

(D)

The November 13 inspection in the apartment used by Raffaele Sollecito did not
yield any significant results. Various samples were taken of a pair of rubber gloves
and a mixed result was obtained: Sollecito plus Knox; the samples involving a small
sponge revealed Sollecito’s profile. In the bedroom ‚Luminol was used on the
external [201] handle of the door, two samples from the floor‛ and the evidence
revealed the genetic profile of Sollecito plus Knox. Even though this was mixed, the
results were only a partial genetic profile, having lacked some of Raffaele’s alleles.

In the bathroom, highlighting was done with Luminol and the results were negative,
except for one specimen, number 95, a presumed blood-like substance, with the
genetic result of Sollecito plus Knox: another sample taken from the floor showed
Knox’s genetic profile. In the kitchen-entrance [area], the Luminol highlighted five
samples including the DNA profile of an unknown individual. Fourteen samples
were taken from a pair of Nike shoes, all negative for any blood-like substance. On
the elastic boxer shorts, a blood-like substance was revealed on two samples, blood
belonging to Knox. On the jack-knife, 4 samples were taken, with negative results
where blood-derived substances had been looked for; on the fourth sample, which
involved the handle, the genetic profile was found to be of Sollecito plus Knox.

Seven samples were taken from the exhibit [reperto] acquired by the Flying Squad of
Perugia (i.e, Exhibit [reperto] 36) and consisting of a large knife, 31 centimetres long;
on the handle, from the trace indicated as ‚trace A‛, the genetic profile of Amanda
Knox was found and in a point on the blade, the genetic profile of the victim was
found. All of the other samples gave negative results.

194
Several articles of clothing (also acquired by the Flying Squad of Perugia) all gave
negative results, with the exception of a rag which, in its internal part, contained the
genetic profile of an undetermined man.

In a dishrag, the analysis had given a negative result for any blood-derived
substance, but it showed the mixed Sollecito plus Knox genetic profile; in a small
yellow sponge a non-blood-derived trace of Amanda Knox was found. In other
clothing (bathrobe and towels) mixed Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito traces
were found.

The samples taken from the car all gave negative results.

[202] With reference to the inspection carried out on November 20, 2007 in the studio
flat where Rudy Hermann Guede was staying, the various findings that were
examined (towels, washing machine filter, pants, tickets) yielded the genetic profile
of Guede. Also, other findings and samples did not give significant results but they
did yield the genetic profile of Guede.

She stressed that, in total, 228 collected samples were taken into consideration from
which 460 specimens were taken and analysed.

All the specimens from the vaginal swabs of the victim yielded negative results for
seminal fluid; one of these traces, indicated as Trace B, had, as was said, the genetic
profile of the victim and the profile Y of Guede. This is Exhibit [reperto] 21.

Three samples were taken from the light-blue-coloured bathmat and indicated by
the letters A, B, and C. All three samples yielded the genetic profile of the victim;
from blood of the victim.

To obtain the data for comparison, two salivary swabs were taken from Raffaele
Sollecito and passed on to the Office of Forensics of the Perugia Police Headquarters,
from which the DNA profile and the Y haplotype profile was extracted.

This was likewise done for Amanda Knox (obviously only the total DNA, given the
absence of Y, in the case of a female subject).

Four samples were taken from the jack-knife and only one yielded a positive genetic
result: the sample taken from the belt clip. The trace did not turn out to be blood and
it yielded a mixed genetic result: Sollecito plus Knox. To confirm the presence of
Sollecito’s DNA, a chromosome Y analysis was performed, which gave as a genetic
result the Y profile of Sollecito.

195
In two separate work sessions, seven samples were taken from the 31-centimetre
long knife (Exhibit 36) found in Raffaele Sollecito’s house.

[203] The only traces that yielded a genetic profile were traces A and B; trace A
yielded the genetic profile of Knox and trace B yielded the genetic profile of the
victim.

She specified that trace B had been taken from a point on the face of the blade; she
added that no biological trace was visible to the naked eye. However [she added
that+ ‚under considerable lighting, a series of streaks were visible to the naked eye.
These streaks ran parallel to the upper part of the blade, therefore, more or less, they
were parallel to this side [of the blade] and towards the point they went downward
and, therefore, they followed the shape of the point. These streaks, anomalies in the
metal, were visible to the naked eye under intense lighting‛ (page 95 of the
transcript). Still in regard to the visibility of these streaks, she specified that they
were "visible under good lighting by changing the angle at which the light hit the
blade, since obviously the blade reflects light and thus creates shadows, making
imperfections visible".(page 96 of the transcripts).

The samples taken from the handle, in the points indicated with the letters A, D, F
were taken in order to verify the possible presence of DNA by the person who
grasped that knife. In particular, for sample ‚A‛, a particular point had been chosen,
‚in which there’s the hand-guard‛ (page 95) and therefore, in all likelihood, the
point where there was the most friction between the hand that grasped the knife and
the handle. This sample yielded the result of Amanda Knox’s genetic profile.

The other samples yielded negative results, except the one taken from the blade,
from the ‚scratches and streaks visible under good lighting, by changing the angle of
the lighting with regards to the blade‛ that yielded the genetic profile of the victim
(page 96 hearing May 22, 2009).

In order to obtain the genetic profile of Rudy Guede, necessary for the comparison,
his toothbrush, found in his bathroom, was used. The genetic profile result was
identical, both on the head of the bristles, as well as the place where one [204] grips
the handle when holding it: his DNA was found, both as a complete genetic profile
and as a Y-profile.

With reference to the victim’s bra, exhibit *reperto] 59, which was found not too far
from the corpse’s feet, Dr. Stefanoni indicated the point in which a cut had most
likely been made, since it was where there was a clear cutting off in the material.

196
More samples from various points on the bra were taken: two samples from the
interior part of the bra cups; four samples of the straps that seemed torn, because
there were cotton threads that had come out; another sample, identified by the letter
B- from the portion of the elastic band that runs from the lateral side of the woman’s
body until the back part, adjacent to the missing little piece which was recovered
separately. In the posterior part of the bra, indicated with the letter B, the Y profile of
Rudy Hermann Guede emerged; the genetic profile of total DNA was that of the
victim, from the victim’s blood.

Moving on to the findings taken from the small bathroom, it was pointed out that
there was a substance most likely of a blood-derived nature on the ‚edge of the bidet
drain‛; the sample was taken during the inspection in order to extract the specimen
that yielded a genetic result of a mixed profile: victim plus Knox. It was positive for
human blood. The same procedure was done on the container of cotton swabs that
was on the sink. The collected sample revealed a mixed genetic profile: victim plus
Knox and it tested positive for human blood. On the left part of the sink there was a
trace, this too, most likely of a blood-derived nature since it was of a pinkish colour,
like the others. This particular trace originated from the high part and went towards
the drain, towards the lower part. The analysis provided the following results:
human blood and the genetic profile of the victim plus that of Amanda Knox.

The samples taken from the toilet lid in the small bathroom provided as a genetic
result: victim profile and human blood.

The trace present on the right side of the inside part of the bathroom door frame was
positive for human blood and it revealed the genetic profile of the victim.

[205] One of the cigarette butts collected from the blue-coloured glass ashtray, sitting
on the table of the living room-kitchenette, revealed the mixed genetic profile of
Sollecito plus Knox.

Then, with regard to the little piece of bra, made up of a bit of fabric with the clasp,
she mentioned that the sample taken from the fabric had been identified with the
letter A and the one from the two hooks, by the letter B.

The exam showed a positive genetic result for human blood on trace A and the
profile of the victim. On trace B, from the clasp, a mixed genetic profile was found:
the victim plus Sollecito and that result was further confirmed by the Y profile of
Raffaele Sollecito, also found on the hooks.

197
The biological nature of this trace, she specified, was not blood (‚the hooks
presumably have epithelial cells‛) and one of the two hooks was particularly bent
out of shape (page 100 of the transcript).

The handbag, identified as Exhibit [reperto] 166, was found on the mattress of the bed
in the victim’s room during the first inspection. During the inspection of December
18 - when it was catalogued - it was found in the closet. On this handbag a trace, that
appeared to be of a haematic nature, was found and the genetic profile that resulted
yielded a result of a mixed profile: the victim and Guede. The genetic profile of the
latter was confirmed by the analysis of the Y chromosome, which indeed, had
revealed the profile of Guede.

The blue-coloured sweatshirt, exhibit [reperto] 171, had been collected as well during
the course of the second search, the one carried out on December 18 and the sample
collected from one of the cuffs, identified by the letter B, had revealed the genetic
profile of the victim and the chromosome Y of Rudy Hermann Guede (page 101
hearing May 22, 2009 statements of Dr. Stefanoni).

With reference to the traces enhanced by Luminol, the test performed on the floor of
the various areas of the flat had given the following results: in Ms. Romanelli’s room
the trace indicated as L1 revealed the victim’s DNA. In the same room, in a point
closer to the [206] entrance, a trace (L2) was found that yielded as a genetic result the
mixed profile of both the victim and of Amanda Knox.

The Luminol also revealed another foot print, left along the hallway and the genetic
result of the sample was the genetic profile of Amanda Knox.

Another sample, also taken from the hallway, but in front of the wall that separates
the victim’s room from Knox’s room, yielded a mixed genetic profile: the victim plus
Knox.

She pointed out that Luminol also detects substances other than blood. However, the
presence of DNA also meant, necessarily, that biological material was present (page
102).

Answering Raffaele Sollecito’s defence team’s questions, she specified that the
analyses had taken place at the Rome Forensic Laboratory.

She knew what the certification of quality assurance ISO 9001 was, and she specified
that they had been waiting for over a year for said certification for which they had
carried out the necessary procedures. She specified that, contrary to the ISO 9001

198
quality assurance certification which pertains to the procedures to follow in order to
guarantee good execution of the analyses, the ISO 17025 certification is pertains to
the technical laboratory verifications and also the instruments and the equipment
that are used for the analyses.

She added that they were in the process of requesting this certification as well. She
explained that in order to be able to obtain said certifications ‚one needs to put in
writing things, that, maybe, are already being done, however, certainly, it’s
necessary to put it in writing because there is an external certification agency which
must be informed‛(page 106).

She explained that the procedures adopted and that yielded the results presented,
were the ones that were implemented by all genetic forensic laboratories that dealt
with this type of analysis.

With specific reference to the trace found on the bra hooks, she stated that the
procedures indicated by protocols had been followed. The Applied Biosystem’s
Quantifiler Kit was used for a quantity of DNA [207] suitable for it to be amplified.
The trace amount was quantified with the software designed for quantification,
which is included with the instrument, the [ABI Prism] 7700 that was used. She
confirmed that the DNA which belonged to Raffaele Sollecito, had been found only
on the hooks and that the obtained amplification result was an ‚absolutely good
quality result‛ (page 109).

During the hearing on October 4, 2008, presided by the Preliminary Hearing Judge
[GUP] (see page 47. and what follows of the related acquired record) she stressed
that the analysis could also be repeated and she added that the ‚DNA that is
extracted is kept in the best possible conditions, and therefore, in a refrigerated
environment between minus 25 degrees and minus 28 degrees Centigrade< it is
however subject to atmospheric, physical and chemical aggressions that could
certainly compromise its usage; <DNA, however has a process, that is to say, a
molecule already in and of itself which has undergone damage and can continue to
be subject to it, even in position, in refrigeration preservation‛ and she further
specified that ‚DNA<like any other molecule, when it is frozen and unfrozen<.can
be subject to damage and one must verify if the molecule remained absolutely
intact‛.

She also pointed out that she was able to specify how much total DNA there was:
dealing with a mixed trace, and looking under the electropherogram, she was able to

199
measure the quantitative ratio between the two DNA, that of Raffaele Sollecito and
that of Meredith Kercher, a ratio that was assessed at 1 to 6: the DNA of the victim,
that is, ‚is 6 times more than the DNA of Sollecito‛ (page 110).

She confirmed having entered the Via della Pergola house at 7PM/8PM on
November 2, 2007 and prior to that, the Forensic Police of Perugia, who had marked
[allestito] the crime scene, had entered. That is, they had catalogued the rooms, the
potential evidence [reperti], and highlighted the areas of greatest interest by placing
letters and numbers. With reference to the victim’s room, she pointed out that when
she arrived ‚there were a very large number of findings‛ and the bra immediately
revealed itself to be of particular interest since the straps were frayed and in
addition, there was ‚an area that not only was missing a piece, but it had been
sharply cut‛ (page 115). She thought about looking for the small missing piece,
without, however [208] it becoming a priority, precisely because of the many
findings, superimposed one on the other. She also explained that the small piece of
bra had already been seen, photographed and captured on video during the first
search of the house.

She stated that she was present when the corpse was lifted and moved, and under
the back of the corpse, she had not seen that little piece of the bra. She recalled that
under the back, there was a pillow and a red floor, ‚completely covered with blood,
with lots of locks of hair.‛ The little piece of fabric with the clasp had been found at
night, around 2 AM on November 3, according to what emerged from the video of
that inspection. The clasp was immediately brought to her attention and
photographed. It wasn’t however, catalogued during the course of that first search,
because, although important, being a missing piece of the bra, there was the fact that
‚however we had taken the entire bra‛ (page 121); furthermore, just like the small
piece [of bra], other objects like the handbag and the sweatshirt were left behind and
which, catalogued during the second inspection on December 18, yielded results.
The small piece of bra in question was repositioned where it had been found and in
other words, on the floor, on top of which the pillow was found, on which the
lifeless body of Meredith had been placed.

During the second search, the December 18, 2007 one, this small piece of bra with
hooks was found in another area of the room, near the desk, under a little rug, and
around one metre or one and a half meters from where it had been seen during the
first search. She wasn’t able to tell the reason or the manner in which it had been
moved.

200
She wasn’t able to specify how many people had entered the house at Via della
Pergola 7, between the first search and the December 18 one, nor the number of
ingresses made.

During the inspection of November 2-3 they had gloves. There were about 10 people
but they were not all present in the room at the same time. It was possible to move
from one room to the other with the same shoe covers but it wasn’t necessary to do
so. There was however, and necessarily, ‚one person passing the bags, another
passing the test tubes, another passing the paper used for swabbing, in other words,
we weren’t able to gather the findings and leave the bags with the findings on that
floor [209] therefore it’s obvious that there were at least some people who went
down the hallway and who reached the threshold of the exit‛ (page 127).

The shoe covers were changed only when leaving the house and not when a person
walked in the hallway, and would go into Meredith’s room and leave (the room).
The gloves were the single-use type. These gloves have two purposes: to maintain
the safety of the investigators from possible infections, an aim that is pursued even
in the laboratory; to prevent that ‚by touching various things I could inadvertently
mix up a finding’s biological trace with another one‛ and this is done for the
purpose of guaranteeing the authenticity of the finding. In fact, the investigator,
himself, ‚having DNA, obviously some cells on his body, could transfer his DNA on
to the finding‛ (page 129). In regard to the possibility of such a transfer of DNA,
however, she specified the following: ‚ <DNA <.is associated with cells or at least
with the nuclei of cells; the biological trace<in the moment of its development, is a
biological trace that I define as fresh<in the sense that it contains a certain amount
of water, because all of our biological fluids have a large amount of water: semen,
saliva, even let’s say, skin, in a certain way---but it’s a slightly different subject---
they (all) contain a certain amount of water. Now, if I touch a fresh trace, it’s really
obvious, I stain my hands with that liquid which contains DNA; but if I touch a dry
trace, that is dry because it’s old, because it’s already dried up, it doesn’t retain any
of its liquid state that can be transferred, that can encourage the transfer of cells from
one place to the other; it’s very difficult to have a transfer of biological
substances<During the inspection, there is an ashtray<with six cigarette butts,
obviously these butts<are all in the same ashtray<they’ve come into contact with
each other, these cigarette butts, because if I put out a butt, possibly I bump the
adjacent one , and yet these butts have all given a different genetic result: three of
them gave a genetic profile of a man, two gave a genetic profile of another woman
and one gave a mixed genetic profile. Therefore< it’s not so simple to transfer

201
genetic material from one point to another: it depends on how the findings come in
contact with each other, for how long<which forces act among the findings, and
most of all, the time period. I mean, [210] even if I rub a dry trace, and I put it in a
certain place and I have this place touched for an infinite amount of time, there will
not be a transfer, but we’ve seen this with lots of findings, even the sock itself:
there’s a sock<that during the second search it was found rolled up in this little blue
rug, where the little piece of fabric with hooks was later found. This exhibit [reperto]
was jammed in this small rug; out of three samples, two gave a positive result for the
DNA of the victim, therefore, for the blood of the victim, but one sample taken from
the elastic hem, where I therefore presumed that I would be able to identify the
person who had worn it, because by rubbing the elastic it collects the cells of the
person who puts it *the bra+ on <this DNA I did not find. Therefore, DNA transfer
is not a foregone conclusion. DNA transfer is not so simple because many conditions
need to be met<.both the amount and also the time period of the development of
the trace (pages 130 and what follows).

Regarding the possibility of transferring exfoliated cells that may be found on a hand
or a glove, Dr Stefanoni explained that in the abstract, anything could be transferred,
but it remained to be seen in practice. So, with specific reference to exfoliated cells,
she stressed that it would be necessary to press down with force or scratch over a
surface where these would have to be present (for example, the back of a person).

She clarified in this regard, the concept of exfoliated cells, of which she had spoken
about and had also explained in the report. She emphasised therefore, that the
exfoliated cells which she was referring to are not the skin cells ‚that come off
naturally from the skin because they are dead cells‛ (page 133) that are shed
continuously, without any rubbing. She stressed that it’s not even possible to extract
DNA from those cells, because the nucleus is practically dead; they are keratinized
cells. She further clarified her explanation by adding that the case of cells that, due to
the position in which they were found on a finding, may lead one to believe a
friction occurred is different; cells that are found in the layers underneath the *skin’s+
barrier, if you will, made up of dead cells.

[211] The situation in Meredith’s room as it appeared in the December 18 search was
different from that of the first search: the mattress had been taken to the living room
area; a lot of clothes which, during the first search hadn’t been catalogued, were on
top of the bed slats; the closet doors, removed, were inside the room and leaning on
the door; the small rug that was in the corner towards the wall on the right was
found in front of the desk, a metre away from where it had been [before], and under

202
this small rug, during the December 18 search, the small piece of bra with hooks was
found, as well as the sock. This small rug hadn’t been analysed and one could see a
few traces that perhaps were of a blood-derived nature. She added that it was not
judged necessary to analyse the small rug because, although appearing soiled by a
substance that was presumably blood, it was in an area where there was an
‚enormous streak of blood‛ and so it was natural that it was soiled by the blood of
the victim, without it taking on any particular meaning.

She specified that both in the first, as well as in the second search, protective suits,
gloves and masks were put on. The masks were occasionally removed but always
paying attention to not talking or talking in a very cautious manner (p. 142) Between
the first and the second search there had been some rummaging, moving of objects,
etc. and she didn’t exclude the usefulness of the aforementioned precautions on
account of the objective (of the protective measures), and she added: ‚I know for
certain I told my colleagues of the Flying Squad [Squadra Mobile] and, in general,
colleagues are told about this: if you must go inside, use precautions in touching
things, in walking, use shoe covers, get these materials‛.

With reference to the single-use gloves, Dr. Stefanoni specified that they were
changed, in the course of the search, every time an object was touched that was
particularly soaked with blood, and when it was obvious that the gloves would be
soiled; ‚<otherwise, if it is just an ordinary object<I can move it, but this does not
lead to my DNA remaining, let’s say, attached. It depends on the object‛ (p. 149). She
added that one cannot see epithelial cells and therefore their possible presence on
the glove worn by the investigator is not visible to the naked eye (page 151).

[212] She related how it was possible for her to have touched different findings with
the same pair of gloves, and in particular, the bra, first, and then, the underwear.
However, she pointed out that, in this specific case, as the video images show (cf.
video footage), the part of the bra that was touched was not soiled by any blood.

Regarding the method used to collect [repertazione] the blood stains by means of a
small piece of paper that was used to collect a small quantity of blood and then this
blood was ‚re-smeared‛ using that same piece of paper (cf. video of November 3,
2007 at 4:45 PM and beyond), she explained that this method ‚may not seem suitable
for evidence collection [repertazione+‛ but, in reality and in that specific context, it
was suitable ‚due to the nature of the traces that were collected‛. In this regard she
pointed out that ‚both the traces on the sink as well as the traces in the bidet were
clearly rosy traces, so they appeared as certainly diluted traces, and they were

203
apparently all of the same origin because they were drippings <they were like a sort
of rivulet that started from the top and ended in the drain‛ (page 154). She pointed
out again, to stress the necessity of keeping in mind the context of the evidence
collection [repertazione], that such a work method was not used for different traces,
objects, and different areas such as the faucet and the cotton swabs. Rather, it did
apply to the evidence which was like a continuous rivulet of pinkish water that was
found in the sink or in the bidet.

In response to specific questions regarding these traces, she stated that if they had
originated from two different people and in a independent and distinct way, one
from the other, what would have formed would have been a mixture of the trace:
two DNA that would be separated at the start but that would have joined to form a
single trace. She believed it improbable however, to think of such an origin for the
trace, which was proven mixed, and this because of the fact that the same area was
affected and because of the much diluted blood appearance. She stressed, as well,
that both of the two specimens recovered in the bidet ‚were<more abundant on the
rim and on the plug on the drain, compared to the part, which is let's say, slanted,
where there is a very narrow line of the substance<However, she stressed, to the
naked eye, this link was evident" (page 157).

[213] Returning to the examination of the piece of bra, she confirmed that the
investigator who was shedding light on it had also touched the hooks which were on
that piece of bra. She stressed that the investigator, immediately before having
touched said hooks, changed his protective gloves ‚both he and I were going in, let’s
say, in the room, for the sole purpose, at this stage, to look for the clasp. So we had
just changed, and he was looking for where it could be, with the flashlight so he was
looking, let’s say, more attentively‛. (Pages 162 and 163, where acknowledgement is
made of the agreement by all parties and of the consequent certified provision to
acquire Dr. Stefanoni’s deposition given in the preliminary hearing).

She added that one could not see the gloves being changed in the video footage
because the purpose of the video was to document the technical activities and not
the instrument handling processes such as the changing of gloves. She confirmed,
therefore, that before having touched the clasp with those gloves, the gloves had not
touched any other objects, since they had just been put on. With those very same
gloves, however, the sock was then taken and catalogued [repertato] (page 166). She
pointed out, however, that on that sock only Meredith’s traces were found. To this
regard she pointed out that, since over a month had gone by (it was the search
carried out on December 18), the traces were ‚very dry, dehydrated and, therefore,

204
the possibility that I could contaminate the findings by touching them is practically
equal to zero‛ (page 167).

With reference to the fact that at a certain point the clasp was placed on the floor to
be photographed, without a precautionary examination of the cleanliness of the
floor, Dr Stefanoni stated the irrelevance of that circumstance. Firstly, she pointed
out that the piece was merely placed [on the floor] and that, due to what previously
explained, it wouldn’t have been possible that the act of simply placing it there,
could result in something being transferred unless there had been some liquid on the
floor. Had that been the case, even the mere placement [on the floor] would have
allowed the transfer of that liquid either to the fabric or to the bra clasp. In that case,
however, there weren’t any signs whatsoever of any liquid substance and the bra
clasp was simply placed [on the floor] [214] without any rubbing or applying any
pressure. She specified again, that, on the floor, there could have been some
exfoliated cells present, but cells that were keratinized, and therefore not suitable for
any transfer of DNA.

On the clasp there were, however, exfoliated cells that were not keratinized;
otherwise DNA would not have been found. She added that the cells recovered on
the bra clasp could not have been spontaneously released, as it normally happens for
anyone’s skin, due to a continuous physiological process which causes the older
cells, specifically, the dead cells[lamelle cornee]-exfoliated cells, to be spontaneously
shed. These cells—she added—are not living; they are the horny layer, which covers
our skin, these cells are keratinized; they therefore have lost the nucleus and all the
cell organelles and they have as their sole function that of protecting the epidermis.

Exfoliated cells are cells that have a nucleus and from which it is therefore possible
to extract DNA. They are the cells that have not been lost in a natural or spontaneous
manner, but rather, as the effect of a specific action, by a rubbing action between the
skin and some object in such a way as to cause the release of living cells. She did not
conduct a test to see what could have been on the floor before placing the piece of
bra there since the risk of contamination, she reasserted, was believed to be equal to
zero, given the absence of liquids. She remembered that one of the two hooks ‚was
partially detached and a bit open‛.

She ruled out that this small piece of bra could have been stepped on between the
first search and the December 18th search because, from a comparison of images it
resulted that ‚when it was found the first time and the second time‛ the hooks of
that piece of bra ‚had exactly the same shape‛ (page 176). The possibility that

205
someone had stepped on the small rug under which the piece of bra was found had
to be ruled out, since, otherwise, there would have been a deformation of the very
same hooks, which being of aluminium, would have buckled.

She wasn’t able to say when and how this piece of bra had moved by about one and
a half meters from the position in which it had been seen and photographed [215]
during the first inspection of November 2-3. She stated, however, that the first and
the second time that she saw this finding ‚the side that was resting upon the floor
was always the same‛ (p. 178) despite the fact that it had changed position: from the
initial position under the pillow where the victim’s body was to the position in
which it was found on December 18, near the desk and under the little rug. She
added that one of the hooks was very deformed and even partially detached,
unstitched, the other one was intact. She stated that in the night between November
2 and 3, she saw the clasp, but only briefly; she had, however been able to observe it
in the photos.

Answering a specific question from Raffaele Sollecito’s defence team, she affirmed
that the salivary cells from the mucous membrane can be released with a sneeze, or
by speaking, or with a spit. This is how these cells can be transferred. Dandruff falls
naturally: but these are dead cells.

With regard to the mixed trace, she specified that it was a biological trace that
resulted from the DNA analysis.

A genetic profile that has more than two peaks for each gene locus is obtained from
the analysis and this allows one to realise that it is precisely a mixed specimen
referable to more than one person. From the count of the peaks present in every
locus, one can reasonably hypothesise that the DNA belongs to more than one
individual; in addition, on the basis of the height of the different peaks, it is possible
to indicate the relative ratio between the various subjects present in the mixed
specimen.

She specified that the alleles were the red-coloured peaks in the electropherogram
which is the complete diagram of a biological trace reading. She pointed out that not
every peak was an allele. In the presence of peaks–alleles and on the basis of the
combination between them, one could attribute a certain specimen to a specific
person, as long as the genetic profile necessary to make the comparison was
available.

206
She added that this result, which is the electropherogram, requires an interpretation
on the part of a geneticist. In fact, the machine (the software) that manages the data
that come out of the machine itself is not able to determine which peaks must be
qualified as alleles, differentiating them [216] from the other peaks known as noise.
Noise in fact also show as peaks, but they represent false alleles, a "by-product
inherent in the process of genetic amplification...absolutely predicted, quantified and
described by the firm which produces the kit itself" (p. 184). She added that these
false alleles (noise) are impossible to eliminate, because they are inherent in the
sequence which gives the DNA, and in which noise will necessarily be found.
However, noise is recognisable and the geneticist must know how to identify it since
it has an effect on the attribution of a biological specimen.

The height which is considered reliable for a peak to be qualified as an allele is equal
to 50RFU, the symbol RFU representing the unit of measure employed for these
measurements.

In the case of a genetic mixture, she emphasised that it is not only the height of the
peak which counts, but also the position occupied by the peak within the
electropherogram, as well as the relative height of the peak with respect to the peak
which follows it.

Thus, where there is an allele which has a certain height and such that the peak just
before it has a much smaller height, at most 15% of the first one, then the previous
peak should be considered noise, just a by-product of the analysis.

In response to a question concerning the electropherogram D5S818 (p. 186), Dr


Stefanoni declared that while she recognised that electropherogram, it was not the
one which she had given in her own technical report. The present one was in fact the
electropherogram which comes directly out of the machine, without the
interpretation given by the geneticist. She specified that when that interpretation
was made, between the end of December and the beginning of January 2008, she
already had Raffaele Sollecito's genetic profile at her disposal from a salivary swab.

She explained that "with particular settings, the machine can actually produce its
own interpretation...it produces a result...and proper procedure dictates that without
considering to whom it should be attributed...I should read the result as it comes out
of the machine without [217] filters, without settings, just as a pure signal, as it
appears in this diagram... I see everything that the machine shows me, after
which...by inserting particular settings, which have been set up objectively with a

207
knowledge of forensic genetics...I see what comes out, and if the results can be
identified with people whose DNA I already have" (p. 188). She declared that she
was aware of the prohibition of the "suspect-oriented" method, according to which it
is incorrect to have the genetic profile of a suspect in front of one when interpreting
the electropherogram. She further declared that she had respected that prohibition,
and analysed the trace in an absolutely objective manner.

In response to specific questions, she considered an electropherogram which was


submitted to her, and examined three peaks, with particular reference to the third
one, the peak of 108 RFU, allele 13. She was asked if she had considered that peak,
number 13, as an allele or as noise. Dr Stefanoni declared that she had not
considered that peak as an allele or as noise, "because in this case I have a genetic
profile in this locus...in the two main peaks, the higher ones, which is fairly
homogeneous; so an allele of this type cannot be noise because it would come
before...and it can't be an allele because it is too low with respect to the main peaks"
(p. 190). She also noted that the height of that peak was 108 RFU, and the parameter
indicated was 50RFU; however, she explained, according to what she had already
stated, the parameter of 50, the base value, concerns a single profile in which the
situation is much clearer, ‚...there is just one individual, and in every locus there are
at most two alleles, so we say the quantity...as this height is in relation to the
quantity of DNA, we say that a height of more than 50 is a good height at which to
consider that a peak is reliable. But what does that mean? It means that I can reliably
consider this peak, in this case, as a real peak, not just a by-product. However, in the
case of mixed DNA, the situation is different, because above all in this mixture,
which by its very nature has different peaks, different by-products...For me to have a
real mixture, I must have [218] a balance which is clear. As I said before, for this
mixture, if we consider the proportion of X to Y, and also for the other alleles in the
other loci, I get a reasonable proportion of about 1 to 6‛ (pp. 191 and following).

The defence of the accused Sollecito called attention to page 202 of Stefanoni's report,
filed with the prosecutor’s office on June 12, 2008, in order to show the manner in
which Dr Stefanoni interpreted these peaks. They remarked that, by looking at the
diagram (the electropherogram), one could expect to find in this part of the report, in
parte qua, the indication of all of the peaks which appear "physically", so to speak.
Whereas under the marker D5S818 (see p. 202, table 165-I of the report), the peaks
considered as alleles are only: 11 and 12. If, instead, also the peak which appears in
the electropherogram had been considered as an allele, the interpretation would
have been different (pp. 192-193). Regarding this, it was asked whether it would be

208
possible to exclude the fact that within the highest peak, the one of allele 12 which
forms a pair together with allele 11, "there could be a second allele 12 which has
more or less the same height as 13, and thus both would belong to a subject of
genotype 12-13" (p. 193).

In response to this question-observation, Dr Stefanoni explained that in this case, it


would not be possible to explain the Y chromosome, and thus reaffirmed the
correctness of the interpretation she had given.

Another electropherogram from the same page 202 was then brought to Dr
Stefanoni's attention, with the marker D21S11 indicating another locus.

Analysing this marker, the first peak turned out to have a height of 94RFU, and the
one following it was 603 RFU; it was observed that thus, the height of the first peak
was greater than 15% of the height of the following one [note: Massei writes "less"
here but it is an error, 94 is more than 15% of 603 and that is obviously what is
meant]. The defence then asked why the peak of height 94RFU was not considered
as an allele rather than as noise.

Dr Stefanoni explained that it was 15.5%, "with a tolerance limit of plus or minus
0.5%, so it could be noise" (p. 195).

[219] She admitted all the same that it could have been an allele. It depended upon
how it was interpreted.

With reference to the height of the various peaks, Dr Stefanoni stressed the necessity
to read every electropherogram ‚locus by locus‛. That is, ‚different things which
happen in different loci‛, cannot be mixed (page 197). For this reason a peak with
108 RFU could be considered not to be allele, while a peak with 65 RFU could be
considered as such, and this for the fact that they are found in distinct loci and the
loci are among themselves of a different chemical nature and because of how the
PCR process happens. Therefore Dr Stefanoni affirmed that it is thus necessary to
judge case by case and the evaluation must take account of all the parameters inside
the electropherogram: of the relative height of the major peaks, of the height of the
other peak; several things are consequently taken into account, and the personal
experience of the genetics expert is furthermore important (page 198).

As far as the quantity of a sample analysed, she indicated it as above a nanogram,


since ‚the quality of this electropherogram is due to the fact that the peaks, both the
principal ones and the secondary ones, are however of a certain height, are of a good

209
height; this result is obtained with a quantity of DNA of at least a nanogram or more
or less, which is that advised by manufacturer‛ (page 200).

She declared to have not repeated the amplification, not having held it to be useful.
The amplification is used to identify gene zones of interest. If the DNA is valid in
quantity, as in this case, the result must present itself equal again and thus the
repetition of an amplification does not lead to different results.

Referring to the Y chromosome and having recalled that it allows the identification
by family type and that it regards only persons of the male sex, Dr Stefanoni stressed
that it was an analysis which was used ‚in order to exclude‛ and, with the cautions
of the case, to affirm as well. She evidenced in this regard that a haplotype, therefore
a Y genetic profile, not being unique as a genetic profile, was not identifying, being
shared with other persons.

Therefore, ‚comparing it with a reference data bank is a well-established procedure


... a collection [220] of varying different types of genetic profiles of the Y. This is
because, differently from nuclear DNA, Dr Stefanoni added, I do not have the allelic
frequencies, I do not know how rare that profile is based on the peaks of the alleles; I
then have to look at all the genotype which is contained in a data bank in order that,
comparing, I find: it is present twice, it is present zero times, it is present a hundred
times, and thus I get an idea of the quality of my result, of the dependability with
which I can attribute that determined genotype to that determined person‛.

‚It is obvious‛, the genetics expert Dr Stefanoni further explains, ‚it is inherent in
the nature of the Y chromosome that it is shared by the paternal line, therefore there
is no doubt that it is not unique to that person. However, if I insert that genetic
profile into an online data bank that therefore can be easily consulted, it is the data
bank of Professor Lutz Roewer, this data bank can be used to get an idea of the
presence in the population inserted, therefore in the various subjects which have
been included in that data bank. I will find out which frequency it has, thus if this
same genotype is present once, a hundred times, ten times. Because obviously the Y
chromosome contains in itself the information which comes down to us for
generations, thus perhaps 100 years ago a part of a certain family immigrated to
another part of the world and it planted in that part its Y chromosome which,
therefore, will be present in other zones of the world ... in other populations, in other
individuals; being able to have an estimate, a judgement of how many individuals in
the data bank have that same genetic profile obviously helps to understand how rare
that genetic profile is‛.

210
‚This was done in the case of both the Y genetic profiles, both of Raffaele Sollecito
and of Guede‛, Dr Stefanoni continued. ‚It was done at two different times, more or
less in September and recently in May, and the frequency which I found in this data
bank ... is zero ... That is, not one long genetic profile is present, that is extending for
17 loci, that is of the same amplitude of the one that I amplified, because previously,
up until a few years ago, there was a kit which analysed only 11 of these loci,
therefore [221] let us say we were more restricted, then technology ... permitted the
analysis of 17 loci instead of 11, as in this case; thus among all the possible
haplotypes which are included in this data bank 15 thousand 900 ... and I do not
remember the precise number, almost 16 thousand, are extended with 17 loci, thus
they are of the same length, of the same type, they have been analysed with just the
same kit as that used by us, therefore they are comparable data. This comparison
among 15 thousand 900 ... and I do not remember the exact number, yielded zero
haplotypes, therefore no genetic profile equal to that of Raffaele Sollecito or to that of
Guede is present in this data bank ... the data bank is an official bank of reference for
all the forensic genetic experts in the world‛ (page 202 and following pages).

Dr Stefanoni then specified that the 228 collected samples [reperti] from which the
460 specimens were analysed came from the various on-the-spot investigations
carried out in the houses in Via della Pergola, in Corso Garibaldi, in Via Canerino
and in Raffaele Sollecito’s car.

There were 10 trace specimens ascribable to Amanda Knox, five of which were
mixed. No trace specimen ascribable to Amanda Knox was found [repertata] in the
victim’s room. Several were found in Romanelli’s room, in the corridor, in the
bathroom. She confirmed that it is not possible to date a specimen, neither is it
possible to establish whether one has been left before another. Thus, with reference
to that found in Ms Romanelli’s room in which a specimen in which the presence of
a mixture of Amanda Knox and the victim was detected, Dr Stefanoni specified that
it is not possible to establish which trace was left first or whether these traces were
left simultaneously.

The mixed genetic profile therefore is compared with the profiles which are available
in the case under examination and, it being a matter of genetic mixture, it is possible
to also have (if conditions permit it or if the peaks are of a certain height, if the
relationship between the two DNA is sufficiently uniform and thus there is little
inequality of quantity between the two) alternative genotypes to those given as
present.

211
[222] In other words: a mixture Knox – victim is indicated as being compatible.
Nonetheless, in the presence of a nearly equal mixture (and this occurred in one
case) so that in quantity the two DNAs are very similar, in this case then in every
gene locus rather than recognising the pair 11 – 12 and 13 – 14, one could find the
[pair] 11 -14 and 12 – 13, with the consequent singling out of other persons having
this different biological profile.

Indeed, when the two mixtures are very similar in quantity, the peaks are very
homogeneous in height, Dr Stefanoni explained; in the said hypothesis it will not be
possible to say with certainty: those two people are present and no other is present.
Therefore, in this case, when the mixtures are nearly equal amounts, a judgement of
compatibility must be given: on the contrary, if they are very uneven there will be
more certainty in the attribution of the biological profiles, since other pairs
identifying other persons would not be possible.

However, in the case of the mixture of several individuals, the attribution of the
genetic profile, even in terms of compatibility of one person with another, or with all
the persons, leaves margins of uncertainty, as evidenced above.

With specific reference to the mixed genetic profiles regarding Knox, Dr Stefanoni
remarked, she could not exclude a third person because, in at least one case, it was a
matter of ‚very equal profiles‛ (page 222).

She then took into examination, as an example, the sample taken from [reperto
trovato] inside the washbasin of the small bathroom, and the mixed genetic profile:
victim and Knox. In this case, Dr Stefanoni pointed out, the mixture obtained was
not balanced and that in the sense that the two persons identified as victim and Knox
have quite different proportions in quantity.

This could be derived from the fact that, looking at the first gene locus, it was
possible to note that Knox ‚has the alleles 11 and 12, which are the first two; the
peaks ... are in the order of 2000, beyond 2000 RFU; the other pair ... it is in fact the
pair 13 – 16 because it has quite homogenous peaks; one peak is 931, the 13, and the
other peak is 752, are a little uneven, but all in all quite homogenous. In this case, but
also in other cases ... there is a compatibility [which is], one could say [come dire], a
little [223] stronger ... because it would not be plausible to pair the 11 with the 13 and
the 12 with the 16, because their heights are too dissimilar‛ (pages 223 and 234).
Therefore, Dr Stefanoni concluded on this point, specimens can be more easily

212
attributed when in the presence of quite unequal mixtures in which each one has
contributed a different quantity of DNA.

There are also cases in which this unequalness is much less pronounced, as in the
trace relative to the box of cotton tips, the witness continued. Thus in the first locus,
the D8, the same preceding alleles are present, still 11 – 12 – 13 and 16: in this case,
however, the unequalnesses between the pairs of alleles of the two persons are less:
the peaks of the pair 11 – 12 which can be attributed to Knox have a height of 637
and 590; the peaks of the other pair 13 – 16 which can be attributed to the victim
have a height of 514 and 470. Thus there are four alleles and this is identifiable in the
D18 as well, which has quite homogenous heights and it is thus as well in D19.

Then Dr Stefanoni stressed that when the alleles are very homogenous in height, one
can think of different pairings in respect of those attributed to the two persons, and
these different pairings make it possible to include other persons in respect of those
already present. In this case, one can say there is compatibility because there are
certainly the alleles of the victim and of Knox present, but precisely, with this
possible combination it cannot be excluded that there are also other persons. This
assessment regards the box of cotton tips but not the trace of the washbasin in
which, precisely because of what has been pointed out and recalled above, ‚it would
be really very, very improbable that there were other persons‛ (page 227).

She specified that, however, even in the case of the box of cotton tips ‚certainly there
was the DNA which coincided with the alleles, therefore with the genetic
characteristics present in the victim and in Amanda Knox ... In that case there could
also be a third person present, still of the female sex which however has the same
characteristics present in that mixture‛ (page 229).

With regard to Exhibit 36, the knife, for which in her report Dr Stefanoni had
affirmed that ‚it was possible to extrapolate the genetic profile of *Meredith+
Susanna Kercher on the B and on the A the same conclusion: it was possible‛.

[224] Dr Stefanoni clarified that the expression 2 ‚it was possible‛ had the meaning
of: identity (page 234) in the sense that ‚the profile found corresponds to that
person‛ (page 235).

To dispel any doubt in the interpretation of the terminology used, she declared that
‚the genetic profile of Knox was found on trace A of Exhibit 36, which corresponds
to the saliva swab extrapolated [and] taken from the same person [Knox] and that
the genetic profile of Meredith Kercher was identified on trace B of the same exhibit

213
after comparing it to the genetic profile extrapolated from the swab taken from the
wound on the victim’s neck‛ (page 236 of the declarations of Dr Stefanoni, hearing
22.5.2009).

Still with regard to Exhibit 36, replying to the specific question with which she was
asked to specify which elements needed to be present in order to preclude the
possibility of identification of a collected biological specimen, Dr Stefanoni indicated
an incorrect storage of the specimen in an environment which was not ideal, such as
in warmth, or enclosed in a plastic bag where water might be present and, not being
able to evaporate, it facilitates the proliferation of micro-organisms. She stressed that
the consequence of a conservation carried out in an incorrect way was the
deterioration of the specimen so that, when analysing it, very probably ‚no genetic
result would be able to be obtained‛. She added that the circumstance for which it
had been possible to attribute the specimens gathered meant that the conservation
had been correct. She further specified that she received that knife, Exhibit 36, in a
cardboard box and that it was delivered to the laboratory where it was
photographed and analysed. It did not appear to her that the container of the knife
was sterile; she specified however that ‚not even samples *reperti] are sterile ... we
take samples from floors, from objects ... sterile is something which does not have
micro-organisms; we do not have anything that is sterile, not even the gloves, the
gloves are in a package‛ (page 241).

She added that a possible deterioration of the sample ‚would have jeopardised the
analysis in such a way as to detract something‛ (page 241).

[225] She stated that the other knives that were analysed were kept separate. She
reaffirmed that on the blade of knife Exhibit 36 a striation was visible but ‚placing
the exhibit under a source of illumination < like the conventional sort that has a
Reprovit, which is the instrument we use for photography; it was possible to observe
it only by placing it under a strong spotlight and by changing the angle at which the
light hit the blade, it was only in this way that these striations became visible to the
naked eye < photos were attempted but it was too reflective < only white spots of
light came out‛ (page 246).

Regarding the analyses carried out on this knife, she showed, in the following terms,
the reason why it was decided to sample at points A and B: point B was found on the
striation on the face of the blade; point A coincided with the part of the blade which
has the knurl [codetta], and this is a sort of rise which stops the hand from sliding
when a person grasps the knife and strikes a blow. On the sampling relating to point

214
A, the genetic profile of Amanda Knox was found, on the sampling relating to point
B, the genetic profile of the victim was found. She recalled that the other samplings
that were done on the same knife produced no results. At the scratch location, the
presence of human blood was searched for, with negative results. ‚The test is
negative,‛ said Dr Stefanoni, ‚though, given the presence of DNA in very, very low
quantity, it cannot be excluded, however, that there could have been blood, but it
was not in a sufficient amount to show up even with a very sensitive instrument,
such as the one we normally use for this test‛ (page 256).

In relation to this aspect, she added that ‚the test for blood had to be carried out on a
small portion of this striation, because otherwise < we would remove the probable
genetic material which would no longer be available for the genetic test, because
after examination of the blood-derived material, it is not possible to preserve the
same material and use it for genetic analysis. And so we, to try this kind of analysis,
an analysis of the kind of specimen, we sacrifice a small part of the specimen<, after
which, I [226] however went ahead and sampled the rest of the striation with this
swab, because this was the main purpose of the genetic analysis, to establish a
genetic profile. Therefore, the origin of the specimen is sacrificed for the benefit of
the possible identification that you get with DNA examination, because knowing
that it is blood, but not knowing who it belongs to, means very little; conversely,
knowing the genetic profile while not knowing its nature is much more informative,
because I know that that DNA, whatever its source, belongs to that person < In
general<in genetic analysis, you give priority to the extraction of DNA and the
analysis of DNA, then, obviously, if it is possible to establish its nature as well, all
the better, it is more complete information; but the main goal is getting an
identification via the DNA (pages 258 and 259, witness Stefanoni).

Continuing her explanation, Dr Stefanoni stated that a small quantity of DNA is a


quantity of DNA that does not always produce a complete genetic profile for all 16
gene points; accordingly, it does not always produce a peak height that is greater
than 50 RFU.

In the case of Exhibit 36 (the knife) the height was observable and it was quite low.

In the first locus, D8, ‚we have the allele pairs 13-41 and 16-28; allele 14 and allele 18
are, respectively 47 [RFU] and 32. Some alleles are also 51 and 75 [RFU], it depends a
bit on the gene locus. So, D18 is 75 and 39; D5 is 113 and 36; and therefore they are
not well balanced, and, above all, many have a low RFU level‛ (page 260, Dr
Stefanoni).

215
The geneticist added that extracted DNA, if of a good quantity, allows further
analyses to be performed (the PCR process) on the same sample; in saliva swabs it
can be repeated many times because the DNA is quite abundant.

In this case, instead, the extraction volume, equal to 50 microlitres, was almost
completely used up to conduct this DNA analysis, so that a repeated amplification of
such a scarce amount (of DNA) would have certainly prevented a result from being
produced both in the first and in the second attempt. And so, with a view to wanting
to repeat the analysis, division of [227] this quantity of would have been needed,
[and] certainly there would have been no result obtained, because, below a certain
amount of DNA, PCR is ineffective, it is unable to amplify. The systems in use, in
fact, have a quantitative threshold below which one cannot go to obtain a genetic
profile. Therefore, since each amplification uses a certain amount of DNA so that it is
not possible to re-use it, all that was available was analysed and the above-
mentioned result was obtained.

Even if the test is not repeated when an analysis is performed correctly, Dr Stefanoni
stated, its result is, however, reliable. Moreover, she continued to explain, ‚the PCR
is done only once in general for all the specimens, even if we had a kilo of DNA<;
the analysis is reliable when it is carried out according to the recommended settings
provided by the kit’s production house and according to the good norms of a
genetics laboratory‛ (page 263).

Nevertheless, she added, if she had had another ‚small quantity‛, repeating the
analysis would have been desirable (page 264). She re-affirmed what she had
already testified to in the preliminary hearing before the GUP, that she was not sure
of getting a result with so scarce a quantity. So she used all the extracted DNA, she
had proceeded to concentrate it and amplify it, and she had obtained the genetic
profiles which she has referred to, not very high in terms of peaks, but complete in
almost all their parts.

(E)

The questioning of Dr. Stefanoni continued during the hearing of the following day,
May 23, 2009. During this hearing, the subject of the mixed traces of Knox and the
victim found in the small bathroom was dealt with: traces on the box of cotton buds,
in the sink and in the bidet. It was further recalled that Knox's blood was present on

216
the faucet of the sink, and Dr. Stefanoni declared that it was coagulated, not fresh
blood, and that it was not possible to specify the moment at which this blood had
been deposited on the front part of the faucet.

The witness reaffirmed that the mixed trace found in the sink was pink, as was the
one in the bidet. In relation to this colouring, she defined it as that of a diluted
substance, rinsed blood. She explained [228] that the traces were dry, and it was not
possible to date them or to determine whether the trace ascribable to Knox had
arrived there before the victim's, or vice versa.

She explained that the trace was very light pink, and that the photos and images did
not give a visual representation of the reality of the facts as they were observed at
the crime scene. She confirmed that it was a streak. With reference specifically to the
trace found in the bidet, she explained that the trace was not exactly around the
drainage outlet, "we didn't exactly go around the outlet, or underneath it, or go
scraping on it directly; we went a little bit over...to a place a little bit to the side, here;
not exactly the drain outlet itself" (page 12). She emphasised that the trace appeared
as "a unicum (‚unique specimen‛) of this drip that started from higher up", so
therefore it was not exactly at the drain, or more precisely, the interstice between the
ceramic and the metal (page 12, hearing on May 23, 2009).

She subsequently emphasised that both in the bidet and in the sink, the traces were
not separate, but presented themselves as physically united, without any break in
continuity, and thus each one appeared to constitute a unicum, "a trace that I
needed to analyse and consider in toto during the analyses...as from their visible
aspect they were very diluted, really very, very diluted blood, I made sure that
everything was taken that was possible to take, from the top towards the bottom",
she explained (pages 13-14).

From the videos of the crime scene inspection, made on November 3, 2007 as has
been already stated, it was shown that, concerning the trace on the bidet, the
evidence collection from the upper part of the edge of the bidet was continued with
the same swab down to the lower part.

Dr. Stefanoni maintained that this was correct methodology, since the trace formed
one single drip, even though in the images it was not visible as a unit "because it is
located practically underneath this hollow, which is not illuminated...however, there
was a very thin thread of continuity" (page 15).

217
At the express request of Amanda Knox's defence, asking her to speak about issues
relative to deterioration and contamination of DNA, Dr. Stefanoni declared that
deterioration renders analysis more difficult, [229] and is caused by an attack on the
evidence sample by fungi or bacteria. But such an event has no effect on the
reliability of the result; more on the possibility of finding DNA that can produce a
result at all. Thus, deterioration impacts in the sense of causing "a loss of
information; what remains behind, it might be 10 loci, 5 loci, one locus, is absolutely
very partial data but it is data; thus, it is not the same as unreliable data" (page 24).

As for the necessity of reproducing an analysis, particularly in the case of a very


small amount of DNA, in order for the result to be considered as reliable, Dr.
Stefanoni stated that in the event that the quantity of genetic material available is
extremely small, the analysis is performed nevertheless and the result is evaluated.
She added that "every analysis that we do is done only once, even if we have a
salivary swab containing a very great deal of DNA with respect to the traces..." She
added further that, "if an analysis is performed following all the parameters of
reliability and proper laboratory procedure, with the due positive and negative
controls and the due precautions employed when wearing single-use gloves,
everything which is indicated as proper laboratory procedure, then I can confidently
obtain a result, even with a very small quantity of DNA. I can therefore use that
DNA in a single analysis without needing, even if I had desired it, to repeat that
analysis. And that analysis is absolutely valid," concluded Dr. Stefanoni on this
point; "There is no reason to cast doubt...as long as the data is absolutely readable
and interpretable" (page 25).

With respect to contamination, understood as being a mixing of DNA samples, given


that in numerous samples (around 50 samples during a period of extraction and
analysis lasting from November 2007 until May 2008), listed on pages 264 and 265 of
table A of the report deposited on June 13, 2008, where Kercher's biological profile
was found and analysed and the process of analysis was recorded, i.e.: "This
biological substance, as amplified here...is injected into an instrument which is an
automatic sequencer" (page 28). On the basis of this, Dr. [230] Stefanoni was asked if
this circumstance, with reference to the operational aspect, could have caused some
kind of contamination in other exhibits, in such a way as to cause in each of them the
discovery, attributable to contamination, of traces of Meredith Kercher.

Dr. Stefanoni answered that firstly, there were two sequencers in the laboratory, one
with four capillaries and one with sixteen capillaries, both used interchangeably; she
added that, theoretically, it is not possible to eliminate the risk of contamination. She

218
did, however, assert that this risk is mitigated via the observance of proper
laboratory procedure, and subjecting all the instrumentation and material to
regularly programmed technical check-ups.

With specific reference to the knife, Exhibit 36, she stated that this was an Exhibit
that was analysed during the course of 50 samples attributed to the victim, some of
which came before and some of which came after the analysis of the knife. She
further emphasised that each sample was separately analysed, and that it was
absolutely impossible to mix one sample with another. She added that the case in
question, to the one in respect of the homicide of Meredith Kercher, it constituted
one of the many case files [fascicoli] that were being dealt with simultaneously by the
Scientific Police laboratory during that period, which was also dealing with other
analyses concerning other cases. She excluded the possibility that, in the machine
used for the analysis of the various samples, any secondary deposits might have
formed from which it would have been possible to transfer DNA onto other
specimens. With respect to this, she stated that the machine is equipped with a
security system which prevents such an occurrence.

With respect to laboratory contamination, she stated that she was not in possession
of any data referring to such contamination, and emphasised that if all procedures
recommended for good laboratory procedure are applied, this would have cancelled
out [i.e. prevented] the occurrence of contamination. She also explained that in
performing the various analyses on the biological traces in question, there was no
anomaly found which could have caused such a [231] contamination, and she gave
evidence of the presence of a whole series of checks [controls], precautions and
procedures, intended so as to eliminate this risk.

With respect to the traces present on the door handle of the victim's room, she stated
that they had been identified as being from Kercher. Only blood of the victim was
found, and Y chromosome testing was not carried out. In this regard, she explained
that Y chromosome analysis is not routine, and there was no particular reason for
doing it here.

She stated that the pillow was found half under the pelvis of the body. Analysis was
not done on the pillow because it was considered more useful to use it for print
analysis, whether of shoeprints or handprints.

On further questions by Amanda Knox's defence, the witness returned to the subject
of Exhibit 36 (the confiscated knife), and explained that "any machine which uses

219
fluorescence as analytical data, whatever kind of fluorescence and for whatever kind
of analysis it is used for, the analysis will unavoidably be accompanied by
background noise...false peaks which are very, very low with respect to those which
belong to the true analytical data". In practice, it is thus "possible to have
background noise in an electropherogram, and in any analysis, since this is
unavoidable, it is inherent in all genetic analysis of this type" (pages 44-45). Such
results are produced by the machine in the laboratory, and subsequently evaluated
by the geneticist, Dr. Stefanoni explained.

As for the scratch on the surface of the blade of the knife Exhibit 36, she reaffirmed
that if it was not particularly well illuminated, the scratch could not be seen (page
47).

In response to a specific question on this point, Dr. Stefanoni declared that she had
been working as a biologist for seven years, had always used the same methodology,
and had never heard that any problem of contamination of exhibits had occurred.

With respect to the certification ISO 17025, she stated that it was not mandatory, but
was done on a voluntary basis, meaning that any laboratory, any [232] institute, even
private, can request it from the certification board, so as to be able to state that one’s
laboratory works to quality standards.

The Scientific Police had asked for this certification. She added that when the
analyses under discussion were performed, there was no public agency which
possessed this certification. The Scientific Police and the RACIS (now the RIS) of the
Carabinieri were the first to request it.

She explained that in order to obtain the certification, they were not in the process of
modifying, nor needed to modify, anything in their methods of analysis, or in their
facilities, machines or anything else. They only had to document certain things. In
fact, she explained, "in reality, this type of certification certifies that all the
instruments and all the steps and phases of the work have been done with
instruments, machines, diagnostic kits and analytical kits which are in their turn
certified; thus, in practice, it is a certification that everything in use which could be
certified has been, but it does not actually change anything" (page 71).

She specified that the deterioration of material could not yield the DNA of one
person instead of another. Deterioration only entails a loss of information.

220
On the subject of the bathmat from the small bathroom, she stated that three samples
were taken, and the results were "blood and DNA of the victim" (page 75).

The knife, Exhibit 36, appeared very clean, with nothing visible to the naked eye. She
had decided to collect material from within the striations, because they were the only
data for orienting a sampling of a blade that, to the eye, showed no biological trace
which, however, where it was present, "would have been inside these scratches"
(page 81). The other samples taken from the blade of the knife were collected in a
random manner, so to speak, since there was nothing to assist in deciding to take a
sample from one spot rather than from another.

With regard to the bra clasp, when asked whether the trace from which the extracted
DNA that had turned out to be Sollecito's was actually present on the deformed
hook and/or on the non-deformed one, she responded that both the hooks were
considered together without distinguishing them from each other, and [233] added
that on the hooks there was nothing visible at all apart from the deformation (page
82). However, regarding the piece of material, "one of the two sides clearly showed
two very tiny drops of blood; so there we were obviously able to give a more
targeted aim to our sampling" (page 82).

With respect to the electropherograms and their interpretation, she restated the
fundamental information on the subject, taking as an example the results of the swab
with the profile of the victim taken for purposes of comparison. In the relevant
graphic (electropherogram), she explained that the peaks present at certain points
are called loci; the peaks from locus to locus have different heights, and this, she
emphasised, is a characteristic of all electropherograms, since every locus is different,
as though each one were a subject in itself. Indeed, each locus is the product of the
analysis of one chromosome datum amongst the 22 pairs making up the DNA of
every individual.

The presence of greatest and least peak heights constitutes a physiological datum:
every genetic profile, whether made with more DNA or less DNA, shows this
fluctuation, which depends on the history of each locus. There are alleles (peaks)
which reach up to 2000 or even over 2000 RFU, and there are other alleles which
barely pass 1000 RFU.

In every locus, one can find at most two peaks, since one comes from the father and
one from the mother, and in general these are different. However, there can also be
profiles which have many equal peaks; and in the case used as an example, she

221
pointed out that the victim had only one locus with both peaks equal, and that was
because in that locus, the peak deriving from the father and the one from the mother
overlapped.

She also emphasised that the machine yields a whole series of other, lower peaks,
which constitute a kind of background noise; then, the process which leads to
obtaining these analyses, the PCR, produces artefacts which are like tiny errors that
have nothing to do with the determination of a genetic profile, and are called "statter"
(i.e., stutter). These "errors" are expected, measured and measurable, and they can be
confidently considered as not significant, since they have nothing to do with the
determination of the genetic profile. Furthermore, there are loci [234] which, by their
chemical structure, are more likely to give problems with the polymerase, which is
the enzyme used in the PCR process, and there are other loci which give less
problems in DNA analysis.

The individualised peaks determine the genetic profile.

When the quantity of DNA is very small, all the peaks are lowered. She explained
that the criterion of 50 RFU gives a measure of confidence. In any case, there can be
lower alleles in some loci, and that would not be a reason to say that these alleles
should not be included in evaluating the diagram, since it is the complete diagram
which is yielded by the entire electrophoresis. Therefore, the evaluation of a genetic
profile is not obtained by examining just one peak at a time, but evaluating the
complete profile as a whole, the full picture. In this way, in fact, it is possible to
obtain a comprehensive idea, and thus to consider the various values and positions
of the peaks with respect to other peaks that appear and, thus, to decide whether
they should or should not be considered as alleles. The activity of interpretation lies
solely within the professional competence of the geneticist, a competence acquired
whether in the field or through one's educational training, Dr. Stefanoni added.

In order to identify a peak as statter, it is necessary, therefore, to consider its height


and its position. These interpretative criteria derive from international studies made
by organisations in charge of specifying the rules in this field. With the term "statter",
it was subsequently specified, one refers to smaller peaks which are always found at
exactly one position before the main allele, and furthermore this peak must not rise
to a height of more than 15% of the height of the main allele, within a tolerance of
plus or minus 0.5%.

222
She explained that in certain cases, the electrophoresis was repeated, as for example
the blade of the knife, and each time it yielded the same results. *‚+To achieve this,
more DNA was used. Obtaining a result a little lower in some loci, a little less lower
in others, we had repeated the genetic analysis, by injecting double the quantity of
DNA into the machine which performs the capillary electrophoresis,*‛+ Dr. Stefanoni
continued to explain (p. 96), even if, as she added, this procedure could not be
considered as a repetition [235] of the analysis, since, because of the small quantity in
the sample, it was not possible to divide it in two to perform two separate tests. The
only thing that could be done was to repeat the electrophoresis run, "because I do
not use the entire volume of the PCR, thus the total reaction volume, in one attempt
while effecting the electrophoresis; I only use a small part of it, a microliter or a
microliter and a half, that is, a twentieth, give or take, and thus in practice I injected
simply more DNA into the machine" (page 96). Comparing the two runs, the witness
added, "I never got anything different, i.e., anything in addition, which would have
made me think that perhaps the profile was not that of the victim but could have
been attributed to some other person, unknown perhaps, but, still, another
individual" (page 98).

Regarding the Y chromosome found on the bra hooks, Dr. Stefanoni emphasised that
it is not possible to take the objections regarding the profile of the Y, the haplotype,
into consideration. She explained that the haplotype obtained from the trace present
on the hooks was a result produced by the machine, which "assigned those numbers,
in sum it had read, so to speak, the genetic profile" (page 101).

Regarding the brown handbag found in the second crime scene inspection, Exhibit
166, which yielded the mixed genetic profile of Guede and Meredith plus the Y
haplotype, Dr. Stefanoni was asked if there was any resemblance with what was
found on the bra hooks. Dr. Stefanoni explained that this purse, whilst found in the
victim’s room, had undergone displacements with respect to its zone of origin,
meaning by zone of origin, the place where it had been observed during the first
crime scene inspection. Thus, both the purse and the bra clasp had undergone a
displacement. As well, both the purse and the bra hooks had yielded a mixed result:
victim plus another person (Guede in one case and Sollecito in the other),
characterised by the Y haplotype of the respective male subjects.

She explained that the cigarette from which a mixed (Knox-Sollecito) trace was
recovered was collected during the first crime scene inspection, the one that started
on [236] November 2, and it was found in the ashtray. When this cigarette was
collected, they had already entered into Meredith's room.

223
She reaffirmed that the sock which had a haematic trace attributable to the victim
was found under the rug and "rolled up in it" (page 122).

In order to ascertain the Y haplotype, with specific reference to for the bra hooks, she
reaffirmed that 17 loci were used in evaluating identity, and explained that "it is the
maximal possible number that can be considered by the analysis...At this time, we
are able to perform our analysis on 17 points, up until three, four years ago it was
only possible to do the analysis on 11 of these loci, and before that, a long time ago,
on just one genetic locus" (page 126). She added that the kits and the machines are
"used everywhere in all laboratories of forensic analysis of a certain level, because
they are the latest type of apparatus...and the best that the market can offer" (page
126).

As for the recommendations put forth by the scientific community according to


which the so-called "suspect-centric" method (in which the geneticist already has the
genetic profile of the suspect; and the recommendation is to avoid this before having
the profile, so as not to be influenced by it), Dr. Stefanoni stated that when she did
her analysis on the various biological traces, she was already in possession of four
swabs, including the profile of Patrick Diya Lumumba and as well as the victim's.

She explained the difference between the technician and the forensic geneticist, who,
unlike the technician, must provide the scientific interpretation of the
electropherograms, which is subjective in the sense that an electropherogram can
give rise to various different readings by different geneticists called on to examine
the data.

She explained that in the presence of peaks of height less than 50RFU, there is in
general no conflict of interpretation between the nature of statter or alleles, and it is
not possible that they be taken as alleles. The contrary is not true, since even above
50 RFU, a peak is not necessarily to be interpreted as an allele in terms of treating it;
a reference evaluation which is related to the context (or: background) and the
reference peak. It is possible to "have a statter of 100, because the height of the
reference [237] peak is 1000" (page 133), and, likewise, in the presence of a peak of
height 5000 it is even possible to have a statter of height 500 or more.

She explained that the bra clasp, when it was collected during the crime scene
inspection carried out on December 18, 2007, was among the first things to be found,
certainly before 20:30 pm.

224
With respect to the amount of DNA found on the hooks, she stated that it was not
such a small quantity, "to such a point that if we look at the electropherogram of that
trace, there are peaks which are easily higher than 1000 RFU, a little less or a little
more, but above all obviously the one denoting the sex" (page 139).

With reference to the hooks, Dr. Stefanoni stated, as has already been said, that the
extraction of the DNA was done on both the two hooks together and she was unable
to say, therefore, whether the DNA was on one or the other or both (page 152). The
activity of extracting DNA occurred, as far as she could remember, at the end of
December, on December 29, 2007. This Exhibit was labelled with the number 165,
and the traces with the letters A and B respectively, one for the material, on which
there appeared to be present a haematic trace, and the other for the hooks. They
were extracted contemporaneously, during the same work session.

In answer to a specific question about the so-called bench contamination, she


explained that this is a contamination which can occur unintentionally at the
moment in which one is analysing a sample or a collected biological item, by DNA
extraneous to the sample or item inadvertently being placed into contact with the
sample or item (page 155). She described this as possible but quite rare. She could
exclude that this might have happened for the bra hooks, precisely by the timing and
the analysis method used. She added that several exhibits forming part the search on
December 18 were being analysed during that same work session. Each exhibit was
examined separately, each item being taken in its own envelope, and studied sotto
cappa (inside a decontamination fume cupboard) by the operator with single-use
laboratory paper, filters and tweezers, all these instruments being specially adapted
to avoid contamination. She had not repeated the analysis because the results were
clear and the procedures had never [238] "evidenced any problems during the course
of the analysis", and thus the result should be considered as certain (page 156).

In response to a further question on the subject of the stochastic phenomena of


preferential amplification and "drop out", she explained that in the presence of a
very small sample, it can happen by chance that in the PCR, an allele is not
amplified, because it is in too small quantitatively in the starting DNA. That is, the
PCR, "moving about in this of sea of reagents, is unable to clamp onto its DNA; by
which, the allele is in the original sample, but we are unable to evidence it, and this
effect on the electropherogram is in fact called drop out, that is, the lack of an allele;
this is much more frequent when the quantity of DNA is low" (pages 157-158).
However, as regards the hooks, Dr. Stefanoni had not repeated the analysis because
"in this case, the height of the peaks of the minor fraction of the DNA present in the

225
electropherogram was not giving me any reason to think that there could have been
a drop out effect", she explained (page 158).

She added that this effect probably had occurred in the amplification of trace B of
Exhibit 36, and in relation to this, she had performed a second electrophoresis, in
which precisely "some peaks disappear or become lower and others become a little
higher; I see this kind of fluctuation when the quantity of DNA is really very low".

In the case of the hooks, however, the quantity of DNA was not very low, and in fact
the lowest peak obtained in the electropherogram is the peak of allele 12, of a height
of 65, which is definitely above the aforementioned 50 RFU.

She further noted that "Adler's test" is used to detect the presence of blood; it was not
done on the hooks, but it was done on the piece of material, on trace A where there
was evident redness.

With reference to Exhibit 36, the traces found on the handle could be attributable to
epithelial cells, it being the place where one rubs against, where one grasps a knife
for normal usage.

[239] She admitted that it was possible to lose skin cells by exfoliation, as they can
just fall off in the course of the skin's natural renewal. She underlined, however, that
these cells are absolutely unusable from the point of view of DNA analysis, since
they are dead cells, keratinised cells which have lost their nucleus, the organelle
inside which the DNA is found, so that exfoliation of said cells could not have given
rise to any contamination.

With reference then to the DNA of Raffaele Sollecito and the fact that his profile was
already present and available to her when she interpreted the collected samples,
including the one relating to the hooks, she stated that the data was present as
historical fact, but that she did not have it, have it available before her at the moment
in which she was interpreting the technical data, nor was she otherwise consulting
this biological profile.

It did not appear that any of the various rules and recommendations for proper
procedure had not been followed.

With reference to the toilet paper collected in the larger bathroom, the Y
chromosome was also analysed, and it was found to be very different from the Y
chromosome on the hooks, which meant, necessarily, that it had to be said that it
was a case of traces left by two different male subjects.

226
With regards to the mixture of DNA attributable to the biological profiles of
Meredith and Amanda Knox, she affirmed that, certainly, there was blood content,
there being a specific test carried out; further information given relative to the very
pale pink colour could have led one to think that there might have been the presence
of water. She added that in actuality there is water in blood, but in a different
concentration; in blood there is less water than in a trace, which contains more water
and is less rich in blood. Though, from the point of view of other substances (sweat,
etc.), no tests were done. Therefore, it was definitely a mixture of biological
substances, but it was not in any case possible to determine whether it was blood
plus blood, or blood and saliva, or blood and exfoliation cells. One could only say
that there was definitely blood present, and that the trace was found in the very
same places.

[240] Returning to the trace found on the blade of the knife (Exhibit 36), Dr. Stefanoni
subsequently specified that with respect to the striations, nothing was visible to the
naked eye nor under illumination, and there was nothing in terms of biological
material. Consequently, when she had carried out the test before sampling and
before carrying out the DNA extraction, she first performed a test to find out
whether or not the prospective biological sample might be blood. However, she did
not pass the swab belonging to the diagnostic kit along the entire striation, because
she was aware that there was a concrete possibility that in doing so "I could have
wiped away...the whole of whatever small amount was there, and that could have
been used for DNA analysis". Therefore, for the test on the nature of the substance,
she "simply sacrificed a small zone", and used all the rest to determine the DNA
(page 179).

It was also explained that whereas the deterioration of the sample does not allow it
to be interpreted because it is corroded, contamination causes an incorrect
interpretation because there are exogenous profiles.

(F)

Dr. Torricelli, civil party consultant for the family of Meredith Kercher, was heard at
the hearing on June 5, 2009. Dr. Torricelli stated that she is a director of a genetic
diagnostics facility at the Careggi University Hospital and has been working in
genetics since 1976.

227
With reference to "good laboratory practice" (page 80), she emphasised that the
normal practices employed were those which Dr. Stefanoni had also recounted,
whereby the conclusions were not formed on the basis of personal opinions and
assessments, but follow the lines of national and international scientific societies,
such that there is a general consensus‛ (page 81) on working methods. Moreover she
stated that in the field of genetic diagnostics, her own specific area of expertise, "we
actually work with DNA that is derived from a single cell ... so we do work with
minimum quantities" (page 84). Recalling the concept of mixed specimens, she paid
particular attention to analysis of the Y chromosome. She then pointed out that
haplotype analysis of the Y chromosome is an important analysis [241] because it can
be used to confirm a generic profile that has been found through analysis and study
of the autosomal markers; furthermore, analysis of the Y-chromosome serves to rule
out the presence of a male donor thus allowing it to be determined that a given
specimen contains only female type DNA. She specified that, when the Y
chromosome is examined, a check is made to see if that haplotype is present in the
databank to which "we all refer to determine whether a profile can be found, a Y
haplotype that matches this DNA‛ (page 87) which is being analysed. She stated that
recently there had been an increase [in the number of loci examined] from 11 to 17,
and this made it possible to distinguish one subject from another with greater
precision. She specified, with regard to the case in question, that seventeen loci had
been measured on the Y haplotype concerning the clasp (page 88).

Responding to a specific question, she stated that biological contamination consists


of the transfer of cells which come into contact with the specimen being examined,
such that when the DNA is extracted from this specimen, the DNA from
contaminant cells is also extracted.

She stressed that the kit used for studying Y haplotypes is much more sensitive than
that used for the DNA profile and therefore is able to detect the presence of the Y
even with a very tiny specimen, in other words, a specimen constituting a minimal
quantity of DNA. For the autosomal markers there is a need for a greater quantity of
DNA (page 92). As for the possibility of repeating the test, she pointed out that the
quantity of DNA does not always make repetition effectively possible. This should
not, however, mean that the results should not be considered reliable. She stated in
this regard that, in the diagnostics for hereditary diseases, for prenatal diagnoses,
nothing is done in duplicate. So, if the tests being carried out were not valid, ‚we
might just as well put an end to any genetic diagnosis for hereditary diseases, in
prenatal diagnosis or in pre-implantation genetic diagnosis [Diagnosi reimpianto:

228
tecnica molto particolare, che si avvale della fertilizzazione in vitro(Fivet) e consente di
studiare il Dna delle prime cellule del prodotto del concepimento - a very specific technique
which uses in vitro fertilization and allows the DNA of the first cells of the resulting
conception to be studied+‛ (page 93).

As for the profiles found, she emphasised that, in the vaginal swab, in the bra, in the
side area, in the sweatshirt, all Meredith’s autosomal markers were definitely
present; in the vaginal swab, and the quantity of DNA [242] which could suggest
another biological profile was very low. The Y result was therefore revealed because
"the kit for studying the Y is capable, even with a very tiny amount of DNA, of
perceiving‛ the presence of a male subject (page 95). And the analysis of the Y
haplotype came out very clearly, with the presence of all 17 alleles (page 95), Dr.
Torricelli stressed.

The profile of Rudy Guede obtained from the bag that was found in Meredith’s
room was then examined. This profile showed the presence of several alleles
indicating two different profiles, a major one and certainly a minor one, attributable
respectively to Meredith and to Rudy Guede. She specified furthermore that she
used the electropherograms provided by Dr. Stefanoni, and in this regard she
pointed out that they were ‚all examined in accordance with < good laboratory
practice <; Dr. Stefanoni ... has used all of the practices recommended by the
international forensic society and that [she] is now also ... requesting that within the
17025 certification reference should be made to the international recommendations‛
(page 97).

Examining the vaginal swab findings, she highlighted the presence of "autosomal
markers < where those of Meredith are very clear; we don’t manage to reveal the
other markers, while – on this same sample - the Y profile appears very clearly"
(page 97).

Dr. Torricelli then proceeded to examine the findings held to be of greater


importance. In this regard and in general terms, the plaintiffs’ consultant pointed out
that those which she had taken into consideration and for which she gave an
explanation were all findings for which DNA concentration was not used < They
were all profiles obtained from DNA that had not previously been concentrated. She
added that sometimes one is obliged to concentrate DNA by removing water or
swabs, anything where the DNA is sticking, and this is done to try to obtain the
maximum, i.e., to recover the maximum (page 99).

229
She then proceeded to examine the findings related to the ‚diluted blood traces‛
(page 100) found on the box of cotton-buds, in the bidet and inside the bathroom
sink.

[243] With regard to the specimen on the box, she highlighted the presence of 4
alleles in the first locus and stressed that the presence was very clear, without too
much "background noise" (page 100). The profile in question, therefore, should
correctly be interpreted as being composed of a mixed specimen; and the profiles
matched those of Amanda and Meredith.

For the specimen found in the sample recovered in the bidet it was noted that the
various alleles, in comparison to those related to the sample on the cotton bud box,
were composed by peaks, some of which were much smaller and therefore, she
added, ‚we certainly have a specimen with a major donor compared to another
donor ... however ... these are alleles that we can identify clearly, although the
quantity is much smaller‛ and therefore even this sample should be interpreted as
indicative of a mixed trace with the DNA profile of Amanda and Meredith (page
101).

Even the specimen taken inside the washbasin shows DNA from one major donor
compared to another, however the presence of several alleles was clear in various
loci and therefore it should be considered that a mixed sample was present "with the
presence certainly of at least two profiles‛. She noted that there were also small
peaks, difficult to interpret in truth, which could suggest the presence of other
donors. However, she emphasised that ‚the alleles present are all very clear‛ and
match the profiles of Meredith and Amanda‛ (pages 101 and102).

She then dealt with the profile related to the bra clasp, exhibit 165. She stated in the
first place that it was certainly a mixed sample "because we have multiple alleles
present" (103) and furthermore, "it is very clearly noticeable that there is a major
donor compared to a minor donor" inasmuch as some alleles have very low peaks.
She stressed, however, the presence of these alleles with enough DNA to be clearly
detected.

Then turning to the Y haplotype, she recalled that the kit used to detect the Y
haplotype is much more sensitive and that ‚therefore, while on the autosomes we
had markers present in all the loci, although with a lower quantity yet sufficient to
be detected for at least one profile, in the Y haplotype [244] all seventeen loci are

230
present, and are also all clearly evident because these peaks are well defined for each
and every one of those seventeen loci‛ (page 104).

The plaintiffs’ consultant then affirmed that on the clasp there was unquestionably
the presence of at least two individuals, one of whom is of the male sex; then
comparing the profiles, she pointed out that the major DNA is from a donor who has
a profile equal to that of Meredith; as for the other loci, all present, the profile was
certainly compatible with that of Raffaele Sollecito. In confirmation of this, she
pointed to the presence of the haplotype ‚of the Y, very clear ... in all of its seventeen
loci; a haplotype which is equal, when compared, to the haplotype obtained from the
salivary swab of Raffaele Sollecito‛ (page 105).

At this point, Dr. Torricelli highlighted the opportunity to check the frequency of
this haplotype in the database, i.e., is in the databank already mentioned by Dr.
Stefanoni, in order to check whether it contained an equivalent haplotype. To make
this comparison, she explained that the seventeen loci which had been detected were
introduced, and with reference to the latest update of this databank consisting of a
population of 15,956 individuals, she testified that no one was found who had the
same haplotype as Raffaele Sollecito; she also noted that, if 11 loci, rather than 17,
had been found and then inserted, 31 subjects with the same haplotype would have
been found. She referred to this circumstance in order to highlight how particularly
sensitive and selective the current analysis of seventeen loci is.

She concluded on this point by affirming how obvious it is that the mixed profile of
the autosomal markers corresponds to the mixture originating from a major
component belonging to Meredith and from a minor one compatible with Sollecito, a
conclusion "supported by the haplotype of the Y chromosome‛ (page l07).

She then examined the evidence found on the knife, Exhibit 36, specimens A and B.
She recalled that specimen A was found on the handle, at handgrip level, and
presented only two alleles for each marker. This concerned, therefore, a sample
where there was only one donor and, by comparing the profile derived from it, [245]
she concluded by saying that ‚it is certainly compatible with the profile of Amanda‛
(page108).

Turning next to examination of specimen B, which was found on the knife’s blade,
she pointed out that the peaks are a bit lower, but that without doubt it is still within
the range that is considered useful for testing a specimen (page 108). Although of a
much lower quantity of DNA, the profiles were nonetheless very present and, by

231
making a comparison with Meredith’s profile, Dr. Torricelli reported that ‚we find
all the alleles, and we find them to be equal to those obtained from the swab taken,
from the sample taken from the wound. Therefore in this case too, without doubt‛ -
she continued- ‚although we are confronted with a sample that contains very little
DNA, it nonetheless contains the DNA of only one person and is therefore
comparable to Meredith’s; with regard to this knife, I would say I have no doubt in
interpreting it: specimen A with Amanda’s profile and specimen B with the profile,
compatible with that of Meredith" (page 109).

She then dealt with Exhibit 59, consisting of the victim’s bra. She highlighted the
presence of a profile and noted that, logically, there would be some rubbing against
the wearer, thus causing their own cells to be shed. She also pointed out that at a
certain point a peak appeared that signified the Y chromosome marker. Regarding
this, it could be hypothesised that, within the overall DNA, a minor donor was
contained which could not, however, be detected by examining the autosomal
markers; analysis of the Y was therefore essential, and the outcome of this analysis
gave a result of compatibility with Rudy Guede’s haplotype. This specimen therefore
showed the phenomena of a mixed specimen where a genetic profile consistent with
that of Meredith and with that of Rudy was present and, she added, even the
haplotype appeared to be compatible with Rudy’s haplotype.

With reference to the noise, Dr. Torricelli reiterated the criteria already indicated by
Dr. Stefanoni: peaks found within a certain distance from the locus under
consideration, and with a percentage that must not exceed 15 percent of the
immediately subsequent allele. Thus, it is [246] not only the height that characterises
the noise but also the position in which it is found.

Responding to a specific question from Amanda Knox’s defence team, she stated
that "we cannot exactly work with less than twenty cells, so we are around 120
picomoles and the kits are calibrated on 0.25 micrograms per millilitre" (page 120).

With reference to the aforementioned database, she pointed out that it is a database
containing a population from various countries, from different ethnic groups. She
added that the databases are updated by people who work in the field of genetics,
and in accordance with the existing controls in that regard.

With regard to the possible contamination of a finding, she pointed out, however,
that it needed "a forcible action and therefore < to be able to pass cells from one

232
part, from one support to another, it requires a forcible action which might therefore
be rubbing, or might be a pressure, and so on"(page 143).

Finally, with regard to possible errors in interpretation of the sample found on the
clasp and attributed to Raffaele Sollecito so as to hypothesise a different biological
profile from Raffaele Sollecito’s, Dr. Torricelli affirmed that the alleles constituting
the Raffaele Sollecito’s biological profile were present "in a clear manner in all of the
loci that were examined therefore ... it is a rather unlikely that... there is any error of
interpretation" (page 144).

(G)

The testimony of Dr. Sarah Gino, consultant for Amanda Knox’s defence, researcher
at the Università degli Studi at Torino, and head of the of the forensic genetics section
of the criminal science laboratory directed by Professor Carlo Torre (page 80), was
heard in court on July 6, 2009.

In beginning her statement, she considered various Luminol tests from the point of
view forensic genetics. She thus demonstrated the existence of numerous substances
that are ‚Luminol positive ... such as, for example, horseradish, turnips, potatoes,
fruit juices‛ and also pointed out that many parts of the internal fittings of motor
vehicles can give false positives when they are sprayed with Luminol. Sometimes,
she added, even [247] terracotta or ceramic tiles, paints, and enamels can produce
this interference. She recalled therefore that, in Romanelli’s room, samples were
taken and only two of these samples yielded an attributable genetic profile; in
Knox’s room, three samples were taken which produced a positive outcome
regarding the genetic investigation; four samples were taken in the hallway but only
one yielded a genetic profile suitable for comparison. She emphasised as well that,
even though Luminol is a substance used to identify latent traces that could be
blood, the certainty that these are indeed blood comes only from specific tests for
this type of biological fluid. As the for biological trace samples which were taken,
she pointed out that they were taken from a floor and that ‚biological material that
we find on the floor could have come from outside, that is, it could come from a
place that I had visited earlier, precisely because it was stuck to the bottom of my
shoe, or maybe I put my handbag down and didn’t notice that there was a biological
specimen there‛ (page 87).

233
She stated again that the specimens which were analysed, found in the victim’s
house and which had produced genetic profiles, were indeed attributed ‚but, in
some cases, in addition to the attribution of the peaks that was carried out by Dr.
Stefanoni, there were other peaks present, that is, peaks that were not taken into
consideration in the division of the alleles and thus in the definition of the genetic
profiles. She observed that these extra peaks could have derived from a later
contamination of that specimen from other subjects, or it could indicate that there
was an initial deterioration of that biological material that had been collected (page
87). Where biological material was available from the other people living in the
house, Dr. Gino further observed, it would have been possible to check whether
some of those peaks were attributable to any of these other people. This lack of
availability should be seen as a limitation on the investigation carried out.

Another matter examined by Dr. Gino concerned Exhibit 36, the 31-cm long knife
seized from Raffaele Sollecito’s house on [248] Corso Garibaldi, Perugia. As regards
the specimen labelled with the letter A and found on the handle of this knife, Dr.
Stefanoni – Dr. Gino observed – ‚had taken a sample, had obtained a genetic profile
in accordance with all the rules of laboratory best practice and of sound
interpretation of the genetic profile obtained. In fact, the peaks < were all above 100
RFU, [with] 100, 150 RFU being the limit normally fixed for considering a genetic
profile to be good‛ and thus, on the genetic profile that was found on the knife, the
defence consultant declared that she had ‚absolutely nothing to object to‛ (page 90).

With reference, instead, to sample B taken from the blade of that same knife, she
advanced various critical observations. First of all, she pointed out that it was not
entirely clear where that sample was taken from, and, since it concerned a specimen
not visible to the naked eye, it would have been helpful to use a stereo microscope,
which would also have allowed an appreciation of the colour of the specimen, and
permitted an evaluation, if only presumptive, of the nature of the specimen itself.
She also deplored that was no adequate test to establish the nature of the sample in
question had been carried out, Dr. Stefanoni having limited herself to a presumptive
test with ‚benzidine‛, which gave a negative result. And not having even a
description of this material available, Dr. Gino added, we ‚know absolutely nothing;
we don’t even know if there was really biological material where the scratches are‛
(page 91). Lastly, she recalled that Dr. Stefanoni had affirmed that the DNA
extracted from this sample taken from the scratches was low, that is it was ‚low
copy number‛, or in other words a small quantity of DNA. In this regard, she
explained what low level DNA usually signifies: DNA present in amounts smaller

234
than 100 picograms, and, taking into account that usually work is done with one
nanogram – which is 1000 picograms – Dr. Gino further added, the quantity of
material in ‚low copy number‛ is considerably less than a forensic genetics
laboratory’s standard working conditions, conditions which allow a genetic profile
obtained to be considered a good genetic profile, useful for making comparisons.

[249] In dealing with ‚low copy number‛, Dr. Stefanoni had therefore concentrated
the sample; that is, she reduced the volume available so as to carry out a single
amplification, but without being able to check the final result. Regarding this, Dr.
Gino recalled that the guidelines recommend ‚repeating the amplification‛ because
only by repetition can I ‚check whether there were amplification errors that occur,
above all, when I start with low copies of DNA‛ (page 93).

She reaffirmed that ‚when we have a small amount of DNA we talk about low copy
number DNA, and that when this type of DNA is present, we are indeed able to
carry out our amplification and obtain a profile, but we must remember that we may
have lost one of the alleles, we may have an allelic imbalance < it becomes very
difficult to distinguish from a real allele, so that when working on < small
quantities of genetic material, it is necessary to be very cautious in interpreting the
results‛ (page 94).

She recalled furthermore that the threshold value for interpreting peaks is equal to
50 RFU. Most of the peaks examined by Dr. Stefanoni were, anyhow, lower than 50
RFU, and thus according to the guidelines should not have been taken into
consideration. Dr. Stefanoni’s presentation was also criticised because it only looked
at nuclear DNA; in fact, our cells also have a second type of DNA which is very
important for the forensic geneticist, above all for those findings where the DNA has
deteriorated. This is, she explained, ‚mitochondrial DNA‛ (page 96).

Dr. Stefanoni’s report was further criticised for not having carried out an analysis to
find any Y chromosome in the specimen found on the handle of the door to the
victim’s room.

Turning again to discussing ‚low copy number‛, she specified that this expression
refers to DNA present in a limited number of copies. She added that, taking it to the
absurd extreme, geneticists can obtain a genetic profile from even one cell. Usually,
the minimum number to work with is 10-15 cells; nonetheless one might end up
with a single cell, where, however, ‚the [250] result obtained needs to be verified
several times‛ (page 99). With specific reference to the problem of contamination in

235
relation to sample B of Exhibit 36, the consultant explained that contamination is
always possible, during every moment of an investigation and even when all
precautionary measures are used. There are contaminations, in fact, that do not arise
from operator inattention, but that derive instead from the very act of amplification,
which can cause ‚eventual contamination in subsequent samples‛ (page 102).

In response to the Prosecution’s question, she specified that if some of the Luminol-
positive materials (bleach, fruit juice, and so on) had fallen on the floor where there
was a biological trace of Meredith or Amanda or of some other person, it would
have been possible to find the DNA of Meredith or of Amanda or of some other
person in the relevant sample (page 111).

In reference to the guidelines which advise against concentrating the sample, she
specified that this was aimed at allowing repetition of the testing ‚... because if I
concentrate it, I have a smaller volume containing my DNA, and so, when I go to
amplify it, I use it all in a single amplification and, at this point, I no longer have the
possibility of checking what I have obtained‛ (page 138).

As regards ‚mitochondrial‛ examination, Dr. Gino specified that this examination is


not useful for identification because ‚it does not have the same discriminative power
of the autosomes or of the markers that are found on the chromosomes within
nucleus<‛.

Nuclear DNA is inherited in part from the father, and in part from the mother, she
added, while mitochondrial DNA is inherited only from the mother. It is therefore
obvious that those subjects who have a female ancestor in common will have the
same mitochondrial DNA; however it is also true that, when I have a hairlike fibre
and have obtained a profile, when I go and compare it I can exclude with certainty
that it belongs to a given person, but I cannot say, like I can with the autosomal
markers, that this genetic profile is present in one subject in every billion. I will not
be able to do all this [251] with mitochondrial DNA, however this test is certainly
very useful for exclusion and, if necessary, for a comparison, but without ever
obtaining a result similar to that obtainable with autosomal markers. The reasoning,
she added, is similar to what can be done with examination of the Y-chromosome
markers, in the sense that Y-chromosomes are inherited through the paternal line
and are transferred only to male subjects; those subjects, therefore, who have a
common, but not too distant, male ancestor, have the same Y chromosome. The main
discriminatory power, she concluded on this point, ‚derives precisely from studying
the markers situated on the autosomal chromosomes‛ (page 140).

236
With express reference to possible degradation that may occur in the laboratory, Dr.
Gino declared that the specimen could have been handled together with other
specimens containing biological material belonging to the victim, and this without
changing gloves or perhaps using teasing needles/probes that hadn’t been changed.
Such an eventuality can occur no matter how much care is taken, she added. The
error is human. Unfortunately, it is possible when there are so many samples;
geneticists are not machines and errors can happen; or else contamination could
have occurred as a result of ‚amplifications which had already been carried out, or
in other words of material that had previously been amplified‛. It was specified in
this regard that this material had thus not contaminated the entire DNA. Just small
fragments of that origin could have ‚contaminated the machinery, the teasing
needles/probes, pipettes, the place where I then prepared my sample Exhibit 36B;
and could therefore have been transferred, we call this type of process a ‘carry
over’‛, Dr. Gino explained (page 154).

With specific reference to the knife, Exhibit 36, and to the collection methodology,
she explained furthermore that the carton, could not, in and of itself, ‚affect the
specimen unless that carton was rich in bacteria and mould/mildew, which in turn
are transferred to my specimen‛ (page 155): in this case, however, this contamination
does not alter the result in the sense of producing a profile different to the one
originally present. The bacteria or mould/mildew possibly ‚cuts‛ the DNA, causing
[252] a diminution and might even reduce it to zero.

At the hearing on July 18, 2009, Professor Tagliabracci, a consultant for the Sollecito
defence, explained his own assessments. He recalled that he has been involved in
forensic genetics since 1980, and specified that the task he had been given related to
two exhibits:

The first was 165/B, collected on December 18, 2007, concerning the bra clasp, with a
small piece of cloth attached of a white colour and stained with presumed
haematological substance found in the victim’s room.

The second was Exhibit 36, the knife found in Raffaele Sollecito’s house, and upon
which DNA tests were done.

With regard to Exhibit 165, analysis of trace B (165/B) carried out by Forensics
allowed the extrapolation of a genetic profile that derived from a mixture of
biological substances belonging to not less than two individuals, at least one of
whom was male. The comparison carried out between the genotype deriving from

237
trace B of Exhibit 165 with those belonging to Raffaele Sollecito and Meredith
Susanna Cara Kercher, collected in other circumstances, produced a result of
compatibility.

Professor Tagliabracci maintained that Forensics had come to this conclusion by


following the wrong route. He then explained that, following collection, samples
were taken and then an analysis was carried out by means of a series of investigative
steps: extraction of the DNA, quantization of the DNA, the amplification,
electrophoresis, and then interpretation of the results (page 24). He maintained that,
for each of these steps, there were problems.

He recalled that Dr. Stefanoni herself had reported that, 47 days afterwards, she had
noted conditions of soiling (imbrattamento) and dirtiness in the room which were
decidedly greater than what she had observed on November 3rd. Between November
3rd and December 18th, there were, in fact, multiple searches conducted [253] an
unspecified number of persons. On 3 November this bra fragment with the
deformed clasp had been found under a pillow; it was photographed and left where
it was found. Subsequently, 47 days later, it was found near the desk underneath the
mat that on 2 November was found next to the duvet, more than a metre from the
original position where it had, by contrast, been identified in on 3 November. It was
also shown that, as it appears in the 18 December video, this bra fragment was
passed from the one technician’s hands to another’s.

Replaced on the floor, and photographed, it was only at this point that it was
collected. Therefore, Professor Tagliabracci maintained, the collection methodology
could not be considered appropriate, and also because it was not certain that there
was a change of gloves during the collection phase, and while the personnel were
dealing with other findings. He recalled, in this regard, Inspector Brocci’s
declarations, who had affirmed that the gloves were changed at the discretion of the
operator, and, according to the consultant, that same inspector had an absolutely
anomalous collection methodology, in other words, the collection methodology
relating to the traces found in the bidet of a bathroom of the house, which were
collected using [forensic] blotting paper which was held directly in the hand and not
by means of tweezers (page 26), so as to render possible the transfer of material from
the glove to the blotting paper, and vice versa.

Inspector Brocci also carried out the collection and sampling of a blood trace on the
bidet using the same piece of blotting paper to remove the blood that was found on
the rim, and finally, with the same blotting paper, she removed the blood that was

238
found near the drain of the bidet. By carrying out the collection of evidence with the
same piece of blotting paper, Professor Tagliabracci observed critically, the biological
material present on the rim of the bidet was, in fact, combined with the biological
material from around the drain; this may well have been blood that trickled down
from the rim, but it cannot be excluded that it may have been biological material
deposited minutes, hours or days previously.

The result was a mixed profile belonging to the victim and to Amanda Knox; but the
aforementioned evidence collection was affected by the operative methodology
used, in that [254] Amanda Knox may have left biological material days or hours
earlier, and that material was in any case combined with that found on the bidet rim
and which had dribbled down to the drain. ‚Therefore, we are dealing with is a an
operation that we consider erroneous in nature‛ – explained Professor Tagliabracci –
‚and if this was done, we are inclined to think that it may also have happened with
the other findings, including that < relating to Exhibit 165/B‛ (page 27).

With reference to the knife, it was recalled that it was described as being clean, and
that ‚there was nothing visible macroscopically, nor were investigations carried out
that could have been done to verify if there were exfoliating epithelial cells (=flaking
skin cells), which there probably would have been‛ (page 28), the consultant pointed
out that exfoliative epithelial cells are cells that are shed by subjects every day, and
that DNA can be left by touching everyday objects like keys, phones, door handles,
purse handles. The quantity left on the object is, in the end, independent of the
duration of the contact, and is independent as well of the energy/force expended: it
is sufficient to touch the object.

He added that there could also be a secondary transfer, from subject to object, and,
furthermore, ‚if another subject touches the same object, epithelial cells left by the
first [subject] will remain on their hand, which will obviously complicate many of
the subsequent tests that will have to be carried out‛ (page 29). He pointed out that
shedding of epithelial cells can occur even by means of a normal handshake. With
reference to Dr. Stefanoni’s testimony regarding dead cells, the outer layers (the
stratus corneum) of the epidermis, and keratinized cells that do not have a nucleus
and from which it is not possible to extract DNA, the consultant referred to the
outcome of an experiment in which about twenty people had touched a clean glass
surface with their thumb, and there was a subsequent check of what was left behind.
The outcome of this check supplied the information that epidermal cells and
keratinocytes without a nucleus were deposited; however, DNA-containing nuclei
were also left behind. This, explained the professor, was in relation to genetic factors

239
that differentiated the various individuals from each other. Finally, he observed that
no sample analysis was done to establish the nature of the [255] specimen.

Professor Tagliabracci then focused on the subject of the ‚low copy number‛ (page
33, hearing of 5 June 2009) and pointed out that if the quantity of DNA is low, the
subsequent amplification may present problems, in the sense that there could be an
imbalance in the alleles, or a loss of alleles, and in addition there could be some
alleles that are absent and yet are nonetheless highlighted. In the face of such
drawbacks, Professor Tagliabracci therefore concluded, it is absolutely necessary to
proceed with a subsequent amplification to seek confirmation of the data obtained.

Turning to Exhibit 165 and stressing the possibility of contamination of the


specimen, and its consequent unreliability, he turned his attention to the
deformation of the clasp and maintained that this circumstance bore witness ‚to a
dynamic [physical] action (sollecitazione) brought to bear not on the clasp itself, but
on the cloth, where only the victim’s profile was found‛ (page 36). Therefore, he
continued, with regard to the DNA, ‚I ought to have found it on the sides, on the
cloth, but instead it was found on the clasp, which I don’t think was touched in this
dynamic action that we are supposing took place‛ (page 37). This reasoning led him
to think that ‚the DNA ended up on the clasp after November 3rd‛ and thus *got
there] by way of contamination.

He complained in addition that in reference to the quantization, it was said only that
the quantization was performed, but nothing further was specified. In particular, it
was not said whether the quantity was adequate and allowed proceedings to go
ahead using standard methods, or whether, on the contrary, it was a case of such a
low quantity that it would be necessary to proceed using specific methods, as
happens for ‚low copy number‛, i.e., for small amounts of DNA. In this case, it
would have been necessary to repeat the amplification to validate the result. Finally,
he explained that, when it is a case of a small quantity, amplification repetition is
necessary because there are artefacts *adulterations+, that is ‚alleles that may be lost,
entire loci may be lost, or else there may be an imbalance of alleles‛ (page 43).

The alleles, he explained, representing the individuality of the subject, are in the
DNA, [256] in the DNA molecule, and there are regions called loci in which there are
these microsatellites which are used to identify the subjects. He explained that the
term ‚locus‛ indicates the base on which the peaks that are called alleles are seen.
The peaks are not of equal height, but depend on the quantity of DNA analysed;
usually, when the quantity of DNA is normal and optimal, the peaks have heights

240
reaching 2000, 3000, 4000 RFU. For the peaks present in the indicated loci and
relating to Exhibit 165/B, their corresponding heights lead to the conclusion that
there was little DNA.

He specified, as well, that noise is an artefact consisting of a peak that is one


repetition unit shorter with respect to the principal allele. Usually noise does not
exceed 15 per cent of the height of the reference allele; if it is greater than 15 per cent,
then it cannot be considered to be noise and must be held to be an allele. He then
turned to the Exhibit 165/B electropherograms (pages 47 and following) and
emphasised that, as regards the mixed trace, there are rules which have been issued,
some just recently, by the International Society for Forensic Genetics which give
recommendations on how the interpretation of a mixture must be done. ‚In
particular,‛ the consultant said, ‚they recommend following a different method to
the one that was used by Forensics (Polizia Scientifica)‛, who had adopted a suspect-
centric method.

Professor Tagliabracci censured them therefore for not having considered the
possible genotypes of this mixture, or the possible artefacts, or the peak heights
present in this mixture, which can give rise to different genotypes, and saying: ‚I
find the subject’s alleles in the mixture and, for me, the subject is there, it is
compatible‛ (page 50). On the contrary, while it is necessary to make a comparison
with the reference samples of the subject or of the suspect; only once the analysis of
the mixture is complete < will I go on to make the comparison with the suspect’s
DNA, and thus I avoid the urge < to find the suspect’s DNA anyway/*i.e.,
irrespective of the actual results+ in the mixture that we have examined‛ (page 51).

Professor Tagliabracci then maintained that this suspect-centric method was


detectible in Dr. Stefanoni’s report and presentation because, he affirmed, it was a
case of ‚forcing the profile obtained < eliminating or leaving out alleles [257] solely
for the purpose of making that profile compatible with Raffaele Sollecito’s profile‛
(page 51). He pointed out, also, that interpreting a peak as an allele or as noise
results in the identification of a different profile. He then indicated, in the
electropherogram, various peaks which were considered noise whereas they ought
to have been considered alleles, and specified that ‚this is especially so for locus
D21S11 (page 55), where there was a peak present whose height exceeded the 15%
that constitutes the threshold between noise and allele. This peak’s height is 15.8%
with respect to the reference allele, he added, and therefore could not be considered
as noise (page 56); on the contrary, the Forensics service considered it was noise, and

241
this in had given rise to a genetic profile that leads to compatibility with that of
Raffaele Sollecito which, otherwise, would not have been the case (page 57).

He pointed out that that there is a significant subjective element in reading the
electropherograms. He focused in particular on locus D5S818, in which two principal
alleles are present; together with a third peak with a height of 108 RFU; as this is
higher than 50 RFU, it should have been considered an allele. Forensics [la Polizia
Scientifica] did not, however, consider this to be the case; instead, they considered
the 65 RFU peak to be an allele and observed that, in this way, a compatibility with
Raffaele Sollecito’s profile resulted, which otherwise would not have been the case
(page 59). With reference to this, Professor Tagliabracci repeated that there was a
forced interpretation, which was typical of a suspect-centric attitude (page 60).

Then he looked at locus D21S11 and pointed out that the Forensics service read this
trace with 3 alleles, being 30, 32.2 and 33.2, while they did not consider the first one,
i.e. 29. This last should however be considered, being a peak more than 15% higher
than the reference allele, and therefore ought not to have been classed as noise, but
rather as an allele. Professor Tagliabracci indicated the consequences thus: ‚we have
to reconstruct genotypes; we know that Kercher had a 2-allele genotype at this locus,
D21S11, being 30 and 33.2; then we have two alleles that evidently belong to the
other subject who contributed to the [258] formation of this mixture, and the
genotype of this subject is 29 and 32.2; the unknown person left DNA with a profile
of 29 and 32.2‛ (page 65), which is different from Sollecito’s profile, which has 32.2
and 33.2.

Regarding locus D7S820, he revealed that Forensics had interpreted it, recognizing
the presence of two alleles, 8 and 11; they had not taken into consideration a peak,
low, but still higher than 50 RFU, corresponding to allele 10. Given this, according to
Professor Tagliabracci the following genotypes were possible: 8 and 11, which is
Kercher’s, and another possible genotype which could be 10 and 11, or 10 and 8, or
10 and 10. But that very possibility in the interpretation highlights the necessity of
avoiding a suspect-centric interpretation, and, to avoid this, it would have been
necessary that ‚knowledge of Raffaele Sollecito’s profile should occur in the final
phase: first we interpret all the possible genotypes, and then we go and see if these
possible genotypes are compatible with that of Raffaele Sollecito‛, the defendant
Sollecito’s consultant *Tagliabracci+ claimed (page 67).

In locus CSF1PO, Forensics found two peaks as alleles: 10 and 12. Professor
Tagliabracci held that another peak, which instead was interpreted as noise, should

242
have been considered, ‚corresponding to allele 11‛, so that three alleles would
appear, 10, 11 and 12. ‚The most likely contributors, because we are never certain, I
repeat we can never know the maximum number of subjects‛ continued the
consultant, ‚have genotype 12 and 12, which is Kercher’s, and, according to me, 10
and 11. Sollecito has genotype 10 and 12: he should therefore not be considered, and
should be excluded from the presence of another subject‛ (page 68).

In locus D16, Forensics had held that that an allele 10 was present, and an allele 11
and an allele 14, and did not consider another peak which would have indicated
allele 13 and which, according to Professor Tagliabracci, should be taken into
consideration. ‚There are most likely two contributors, one of which is the victim
who had a 10 and 14 genotype, corresponding therefore to these two peaks, and then
there is a subject 11 and 13, by our interpretation < that thus belong to a subject
[259] with an 11-and-13 genetic profile, different from Sollecito’s, which is 11-and-
14‛ (page 70).

Finally, [he turned his attention to] locus D5S818, in which, as has already been
observed, the 108 RFU-high peak, allele 13 according to both the RFU and the
position, was removed from the group of others that were being interpreted as
alleles. He added that, ‚it is an allele that forms a pair with another allele that could
be here, or there might be only a 13 13 subject, but it can pair up with an allele that is
found together with the victim’s allele 12, and therefore it is nonetheless a subject
who is contributing [to the sample] in addition to Kercher, it is a subject with most
likely a 12 13 genotype, while Sollecito is 12 12. Now, I cannot say that Sollecito is
not also here *in the data+, but there is also a third subject with a different genotype‛
(page 71).

(H)

Regarding the knife found in Raffaele Sollecito’s house, he recalled that several
samples had been taken from this knife and a genetic profile corresponding to that of
Amanda Knox was found in the part corresponding to the area between the blade
and the handle; on the blade of this knife a sample had been taken, DNA was
extracted and an electrophoresis run was performed. Forensics held that the genetic
profile which emerged was the victim’s. He recalled, lastly, that the generic
diagnostic test for blood had been negative.

243
Professor Tagliabracci held that, in the analysis of this evidence also, there were the
same limitations as those identified with regard to Exhibit 165B. First of all, he
stressed, it was surely a "low copy number" finding for which the amplification
should have been repeated to confirm the result obtained. Then, with regard to the
blood-testing diagnosis, he commented, critically, that there might have been
epithelial cells, since the knife might have ‚been handled by someone who
transferred epithelial cells. Amanda lived with the victim, even Raffaele Sollecito
had been in that house, so, in short, it is permissible to think that there may have
been a transfer of some exfoliated cells‛ (pages73 and 74).

[260] The consultant, Professor Tagliabracci, added that it had not been quantized;
the amplification was not repeated; an electrophoresis run was obtained in which
most of the peaks were below 50 RFU. With regard to this, he asserted that this was a
case of an unusable result, and added that it would have been so even on the basis of
a further observation: "in the second electrophoresis run‛ according to what had
been stated, ‚a somewhat higher amplification had been set to see whether these
electropheric peaks might become higher, whether a better electrophoresis track
might be obtained‛ but this did not occur (page 74).

With reference to a study done by Professor Tagliabracci together with other


scholars, and relative to the loss of cells in which DNA was found, it was noted that
the quantity of such DNA [is] between 0.04 to 0.2 ng (nanograms) of DNA; and in a
significant number of experiments the subject left cells with DNA, in other
experiments none was found. It depends also on the state of the subjects’ as good or
poor losers of DNA‛ (page 90), the consultant specified. He added that, if a surface is
rubbed, especially if vigorously, it is likely that DNA will be left.

With reference to the trace on the [bra] hook he specified that he had spoken of "low
copy number" on the basis of two considerations: the cells present on the hook were
exfoliated epithelial cells, and therefore it is possible to imagine that there was little
DNA since exfoliated epithelial cells do not form a smear as may happens with
blood, sperm, saliva or other biological fluids which contain many cells; ultimately,
there are few exfoliated epithelial cells. In the professor’s opinion, this fact was also
confirmed by the electrophoresis chart shown, "in which we have an amplification
which may actually be deduced from the results and an electrophoresis of little
DNA, in short, the highest electrophoresis tracks reach 500[to] 600 RFU, 500, 600 or
700 ... something like this on average. Then there is a much lower height always
around 70 - 80 - 50 - 60 RFU, therefore this suggests that the amount of DNA was
very low‛ (page 94), the consultant further specified.

244
[261] He specified that in any case he had only assumed the epithelial nature of the
cells.

He specified that one nanogram of DNA is the ideal amount to able to carry out an
amplification; it allows a good amplification, and therefore to carry out an
electrophoresis run with peaks that have a greater height, which will then not suffer
from problems of interpretation.

Following questions relating to the amount of DNA (such as "if we have 1.4
nanograms of DNA will the amplification turns out well?" page 99) the defendants’
defence called for the elements relating to the laboratory analyses as well as the
records of laboratory activities to be made available.

The Public Prosecutor pointed out that all the tests had been carried out under
Article 360 of the Criminal Procedure Code and a lawyer or a consultant for the
defence was always present at every stage of these tests and no objection and/or
request had been put forward in those stages. The quantification was also performed
during these activities carried out in the laboratory. The Defence emphasised their
demand to have it made available ("we want it, we want it", page 108) and requested
that the proceedings should be suspended immediately in order to acquire the
necessary [information], otherwise reserving the plea of invalidity because the
proceedings whose existence they had been informed of today had not been
deposited in the prescribed manner‛ (page 110). Amanda Knox’s defence also
insisted that the documentation should be acquired, with a reservation to also
review the conclusions of their own consultants (page 111). The Public Prosecutor
declared that he did not oppose the defences’ requests, but specified that it was not a
case of documents, but of data that normally are not recorded in the report.

The Court ordered the suspension and acquisition, setting a reasonable time limit,
both for lodging *the document+ and for continuing with Professor Tagliabracci’s
testimony.

(I)

At the hearing on September 14, 2009, Professor Tagliabracci’s testimony was


resumed following the provision of further documentation in accordance with
defences’ requests and as ordered by the Court. In that hearing two memos by
Professor Tagliabracci were also produced, one dated July 15, 2009 and the other
August 27, 2009, regarding the [262] documentation made available and the analyses
of the Forensics report, respectively.

245
With reference to the documentation, Professor Tagliabracci complained that not all
the logs/entries or index-cards relating to the composition of the amplification mix
had been provided, so that it was not possible to know the reaction volumes and the
amount of extract. He point out that, although [attention] had been called to the
guidelines supplied by the manufacturing firms at the GUP [Giudice dell’Udienza
Preliminare, Preliminary Hearing Court] hearing, Dr. Stefanoni had affirmed (page
179 of the transcripts) that she had also used different volumes.

From this, Professor Tagliabracci had deduced as a consequence that what had been
affirmed did not correspond to the methods actually used in the laboratory and
furthermore inferred that there was probably a record of these analytical activities
that had not yet been produced.

He complained also that in the SAL *‚Stato Avanzamento Lavori‛, work status report]
index cards the dates of quantification, amplification and electrophoresis run were
never given, and with reference to numerous findings catalogued under [ = (finding)
Nos.] 3.58, from 148 to 151; from 154 to 163; from 203 to 222, he advanced the
hypothesis that not all material relative to these had been made available.

With regard to Exhibit 165B, on the basis of the height of the peaks, from the data
supplied and derivable from the extraction quantities and concentration, and taking
into account that this concerned a mixed sample, in which the ratio of the victim’s
DNA to that of the minor contributors was about 10 to 1, it followed, as a
consequence, that the quantity from the minor contributors was less than 200
picograms, and it was thus a "low copy number" with its attendant uncertainties and
necessity of repetition.

With regard to Exhibit 36, he pointed out that there had been no connection between
what was written in the technical report [RTIGF: Relazione Tecnica Investigativa
Genetica Forense] on the quantization which had tested negative for trace C and
positive for trace B, since in the quantization report the result for both specimens
was analogous to "too low", i.e., negative. He pointed out another contradiction with
what Dr. Stefanoni had testified in the preliminary hearing, when she said that in
trace B, the DNA was in the order of a few hundred picograms (page 178 of the
transcripts).

[263] With reference to other specimens, their interpretation as cat blood was in
contradiction with what was found with trace 3, for which it should be concluded
that it was human blood.

246
He then stated, in conclusion, that the documentation did not allow all the
operations that had been carried out to be traced, and that there were various
inconsistencies between what had been stated in the preliminary hearing and what
subsequently appeared from the documentation. He reconfirmed the datum
according to which the quantity of DNA of the minor contributors of specimen 165B
should be considered as "low copy number".

Speaking at [the resumption of] the hearing which had been adjourned following
requests for provision of documentation, as has already been recalled, Professor
Tagliabracci in the first place lamented the lack of information on the volumes, that
is on the quantity of material that was used in the test-tube. The volume is normally
25 microliters and of this volume, he specified, 15 microliters are necessarily
constituted of the reagents which are used to obtain the analytical result; 10
microliters is the usual quantity that is used; however, whether 10 microliters of
extract are used, or 5 or 7 or 8 [microliters] are used, has a bearing on the amount of
DNA that can be present in the extract, the consultant pointed out. He clarified that,
to have an optimum situation, it would be necessary to use 20 microliters. He
stressed the importance of knowing the volumes and the concentrations used, as
otherwise it was not possible to express a well-considered judgement on the
electropherogram, and nor could one establish whether the peak height was low
because of the quantity of DNA used in the amplification, or whether it was the
result of other factors (pages 38 and following, hearing on September 14, 2009). He
reiterated that, from the documentation supplied, it was not possible to deduce a
series of data, namely the volume before the reaction; the amount of DNA used for
the PCR [polymerase chain reaction]; whether there had been any changes to the
protocol with respect to the manual; whether the extracted DNA had been
concentrated; whether the initial 50 microliters had been concentrated before or after
the quantization. He complained that none of this was mentioned in the technical
report of forensic tests, and added that the concentration should have been carried
out taking into account what was said [264] by Dr. Stefanoni in the preliminary
hearing when, on pages 178 and 179 and with regard to [the trace on] the knife,
exhibit 36B, she had affirmed that she had carried out a concentration. He added that
the fact that these data were missing from the documentation might be more or less
important; it was, however, necessary to check whether the procedures
recommended by the manufacturer of these products had in fact been followed. He
further observed, with regard to this same aspect, that it was impossible, when
examining two or three hundred specimens and without having a documented
record, to be able to remember all the operations that may have made and added

247
that ‚it is extremely difficult if not impossible to have such a memory as to be able to
remember that I concentrated that one, I took it to 22, this one, on the contrary, I
didn’t concentrate, and so on‛.

He pointed out also that some findings, cited in the technical report of forensic tests,
did not have their Work Status (SAL) reports. He quoted in this connection Exhibit 3,
Exhibit 14, Exhibit 29, Exhibit 58, the Exhibits ranging from 148 to 151, Exhibits 154
to 163 and the Exhibits ranging from 203 to 222.

Turning to Exhibit 165, he highlighted the presence of the report and noted that four
tests had been carried out for the DNA quantization: two related to Exhibit 165 A
and two to Exhibit 165 B. These four quantization analyses were carried out using
Real Time PCR [polymerase chain reaction] and the results of the quantization were
reported. He pointed out that the [Scientific] Police [i.e. Forensics] had correctly
done two tests. In the first a quantity of 140 picograms of DNA was found; in the
second test 90 picograms. "Therefore‛, he added, ‚if we have 115 picograms per
microliter, [then] 50 microliters have been extracted, [and] the total quantity of DNA
is 5750 picograms, which would be 5.75 nanograms of DNA: a significant amount
that would enable them to carry out various amplifications‛.

He pointed out, however, that it was necessary to bear in mind that this was not
DNA from a single contributor. There was the principal contributor who was the
victim, Kercher, and a second contributor, but there could also hypothetically be
more than two contributors, ‚up to 4: in some loci< [265] it seems that there might
be 4 contributors, so this total quantity of 115 picograms is provided by at least two
subjects: the subject who gives the principal part, the victim, and the ratio with
regard to the minor contributor is about 10 to 1. This can be established on the basis
of the height and surface area of the peaks: approximately 10 to 1 means that – of
these115 picograms per microliter – about 104.6 picograms are from the victim and
10.4 picograms per microliter are from the other contributors‛.

Professor Tagliabracci then maintained that the major contributor, the victim, had
provided a quantity ten times greater with respect to the minor contributors whose
DNA must have been about 100 picograms, a quantity that would be classed in the
category of low copy number. In this regard Professor Tagliabracci noted that, when
dealing with low copy number, there may be variations in the amplification from
one case to another, and phenomena may occur such as loss of alleles or addition of
alleles, and there may also be an imbalance of the peaks. In relation to this, it would
have been necessary to carry out another amplification. The consultant lamented

248
that it had not been shown that such a repetition had been made and disputed the
assertions made by Dr. Stefanoni who had held that the data obtained on this basis
was sound, and had not performed a repetition. Professor Tagliabracci maintained
instead that data that was a result of a single amplification, in any case of such DNA
quantities, is susceptible to error.

Turning then to Exhibit 36, that is the 31 cm long knife found in the house of Raffaele
Sollecito, given that in Dr. Stefanoni’s technical report it was written that traces A
and B, having turned out to be positive for quantization, were subjected to
amplification, and that trace C had turned out to be negative for quantization; in this
regard, the consultant observed that it appeared that trace B and trace C had given
the same result of "too low" (page 57, hearing on September 14, 2009). As a
consequence, it was not at all clear why trace B had been positive for quantization,
[since] it had had the same result – trace C’s ‚too low‛ – which had turned out to be
negative. He also emphasised that the expression "too low" was used for amounts of
less than 10 picograms and also for 0 picograms. [266] Consultant Professor
Tagliabracci also pointed out that, in the preliminary hearing, Dr. Stefanoni had
affirmed that in trace 36 B the DNA was in the order of some hundred or so
picograms and that the quantization had been done through Real Time PCR
[polymerase chain reaction]; but this did not appear from the cards [reports] that had
been provided.

Responding to a specific question posed by the defence regarding the relevance of


the documentation which was only subsequently made available: ("Professor, in
light of your analysis of this documentation, I’d like to ask you two things: if I had
been able to provide you with these documents earlier, would you be able to make a
more complete analysis? And what does what you are missing have a bearing on,
precisely?‛), the consultant declared that ‚what is missing has a bearing on the
interpretation and evaluation of the result; these are results which must be
corroborated by an analytical process which does not appear to have been
documented here ...‛ (page 63).

[Replying] to a question by the Public Prosecutor regarding the quantities used by


Dr. Stefanoni and, in particular, if these were in conformity with those prescribed by
the kit in question, the consultant declared that he had information which led him to
say that they had not been respected with regard to exhibit 36, for which it was said
that the volume of amplification had been reduced to less than the 25 microliters
prescribed by the manufacturer [of the kit]; the volume in this case was reduced to
20 microliters, as he recalled (page 64). On that point, he specified that 25 microlitres

249
is the total quantity, including reagents: 15 microliters of reagent and 10 microliters
of substance. He deduced this from what Dr. Stefanoni had declared at the
preliminary hearing of October 4, 2008. (‚What I know, I've taken from pages 178,
179 of the preliminary hearing transcript, wherein Dr. Stefanoni would have taken ...
after a first concentration, [she would have] taken the sample to 20, 22, and 23
microliters, then, after she had done the quantization, she carried out a further
concentration‛, page 68). He noted that, in that hearing, Dr. Stefanoni had specified
since the amount of DNA was so low she had decided to use all of it and had taken it
to 10.

To the Public Prosecutor’s question, asking Professor Tagliabracci where he had read
that she used less than 10, the consultant replied: ‚the final volume, as everyone
[267] knows, refers to the last volume which is in the test-tube after everything has
been put in it – reagents, extract – and the final volume written down here is 20
microliters because the identifiler kit can amplify in 20‛ (page 69). He reaffirmed that
the kit used by Dr. Stefanoni indicates the optimal minimum quantity to be 25
microliters inclusive of reagent, and 10 microliters with regard to the substance.

Turning to Exhibit 36 B and 36 C, he highlighted that in the report "too low‛ was
written, and explained that this was to signify that there had been was no result for
the quantization, which was therefore below 10 picograms and might be anywhere
from 9 picograms down to zero picograms; therefore in the 10 microliters there
might have been only water.

Professor Tagliabracci emphasised that when the result is too low, one should stop
doing the analyses and that sample should not be considered useful for subsequent
analyses. The resulting graphs showing peaks could have arisen from ‚laboratory
contamination‛ (page 76) and confirmed that "the peak is produced by DNA‛ (page
76).

As for the missing S.A.L. reports [work status reports] he could not specify which
items they related to.

With regard to the [bra] hook and the ratio between the male contributor and female
contributor to the mixed DNA present on the hook, the consultant declared that it
was a mean ratio that he had deduced on the basis of the peaks of the various loci.
He stressed that it was nonetheless difficult to determine exactly, because there were
loci that had different proportions. ‚However‛, he added, ‚at a rough guess, it
seemed to me that it could be a one to ten ratio" (page 83). The differing ratio of one

250
to six found by Dr. Stefanoni he considered to be rather low; a ratio of 1 to 8 might
seem more reasonable. He affirmed, nevertheless, that even with a ratio of 1 to 6 they
would have found themselves below that threshold of 200 picograms which qualifies
low copy numbers. In this mixed trace and with reference to all the loci, it could only
be at the least that there was a male subject; it was not possible to establish the
number of male contributors.

However, since only one Y haplotype was found in that "mixture», it should be
considered likely that only one [268] male subject had contributed that DNA (page
85). The possibility could not, however, be excluded that other contributors had been
present ‚with such a low quantity of DNA that was not detected‛.

Professor Tagliabracci further specified that the kit used for detecting the Y
haplotype is very, very sensitive, and more sensitive than the kit for DNA. He
clarified that the expression ‚more sensitive‛ means "we can get a result more easily"
(page 86). With reference to the criticism advanced on the collection/finding of the
hook and the consequent contamination that might have occurred, the consultant
reiterated that the term ‚contamination‛ refers to the transfer of DNA; he affirmed
that this DNA ‚is probably derived from the fact that the collection was carried out
in an anomalous way because the hook remained there for many days; it was moved
... there are subjects’ epithelial cells that may be shed, that are found in the
surroundings, [and] that may have adhered to the hook‛ (page 96).

Responding to questions from the defence team of the civil party (Kercher family),
the consultant declared that there is no minimum number of loci to assert
compatibility between two subjects. He specified that previously, when the current
systems were not available, "there was enough ... we made hypotheses even with 6
loci" (page 103).

With reference to the Y haplotype, Professor Tagliabracci declared that, because of


its particular nature, the Y haplotype cannot be used to confirm but only to exclude
because it is not possible to know which of the subjects, present in a given area, have
this specific haplotype that is transmitted unchanged through generations. He thus
affirmed that, in the area of Perugia, there could be dozens of subjects with the same
haplotype as Raffaele Sollecito. In fact, he added, "all the Sollecitos who have spread
throughout Italy probably all share the same haplotype‛ (page 106).

Regarding the reference made by Dr. Stefanoni to the database, to which the
organisation where Professor Tagliabracci himself worked had also contributed, he

251
pointed out that the number of samples that came in was limited; as a consequence
the claim that [268] no subject with Raffaele Sollecito’s haplotype was present in the
database meant nothing. He added in this regard that carrying out an analysis ‚on 8
loci of these 17 < we see that Raffaele Sollecito’s haplotype for only 8 loci ... has a
frequency of 2, 3 [or] 4 subjects in every thousand, [i.e.] has a frequency of 3.36 in a
thousand subjects‛ (page 107).

In the face of a result of ‚too low‛, such as the one found on the traces of Exhibit 36,
the consultant declared that it would also have been possible to continue with the
analysis. He added, however, that ‚it is a result that should not allow you to
continue‛. He specified that continuing the analysis meant going ahead with the
amplification (page116); but, he added, ‚any result would still be disputable".

Attention was also called to Exhibits 42, 45, 47, 48, 49, 52, 55, 56 and 57, which had
yielded results of ‚too low‛ (sponges, the bucket, the cloth, the gloves...); it was also
noted that all of these samples had then been amplified; according to Stefanoni’s
report dated June 12, 2008, it could be seen that none of them had yielded any useful
genetic profile at all. In in this regard, the consultant pointed out that this was the
normal outcome in the presence of a "too low‛ quantity.

He declared that the valid interpretation criteria for distinguishing alleles and noise
were both the quantitative criterion of the ratio equal to 15 percent and that
[criterion] concerning the position: the noise in respect to the allele must occupy the
place that the previous allele normally occupies. He reaffirmed that labs normally
use a threshold of 50 RFU: the peak must be 50 RFU high, and he specified that "over
50 it should be considered an allele, below that it might be an artefact ... something
that disturbs the reaction, [or] the electrophoresis run, unless it is a case of mixed
samples because if we’re talking of mixed samples we can have some contributors
that provide such a minimal quantity of DNA that the peaks that are then produced
are even lower than 50 RFU‛ (page 119).

Turning to reply to the question regarding Exhibit 165 (the clasp), he specified that
his criticism with regard to Dr. Stefanoni’s report and presentation/testimony
concerned the attribution of the trace to Raffaele Sollecito, but not [269] the finding
about the mixed nature of the trace, and he therefore confirmed that it concerned a
specimen that came from the victim and from one other subject or from several other
subjects. He could not establish whether this other subject or those other subjects
were male. He could, however, affirm, ‚the major contributor is male‛ and added
that it was ‚difficult to say whether this Y peak of the Y chromosome Y, at the level

252
of the amelogenin [test] which identifies the sex, was formed by one single
contributor or whether there were also minor smaller contributors‛ (page 120). He
added, however, specifically taking the Y haplotype obtained on 17 loci into account,
the following: ‚in short, to me it would seem to be only one subject‛. He reaffirmed,
still with reference to the Y haplotype, that it served [i.e., could be used] to exclude
but not to attribute with certainty. He also affirmed that the Y haplotype found on
the hook could not belong to Rudy Guede who, he specified, ‚has a different profile
from this one‛. Still with reference to this point, he added the haplotype was
compatible with the Y haplotype of Raffaele Sollecito, afterwards specifying that,
‚the problem is, I repeat, the frequency of this haplotype, so that it can only be used
for exclusion‛ (page 121).

He further declared that he concurred with the analyses carried out by Dr. Stefanoni,
which had led to the attribution of some biological specimens to the victim, because
in those cases there was DNA ‚in large quantities left by the victim in traces of blood
and in other findings; so there is no problem in the analysis of those specimens
belonging to the victim, the problem is in the other specimens‛ (page 122).

With regard to the frequency of the Y haplotype attributed to Raffaele Sollecito, he


declared that he knew this frequency in relation to 11 loci, and he indicated it as
being 3.36 per thousand subjects. He did not know the frequency with reference to
17 loci.

The Public Prosecutor then produced a copy of the ISO 9001 2008 certificate issued to
the Scientific Police Service, valid as of July 21, 2009.

(J)

Dr. Patumi, a consultant for the defence of Amanda Knox, testified at the hearing on
September 25, 2009. Having clarified that he is not actually a specialist in genetics, he
essentially confirmed the statements of Professor Tagliabracci concerning the genetic
investigations. He also recalled that the [271] international scientific community
advises not taking values smaller than 50 RFU into account, in order to avoid using
results which lack reliability because they may have been influenced by other
factors.

253
Referring to Exhibit 36, he recalled that Dr. Stefanoni performed a specific test for
blood which yielded a negative result, and asserted that "we must believe today that
it was not blood" (page 99, hearing of September 25, 2009).

Dr. Patumi further observed that, having failed to obtain a qualification of type, Dr.
Stefanoni then proceeded in her analysis to seek a quantification, which as Dr.
Stefanoni herself explained, is obtained by using a machine called a fluorometer,
which is able to determine the quantity of genetic material in a given item. The
machine yielded the result "too low". He recalled that the same point was raised by
Professor Tagliabracci: when the technician or the scientist is confronted by a result
of this type, she may not and cannot continue, because whatever results she may
obtain will be questionable and can never be considered certain (page 100).

He also recalled that it is recommended to use private laboratories rather than


Scientific Police laboratories "to avoid the suspect-centric expectations which could
arise from the fact of working in surroundings in which other elements of the case
are also known" (page 101).

Returning to the "too low" results, he observed critically that Dr. Stefanoni decided
to continue, and used Real Time PCR, which is another type of reaction, obtaining
peaks which were quite low, and that she did this even though "they were already
not parameterised according to the normal conditions of genetic investigation
recommended by the manufacturer in order to guarantee the accuracy of the result,
but in fact well below the well-known 50 RFU required by the international
community to obtain a reliable examination of low copy number DNA" (page 102).

[272] He then explained that the peaks obtained were at heights of around 20, 30,
occasionally 40, and observed that therefore if the machine had been used with the
regular 50 RFU parameter, no results would have been obtained at all.

Those results that were obtained should thus be considered as the consequence of
contamination, for several reasons: the manner of collection (the knife was found by
the Scientific Police of Perugia, then transferred to Rome inside a regular envelope
(of the type used) for letters, and a cardboard box; the samples, indeed, were taken
at random and not at specific points [reperti]); the quantity examined was the
absolute minimum and thus very difficult to study, and, he added, in this vein, that
"the ratio was minimal<compared to the, on the contrary, huge...amount of genetic
material of the victim < being studied during that time in the laboratory in Rome"
(page 104). On this specific point, he recalled that Dr. Stefanoni had stated that she

254
had examined the sample from the victim around 50 times, "showing that the
hypothesis of contamination is not such a very unlikely one".

He also recalled that a second amplification was not done, because there was
insufficient material. Asked specifically, he said that laboratory contamination does
not always and necessarily produce very small biological traces.

Dr. Sarah Gino was heard at the hearing of September 26, 2009 on the subject of the
documentation deposited following the relevant orders made by this Court, which
have already been mentioned; with respect to this document, Amanda Knox's
defence produced a memorandum statement dated September 25, 2009 from Dr.
Sarah Gino.

Considering the Work Status Report [SAL] cards, she noted various inaccuracies,
such as the lack of indication of the concentrations of the extracts before or after the
quantifications. She observed, however, that this procedure must have in fact been
followed, since it was mentioned in the technical report by the Scientific Police. She
criticised the lack of dates for the amplifications, and noted that this lack constituted
a shortcoming of some importance, since it becomes impossible [273] to know which
samples were "processed" together, which could be relevant for evaluating the
possibility of contamination.

Indications making it possible to verify whether the standards and protocols were
followed were also missing. Work status report [SAL] cards were not even found for
certain samples.

It did, however, emerge from the documentation that some of the samples taken
from Exhibit 36 were quantified with the Qubit fluorometer, and that the results for
some of them were "too low". Thus the quantity was inferior to the base value (or
threshold setting) of the kit; it could even have been equal to zero. This result, she
asserted, should have led to cessation of the analysis.

She also observed that if the concentration of DNA was below the threshold value of
the instrument: "we have surely before us a low copy number situation".

She also noted the contradiction between what was said before the GUP with respect
to Exhibit 36B, when it was stated, on the part of Dr. Stefanoni, that the quantity was
of the order of a few hundred picograms and what had resulted from the
quantification performed using the fluorometer, which had given a "too low"
[result].

255
The negative result for blood yielded by the Luminol-positive traces raised the
question of whether these were actually made in blood or not. Furthermore, Dr.
Gino observed, the quantity of DNA in these samples was compatible with the "low
copy number".

During the hearing, Dr. Sarah Gino also explained that from reading the SAL
schedules, information emerged which indicated the personnel who performed the
analyses, the file number, the bio code, and the identification numbers of the items
being analysed. She added, however, that "there is missing information or rather,
information which is not easy to interpret".

She also noted that the quantity of the extract was noted as being 50 without,
however, the unit of measurement. She added, however, that "anyone in the
business knows or can assume that the 50 meant 50 microlitres" (page 64 hearing
Sept. 26, 2009).

She added how there is a phase in which the result of diagnosis of the nature of the
sampled trace becomes known: during the extraction phase, [274] the dates of the
first, second and third extractions are indicated, and also the quantifications, so three
dates are supposed to be recorded; but "in these cards, the dates for the
quantifications are missing"; she also complained about the fact that the dates for the
first, second and third amplifications and the type of commercial kit that was used to
amplify the trace were missing.

This information was not contained in the SAL cards; however, the type of
commercial kit could be determined by reading through the technical report
deposited by Dr. Stefanoni.

Further indications were missing, concerning the dates at which the samples were
amplified, and this, she observed, was extremely important in relation to the
problems of contamination which had been raised.

Not knowing the dates of the amplifications made it impossible to know whether
contamination had occurred. She also noted the lack of information with respect to
the volume of the reagents and also to the quantity of DNA used in the various
samples.

With respect to the Luminol-positive traces found in Romanelli's room, in Knox's


room and in the corridor, she stated that by analysing the SAL cards "we learn, in
contradiction to what was presented in the technical report deposited by the

256
Scientific Police, and also to what was said in Court, that not only was the Luminol
test performed on these traces, but also the generic diagnosis for the presence of
blood, using tetramethylbenzidine...and this test...gave a negative result on all the
items of evidence from which it was possible to obtain a genetic profile" (pages 73
and 74). She thus asked whether it was still possible to interpret these traces as being
haematic in nature. Analysing the quantification data, she added, "we see that the
quantity of DNA obtained from the major part of these traces is compatible with low
copy number DNA; therefore DNA is present in very small quantities; so it is also
necessary here to ask oneself whether or not the amplification could be repeated, in
order to be able to consider the results obtained as scientifically valid‛ (page 74).

[275] With respect to the extracted quantity indicated as 50, and which she presumed
was intended to mean 50 microlitres, she stated that that value did not refer to the
quantity of DNA present in the sample, "but it is the quantity...it is the volume from
which I eluted, that is, I extracted, I drew out of the sample, of the substrate on
which this trace had my DNA...the DNA is contained inside this liquid; the quantity
of DNA could be zero inside this liquid...this does not give any indication of the
quantity of DNA that is present because the DNA could even amount to zero" (page
75).

Returning to a discussion of Exhibit 36, trace B, with reference to the indication:


animal species, she declared the following: "animal species, I believe that...where
there are tests that are specific for humans and thus can indicate that this trace
originates from a human being, when this is not possible, one says that the trace
comes from an animal, but then there are tests that one can eventually do to verify
which type of animal might have left the trace, such as dog, cat..." (page 76).

In answer to specific questions about the Luminol-positive traces, she stated that
from the technical report one exclusively learn that at the crime scene, these traces
returned a positive reaction, like that which has come to be defined as the generic
analysis made with Luminol, whereas in fact it could be seen from examining the
SAL cards that testing specifically for blood had been carried out and had "resulted
as negative " (page 77).

To a question from the Public Prosecutor, she confirmed that a genetic profile of
Knox had been extracted from Exhibits 178, 179, 180, and this biological material,
which could not be confirmed with certainty as being human blood, could have
been, she affirmed, "saliva or skin cells" (page 78); the negative result of the TMB test
(tetramethylbenzidine) made it impossible to determine exactly what material had

257
been analysed. She did, in any case, confirm that the profile of Knox had been found
("Certainly, Knox's genetic profile was found", page 79).

She added that, in her own experience, analyses performed with TMB on traces
revealed by Luminol give about even results: 50% negative, 50% positive, [276] and
added that the acronym TMP indicated a colourimetric reaction which occurs in the
presence of tetramethylbenzidine, which had been substituted for the carcinogenic
benzidine; the presence of blood can be detected by means of this reaction.

She tied the relevance of the amplification dates to the need to verify the samples
which were amplified across various dates, stating it was also relevant in relation ‚to
the contamination possibilities which exist in a laboratory‛ (page 81).

Returning to Exhibit 36, she specified that she had focused on trace B and not on
trace A and the profile which emerged from it.

She stated that in the hearing before the GUP, Dr. Stefanoni had spoken of a quantity
equal to a few hundred picograms; from later documentation it appeared that in fact,
it was a quantity labelled "too low", and, she observed, such a quantity cannot
amount to a few hundred picograms (page 88). However, it appeared to her that, Dr.
Stefanoni (again, before GUP) specified that she had performed the PCR at 28 cycles;
in fact, she recalled that she had been asked why "if it was a case of a low copy
number sample, she had not amplified it with more than 28 cycles, as usually
suggested in the guidelines" (page 88).

She reaffirmed that [the risk of] contamination exists, and emphasised that in
minimal quantities of DNA there is not necessarily a greater risk of contamination
but it was easier to notice the effects of the contamination and be misled ("...It's not
that the risk of contamination is greater; but it is easier to see the contamination..."
page 92). She specified that of the samples tagged as "too low"; only two had yielded
a genetic profile, namely traces 33A and 33B.

With respect to trace 177, one of the Luminol-positive ones, she declared that
"besides the profiles...that is in addition to the peaks relating to the victim and the
ones attributed to Amanda Knox, there were other peaks which were not taken into
consideration even though they were present, and some of these had heights greater
than 50 RFU" (page 93).

258
GENETIC INVESTIGATIONS: CONSIDERATIONS

[277] The declarations made during the course of the present case by Dr. Stefanoni, a
biologist at the Police Forensic Service in Rome [Servizio Polizia Scientifica di Roma], as
well as those already referred to in the October 4, 2008 hearing before the
Preliminary Hearing Magistrate [GUP] and published in the Report dated June 12,
2008, were the subject of various objections by the Consultants for the defence of
Raffaele Sollecito and Amanda Knox.

In the first place, it was stated that a geneticist who knows the biological profile of
the suspect and has access to said profile may misinterpret *‚force-bend‛+ the
reading of the graph supplied by the machine so as to recognize or identify the
biological profile of the suspect. The recommendation that forbids such a procedural
method was mentioned and, for the trace for which Dr. Stefanoni already had the
biological profile of the current defendants, it was repeatedly maintained that the
reading of the various graphs and the interpretation of the peaks in themselves
presenting as statters and/or alleles was flawed due to the so-called suspect-oriented
method.

This court does not accept this objection. The same objection, in addition to making
no logical sense, appears to be contradicted by the acquired findings.

In the first place, it must be stressed that it is not possible to discern any reason for
which Dr. Stefanoni would have had any bias in favour of or against those under
investigation and, on the basis of such bias, would have offered false interpretations
and readings.

Dr. Stefanoni and the personnel of the Polizia Scientifica arrived in the immediate
aftermath of the event and took various specimens, beginning their evaluations
several days later. They then returned to the house where Meredith’s body was
found a month and a half later, on December 18, 2007, and then undertook with their
analyses. While this activity was being carried out and followed through on, the
suspects changed and the investigations were underway, open to later acquisitions
against and/or in favour of this or that suspect.

At the same time the Forensic laboratories were handling many other cases, as Dr.
Stefanoni recalled, devoting to each of them their customary skill and
professionalism. Now, unless we want to acknowledge some kind of [278]
persecutory intention against a specific individual (this eventuality, though without
the slightest foundation of any semblance of plausibility, was in fact expressly

259
denied by the same defenders during the course of the [legal] debate), we cannot see
how or why, based on logic alone and for the sake of argument, Dr. Stefanoni would
have had to cook the data supplied by the machine in order to identify incriminating
evidence against any of these defendants, attributing this or that biological specimen
to one or the other suspect, or else – as happened with many specimens collected –
not attributing them to anybody at all. Furthermore, all of this would have been on
the basis of choices and changing permutations that would have been absolutely
indecipherable in their concrete determination. It is sufficient in this regard to
consider that from 228 exhibits a total of 460 traces were sampled, only a few of
which provided positive results that were useful to the investigations; the
Consultant for Sollecito’s Defence has declared having been given the responsibility
of examining Exhibit 165 (the clasps with the piece of bra) and traces A and B of
Exhibit 36 (the 31.5cm long knife; thus one of the two knives seized). Therefore, just
three specimens out of over 450 examined, plus a few more that were taken into
review by the Amanda Knox defence consultants. Accordingly, it stands to reason
that the suspect-oriented method would have invalidated Forensic activity for only
for a small minority of specimens, in addition to not knowing what the selection
criteria were.

It must also be stressed that Dr. Stefanoni, testifying under oath, declared that she
did indeed have the biological profile of the various defendants, but as merely
historical data and not as data held front-and-centre in the moments during which
she was interpreting the various electrophoresis diagrams.

It must therefore be excluded that Dr. Stefanoni, during the moments she was
interpreting the various electrophoresis diagrams, was swayed by the suspicion-
centred method. Instead, it is held that in interpreting the various electrophoresis
diagrams Dr. Stefanoni availed herself of her own capabilities and her own
professional experience and, once identified, where it was possible to do so, a
biological profile was compared with each of the available biological profiles [279]
as, in itself, the biological profile that forensic genetics is able to process is useless in
identifying the first and last name of the subject to whom said profile refers.

(L)

In another point, the unreliability of the results offered and illustrated by Forensics
was asserted. It was held that the specimen examined could have been contaminated

260
and therefore could not be held to be pure, and that the results obtained from
analysis of these same specimens would be unusable. This contamination,
furthermore, were alleged to have a dual source and nature: laboratory and
collection.

The alleged laboratory contamination would have occurred or could have occurred
due to contact with other samples, or with residues of other samples, on which the
presence of biological traces belonging to one or another subject would have
compromised the purity of the other trace to be placed under examination. It was
also hypothesised that the multiplicity of analysed samples, many of them
originating from the victim, may have left behind residual DNA of the victim herself
that, especially in traces later examined and containing minimal quantities of DNA,
would have been capable of altering (contaminating, in fact) the trace that
subsequently came to be placed under examination. This hypothesis, it must also be
remembered, was in particular proposed for trace 36B (the one found on the blade of
the knife and attributed to the victim) which, owing to the minimal DNA found in it
(too low) some residual trace, originating from one of the many specimens examined
belonging to Meredith, could have contaminated this trace. On this point, Dr. Sarah
Gino also complained about the missing indications of the dates on which the
various examinations were carried out, an element that – she observed – would have
been useful to better evaluate the contamination hypothesis precisely from this
perspective.

The Court does not hold this assumption to be tenable.

In the first place, and according to what was evidenced by the prosecution during
the course of legal debate without incurring any objection, the analytic activity
carried out on the various samples was completed in accordance with the provisions
to which Article 360 of the Criminal Procedure Code applies, and no [280] objection
was raised or proposed with specific reference to the non-observance of any of the
provisions contained in the above-mentioned law, intended to safeguard the rights
of the various defendants and allow participation in the relative activities, precisely
in order to confirm the correctness, integrity and reliability of the activities carried
out. No objection, therefore, was raised by the parties, who were in a position to
participate in the analytic activity, in line with the methodology used to carry out
same. What Dr. Stefanoni declared during the preliminary hearing of October 4, 2008
(the transcript of which was tendered during the course of legal debate) about
Professor Potenza’s presence throughout all phases of the sampling of Exhibit 36

261
(page 29 of the relevant transcript) bears remembering with regard to this specific
point. And no objections were raised concerning the methods or procedures used.

It must also be emphasised that, as Dr. Stefanoni said, every technician in the
Forensic laboratories adheres to all precautionary measures to ensure that there is no
contamination from one sample to another. This was stated in reference both to the
handling method used for the various samples and their analysis. She also testified
and affirmed that the various tools and instruments were changed and underwent
customary maintenance, checks and replacements. In addition, responding to
apposite questions about the quality certifications, she said that the procedure for
obtaining them were in place, and specified that it was only a matter of signing off
on what had already been done in order to obtain the said certification, without the
need to introduce any variation or modification in the methods currently in practice
or in the existing instruments.

Dr. Sarah Gino also maintained that laboratory contamination is possible, and Dr.
Patumi referred to a contamination case that occurred in a particular genetic analysis
laboratory: possibility of contamination, therefore, and objective confirmation that
contamination can occur.

[281] In the present case, none of any of this emerged, however, and Dr. Stefanoni’s
testimony rules out that any laboratory contamination could have occurred.

In fact, none of the parties in a position to participate in the analytic activities (which
took place pursuant to Article 360 of the Criminal Procedure Code, as has been said)
ended up putting forward any specific objections to the equipment, methods, or
fitness of the machinery. Differently to what happened at the analysis Institute
expressly mentioned by Dr. Patumi, for the structure in use by the Polizia Scientifica
in Rome – where the analyses were performed – nothing of this kind has emerged,
no anomaly – either during or following the completion of the analyses – was
signalled; Dr. Stefanoni testified about the ongoing precautions adopted to avoid
any possible contamination and, in relation to the related methods and
instrumentation – as has already been said – a process for obtaining the Quality
Certification was already underway, with no introduction of any modifications
required. She further specified that, during the course of the various analyses, no
anomaly had occurred. These declarations, it must be observed, have not been
contradicted by other matters emerging; thus, they have been confirmed by the
Quality Certificate obtained in 2009 and produced by the prosecution.

262
On the matter of contamination, there was also discussion with reference to the
method used to acquire the specimens and the handling of the samples by
technicians. First, accordingly, that they had been carried into the laboratory for their
respective analysis, and, about this, specific reference was made to the 31.2cm long
knife seized from Raffaele Sollecito’s apartment in Corso Garibaldi in Perugia
(Exhibit 36) and to the fragment of the bra, made up of the clasps and a little piece of
cloth, found in the victim’s room at number 7 via della Pergola (Exhibit 165).
Secondly, there was also discussion of the specimens collected from the bathroom (in
the bidet and in the washbasin, in particular), albeit under the heading of the
concrete methodology of sample collection.

The issue in question must therefore be examined with reference to the Exhibits for
which said objections have been raised.

263
EXHIBIT 36 (THE DOUBLE-DNA KNIFE)

[282] On November 6, 2007, during the search carried out in the apartment in
Perugia where Raffaele Sollecito lived, the 31cm-long knife was found. Taking part
in the search were Dr. Chiacchiera, Vice Director of the Perugia Flying Squad, [and]
Inspectors Finzi and Passeri; [and] Superintendent Ranauro and assistants Camarda,
Rossi and Sisani. All, according to statements made by witnesses, wore gloves and
shoe covers. The knife was taken by Inspector Finzi, who testified that he had clean,
new gloves and that, having opened the drawer where the tableware was kept, the
first thing he saw was a large knife that was extremely clean. There were other
knives in the drawer, but he took [only] this one, which became Exhibit 36. This
knife was the first object he touched and it was located on top of all the tableware.
He put it in a new paper envelope he had with him and then in a folder. The bag
with the knife inside was handed over to Superintendent Gubbiotti when he
returned to the Police Headquarters.

In turn, Superintendent Gubbiotti, who had participated in the search of the house
on via della Pergola on that same date of November 6, stated that he was given the
knife by Finzi when he returned to Police Headquarters and that it was inside a new
and well-sealed envelope. Gubbiotti furthermore declared that when he collected
[Note from the translator: the Italian word used here can also mean catalogued or
indexed] the knife in question, he was wearing new gloves that had never been used
before, which he had taken from the office. It was with these gloves that he took the
knife from the bag and put it inside a box that he sealed with scotch tape and sent
with the other evidence to the Forensic Police in Rome, where it underwent analysis
as stated by Dr. Stefanoni.

It should also be recalled that Stefano Gubbiotti, before receiving the knife, had
participated in the search in the house on Via della Pergola 7, [and] together with
Zugarini processed Amanda’s room. The various individuals who testified [in
Court] on the procedures [used] for this search all declared unanimously that
whoever dealt with one room did not enter any of the other [rooms]; no one went
from one room to another.

[283] At this point, it must be asked what concrete possibility of transferral of DNA
could have happened in order to contaminate the knife, Exhibit 36, [thus]
falsifying/altering the subsequent analyses which, as testified by Dr. Stefanoni,
resulted in the discovery of traces A) and B) with biological profiles
attributable/referable to Amanda and to Meredith, respectively.

264
Inspector Finzi declared that this knife was the first object which he took from the
drawer and specified that it was on top of the rest of the cutlery and conspicuous; he
therefore took it without having to do any rummaging. He grasped it with the new
gloves, which had not first touched [any] other objects, and then put it in the new
bag. In this phase, therefore, there can be seen no way in which the DNA of Amanda
and of Meredith, which Stefanoni says she found on the knife, might have finished
up on that exhibit, contaminating it.

Finzi did not touch the knife again, and delivered the folder and the envelope
containing the knife to Superintendent Gubbiotti at Police Headquarters.
Superintendent Gubbiotti returned from the search [which he had] carried out with
gloves and shoe-covers in the house on via della Pergola, [during which he] had
processed Amanda’s room. It could therefore be hypothesised that Gubbiotti was the
carrier of the contaminating DNA, DNA which he could have picked up in
Amanda’s room where, that morning, he had carried out the search and which,
therefore, he could have transferred to the knife, Exhibit 36, as he pulled it out of the
bag in which it was contained in order to put it in a box which had previously
contained a new diary - a gift from a bank - and which, [once] sealed, he then sent to
the Forensic Police in Rome. Such a hypothesis must, however, be rejected since for
the search in Amanda’s room, Gubbiotti had worn gloves which were not the same
as those he wore when, subsequently, he took [hold of] the knife. He declared, in
fact, that when he found that knife he was wearing new gloves which he had not
used on any other occasion, [and] on which, therefore, there could not have been the
DNA which was later discovered on the knife. It cannot be thought that
contaminating DNA from Amanda or from Meredith could have been found in the
box in which the knife was placed, since it was a box which had contained a new
diary, a box which, once sealed, was sent to Forensics in Rome.

[284] Nor is there more merit in the hypothesis advanced by Professor Tagliabracci,
although (insofar as a reading of the transcripts of the hearing in which he testified
allows [us] to verify) it only appears in the memorandum dated July 15, 2009 and
acquired on September 14, 2009. According to this hypothesis, the biological trace
found on Exhibit 36B (blade of the knife) could have come from flaking/scaling cells
belonging to Meredith, which cells, as Amanda touched objects on which these could
have ended up, could then have been transferred to the blade of the knife (page 25 of
the memorandum).

This Court is not able to can share such a hypothesis because of the means of DNA
transfer which the same hypothesis presupposes, and because of the variety of

265
circumstances that such a reconstruction requires. In fact, since the knife, Exhibit 36,
was not found to have ever been seen in the house on Via della Pergola, it is
necessary to imagine that Amanda (or Raffaele Sollecito, being the only person who,
together with Amanda, was shown to have visited both houses) picked up these cells
in a place quite far from Raffaele’s house, where the knife was kept, and went
directly to the house on Corso Garibaldi without touching anything else in between,
precisely to where the knife was and, once again, without touching any other object
(since otherwise there could be no reason for which, without any particular
exfoliating action, sometimes the DNA ‚attached‛ itself and ‚re-attached‛ itself and
other times it didn’t) immediately took the same *knife+ and with her hand on the
blade (and the reason for such a way of grasping it, imprudent at the least, escapes
*the Court’s understanding+) could have transferred cells from Meredith onto the
blade in question.

Thus, the DNA from Meredith which was found on that knife cannot be traced back
to any contamination occurring in the house in which it was found, or to the method
of acquisition of the knife on the part of Finzi, or even to the collection and dispatch
methods used by Gubbiotti. In addition, as has been said, that such contamination
could have been carried out by the laboratory is also ruled out.

EXHIBIT 165 (THE BRA-CLASP)

[285] There have been many criticisms, especially on the part of Raffaele Sollecito's
defence, of the manner of discovery and subsequent collection for analysis of the
small piece of material with hooks attached, from the bra, found torn off and stained
with blood in Meredith’s room.

This small piece was seen on November 2, 2007, but was not collected on that
occasion. Testimony about this small piece of bra was given in particular by Gioia
Brocci, vice-captain serving at the Questura of Perugia. Gioia Brocci, present at the
moment in which the lifeless body of Meredith Kercher was removed, in the night
between the 2nd and 3rd of November, has declared that she observed everything
which was underneath the body; bloodstains and a pillow, and that lifting this
pillow, underneath it she noticed that there was a fragment of bra which had not
been found attached to the rest of the bra, found at the feet of the victim. She further
stated that that piece was photographed, but that no specific letter was placed on it,
of those letters which were used to describe the crime scene, as it was counted along

266
with the letter indicating the bra. This piece of bra was found again and taken for the
purpose of analysis during the search on December 18th, 46 days later than when it
was seen during the search on November 2nd-3rd. In these circumstances, the small
piece of bra, while still in the victim's room, was not seen to be in the identical
position it had been in before, but had been moved by about one metre and a half,
and was almost hidden by a small rug under which was also hidden a sock. On this
occasion it was collected, photographed, repositioned on the floor, taken up again,
observed and placed in the envelope which was then sealed and sent to the
laboratory for analysis.

In relation to these events, and taking into account also the various searches and
entries which occurred in the house on via della Pergola between November 3 and
December 18, 2007, the possibility was raised that this small piece of bra might have
undergone some contamination, so that the results of the analysis could not be
considered reliable.

Also in this case, the Court does not consider that statement is acceptable.

[286] In the first place, it must be emphasised that no specific circumstance or


situation has been given which could justify the asserted contamination, even as a
possibility.

The hypothetical transfer of contaminating DNA appears to rely on the whole set of
events concerning the recovery and collection of the piece of bra, without any precise
specification of one or more actual moments or happenings of which one might say:
that might have been where the contamination happened. Rather, the assertion of
contamination was put forth almost like a bet -- one might say blindly -- that there
must have been an error, and that this corrupted all of the following phases.

But, even posed in this general way, the problem of contamination must be
confronted.

Dr. Stefanoni, as we have already seen, thus explained that on the bra clasp, there
was also present the DNA of Raffaele Sollecito. Starting from this assertion, the
problem in question can also be formulated as: was the DNA of Raffaele Sollecito,
which, according to Dr. Stefanoni, was found on the bra clasp, a consequence of an
act of Raffaele Sollecito carried out directly on the bra which Meredith was wearing
on the night that she was killed, or on the contrary, could it have had a different
origin, so that this DNA could have ended up on the bra clasp without Raffaele
Sollecito having ever touched the bra directly, and its clasp in particular?

267
A first fact in the solution of this problem is the following: the door of Meredith's
room was closed on the morning of November 2nd, closed and locked: this was how
Amanda stated to have found it when, around 10:30 am on November 2nd, she went
to the house; this was how Amanda and Raffaele found it when, around 12:30 pm of
that same November 2nd, they returned to the house together, and that is how the
two agents of the Postal Police saw it, and the four young people (Filomena
Romanelli, Paola Grande, Luca Altieri, Marco Zaroli) who, having arrived at around
13:00 pm, decided to break down the door of the room of the British student, which
was locked as has been said, and whose key could not be found.

[287] It must also be recalled that when the door was broken down and opened,
Raffaele Sollecito remained at a distance, far enough -- as has been said -- that he
could not even have been able to look into the room; furthermore, it does not appear
that he entered the room at any later time; in fact, as has been seen, the contrary has
been shown: once the door was broken down, everyone was ordered to leave the
house and Raffaele Sollecito did not enter into the cottage again, much less into
Meredith's room.

There is no hypothesis for the ‚placing‛ of Raffaele Sollecito's DNA in Meredith's


room which could have actually occurred under these circumstances.

On October 26, 2007, the day immediately following the day on which he met
Amanda, Raffaele Sollecito was in the house in the via della Pergola, and he
returned there two or three more times, according to the statements of Filomena
Romanelli and Laura Mezzetti. It is thus possible that he could have left some of his
DNA somewhere in the house. But it is not possible to consider that this hypothesis
could explain that his DNA ended up on Meredith's bra clasp. Raffaele Sollecito
went to the house in via della Pergola to be with Amanda, and was always right next
to her, as reported by Laura Mezzetti. Thus he did not need to go into Meredith's
room. Moreover, no one has stated that this happened, and the very tight and quite
recent bond with Amanda tends to exclude the possibility that such a thing could
have occurred.

It is thus necessary to hypothesise that Raffaele Sollecito left his DNA in various
places around Meredith's room; and also one must hypothesise that his DNA, left on
a surface anywhere in the house, could have been transferred to the clasp of the bra
that Meredith was wearing when she was killed.

268
Regarding the possibility of such an event, or combination of events, occurring, one
must observe the following: in the house on via della Pergola, apart from the clasp,
only one other place was found which bore a trace containing the DNA of Raffaele
Sollecito, mixed with that of Amanda Knox: on the cigarette stub which was in an
ashtray sitting on the table in the living room. In and of itself, this fact should one to
rule out that Raffaele Sollecito easily and copiously disseminated his own DNA in
the house on via della Pergola.

[288]

Page 288 of the original Italian is corrupted. Please see the Note at the front of this
document – we invite readers to submit an intact copy of this page so that we may
update the translation. What follows in the marked section between [288] and
[289] is a summary put together from what is observable on the page. However,
for obvious reasons, this should not be relied upon until the whole page can be
translated.

Certainly, it can be observed that every single place in the house was not tested, and
one might think that Raffaele Sollecito's DNA might have been located in some other
places. One can consider the possibility that his DNA from some other place that
was not found was transferred onto the bra clasp, but this would have to have been
done by someone manipulating the object. But simple contact between objects does
not transfer DNA. Amanda's and Raffaele's DNA were both found on the cigarette
stub, not just one of them, transferred by the other. It is also important that the bra
was the one that Meredith was actually wearing, and the clasp was found under the
pillow which was under Meredith. It doesn't seem possible that Raffaele Sollecito
could have managed to touch it there so as to leave his DNA on it. At this point it
should also be mentioned that the piece of bra was found under a small rug in
Meredith's room [which protected it] and that no objects were taken out or

[289] carried into the said room, which would imply that Raffaele Sollecito must
have had something to do with objects that were in the room of the victim and must
have left his own DNA on one such object. A hypothesis which, it is observed, has
the same value as the preceding one, with the identical consequence of not being
retained as plausible by the Court.

269
It is also observed that the small rug did not show itself to be a good transmitter of
DNA. Underneath it there was a sock, and analysis proved that on this sock there
were only DNA traces of Meredith. Also the circumstance by which DNA was found
on the hooks - so on a more limited and rather less absorbent surface than the
material attached to them - tends to exclude that Raffaele Sollecito's DNA could have
landed on the hooks, precisely on the hooks, by contamination or by transfer from
some other unspecified object.

Another remark concerning the last hypothesis formulated above is the following:
any transfer of DNA from the surface of the rug under which the small piece of bra
was found would imply that between the two objects there was more than simple
contact, touching of each other, but an actual pressure exercised on the rug under
which the piece of bra lay. This hypothesis was set aside after Dr. Stefanoni reported
that the small piece of bra with the hooks was found placed in the same position on
the floor as when it was seen during the inspection of November 2nd-3rd, and also
the deformation of one of the hooks was the same. Vice versa, if some pressure had
been exerted on top of it, if in one of the police activities someone had stepped on it -
- then that deformation would not have remained identical; but the small piece of
material and the hooks and eyes had the same form, the exact same type of
deformation and also the same placement on the floor (see also the statements of Dr.
Stefanoni that were reported earlier; she additionally stated that, having seen the
small piece of bra in the early hours of November 3rd rather quickly, the images of it
taken on that occasion allowed her a more prolonged and attentive observation,
enabling her to declare that the deformation had [290] remained unmodified and
unchanged, as did the side on which it was set on the floor).

For the elements and the considerations indicated above, it is ruled out that the
hooks could contain DNA transferred by contact with other objects.

The Defence heavily emphasised the manner in which the Police search was
performed, entries into the house that occurred, the fact that in the inspection of
December 18th the clasp was found to have moved by a metre and a half and was
underneath a rug, rather than in the situation and position in which it was originally
found; they also emphasised the fact that this piece of bra was taken, held,
repositioned and then picked up again by hands before being placed in the envelope
for transmission to the laboratory for analysis.

270
It thus appears necessary to go over the moments, the phases, the entries and the
operating methods which could be relevant for the examination of the problem at
hand.

On November 2nd, after the door had been broken down and after everybody had
been made to leave the house, at around 13:30 pm, the personnel from the Questura
of Perugia arrived: Dr. Chiacchiera, the inspector Monica Napoleoni and others. Dr.
Chiacchiera reported that he stood in front of Meredith's room without entering;
Napoleoni drew near to Meredith's room together with the assistant Buratti. They
remained at the door, and Napoleoni took a step inside the room when the doctor
from 118, who had arrived, uncovered the body. Deputy Commissioner Napoleoni
stated that everyone who entered wore gloves and shoe-covers except for the
personnel from 118, who, even without the precaution of shoe-covers and gloves
could not have contaminated the clasp, it is observed, since it was well-hidden and,
one might say, protected by Meredith's body and by the pillow under which it was
found.

Meredith's body, stretched out supine on the floor, was lifted, and it was possible to
look underneath. This happened late at night, shortly after 13:00 pm on November 3,
2007, based on the video footage and the time stamp on the video camera which,
however, according to Dr. Stefanoni, advanced by one hour. However, it was late at
night when the clasp was seen for the first [291] time and it was placed under the
pillow on which, at the level of the hips, the body of Meredith was partially placed.

In the room of the victim, the Scientific Police from Rome were working, and Dr.
Stefanoni declared that they were proceeding with all the care and precaution
needed to ensure the maximum conservation of the crime scene, avoiding all careless
manipulation of things which could provoke any contamination. She added that the
operators were using special protections such as suits, gloves, shoe-covers and face-
masks in order to avoid any exchanges between the operators themselves and the
surroundings.

She also declared that in order to avoid objects contaminating each other, every
single object or trace was sealed in a security envelope.

It must also be emphasised that precisely in order to preserve the crime scene as
genuinely as possible and to avoid contamination, the choice was made to postpone
the examination of the body for about 11 hours, according to the declarations of Dr.
Lalli, who arrived at around 14:40 pm on November 2, 2007, and began his own

271
activity by the observation of the body alone at 00:30 am on November 3, 2007. This
choice was certainly not without a significant cost in terms of the acquisition of
elements that were certainly important. If this choice was made in order to preserve
the crime scene, then it stands to reason that the precautions indicated by Dr.
Stefanoni must have been adhered to with the greatest care. No elements have
emerged from which one could assert that this did not happen. Furthermore,
viewing the film of the inspection of November 2nd-3rd gives the impression of
movements and actions that are particularly attentive and measured. It should also
be recalled that Dr. Stefanoni declared that in that search, the technical operations
were pursued from the interior of the house towards the exterior.

Let us return to the problem in question, of examining in what manner the small
piece of bra could have been contaminated, and contaminated with the DNA of
Raffaele Sollecito. Given the circumstances and the operating method described
above, one must find a hypothesis that could explain such a contamination.

[292] One could, perhaps, think that one of the technicians, entering into the room of
the victim, might have inadvertently moved some DNA that Raffaele Sollecito had
left elsewhere in the house, dropped it in Meredith's room, and after the lifting of the
body and the discovery of the clasp, there was another moving of the DNA which
thus ended up on the hooks, which are very tiny: but this hypothesis appears
absolutely improbable in terms of the dynamics which must be assumed, the
sequence of combinations that would be required, and even its contradictory nature.
Indeed, one would have to believe that at times it is very easy for DNA to move
from one object to another and stay there, and at other times it is not.

As for entry into the house on November 4th, it does not seem that such an event
could have any material relevance: the personnel from the Scientific Police from
Rome were still present in the house, since as declared by Dr. Stefanoni, they were
proceeding from the furthest part of the house towards the exterior, without going
back and forth between the different places. The entry on November 4th was limited
to the first places in the house, and the Vice Commissioner Napoleoni spoke of it in
the following terms: to this meeting were called Meredith's roommates, Romanelli,
Mezzetti and Amanda; thus Raffaele Sollecito was not present, and the goal was to
show to Romanelli, Mezzetti and Knox the knives from the kitchen; everyone wore
gloves and shoe-covers and everyone remained in the kitchen area; only Romanelli
was asked if she recognised the clothes that were in the washing machine. It is
impossible to see how this access to the house can have led to any contamination of
the piece of bra found in Meredith's room and left there. Indeed, it was found in the

272
said room on December 18th, and as was declared, no object that was taken out of
any room was then brought back, and no object found in one room was taken to a
different room or place in the house.

The activity of the Scientific Police of Rome was completed on November 5th, and
the police search took place on the following two days (November 6 th and 7th),
performed by Profazio, the director of the [293] Flying Squad, Deputy Commissioner
Monica Napoleoni, and the inspectors and superintendents Bigini, Gubbiotti,
Zugarini and Barbadori.

According to the statements made on this point, the search was conducted with
gloves and shoe-covers, and above all with a precise division of the different places.
Meredith's room was searched by Dr. Profazio, Napoleoni, and Bigini; Amanda's
room was searched by Zugarini and Gubbiotti. Barbadori was responsible for
Romanelli's room.

On November 7, 2007 the clothing that was in the washing machine, located in the
area between the large bathroom and the kitchen-living room, was collected.
Profazio and Giobbi were in charge of removing Meredith's computer.

During the course of the search, objects were necessarily moved and clothes were
looked through. The search respected the subdivision into different rooms for
different operators. In Meredith's room, on the day of November 7th, the computer
was not taken. It was also shown that, according to declarations, those who searched
Meredith's room did not enter into other rooms and vice versa; there was no
movement of objects from one room to another. The gloves were not changed every
time a different object was touched.

Monica Napoleoni, referring to the search of November 6th, has reported that she
saw the light blue rug, but did not notice the small piece of bra, and she added that
she does not specifically know whether the light blue rug was moved. Inspector
Bigini recalled that in Meredith's room, there were bloodstains, and because of this,
everyone moved very carefully trying to minimise their motions. According to the
testimony of Dr. Profazio, the only other surface stepped on by all the different
operators in the various rooms was the corridor.

While the Scientific Police were in the house, it was under surveillance, and after
that the seals were placed. After November 7th, the last day of the search by the
personnel of the Questura of Perugia, the next access to the house on via della
Pergola was the entry on December 18, 2007, which has already been discussed,

273
[294] and no seals were broken between November 7 and December 18, 2007. So
there was no illicit access to the house during this period.

The Court thus holds that the circumstances and operative methods described above
lead to the conclusion that no contamination of the small piece of bra with the hooks
occurred. Such contamination, as will be shown immediately, cannot be connected
with any illicit access since, before the piece of bra and other findings were removed
(on December 18th as already stated), the protective system in place and the seals
placed on the house show no signs of having undergone any forcing which would
make it possible to state that persons not under [police] control, moving around
without due care and attention, could have contaminated any findings.

The search methods set up by Dr. Profazio, and complied with according to all
statements made, prevented those working in Meredith's room from ever entering
any other room, or those working in other rooms from entering Meredith's. Objects
were moved, necessarily moved, but every object that was in a room, if it was not
actually taken away, remained in the same room, without ever moving to another
room, or being taken out of the room and then back in. The only parts of the house
through which operators from the various places all passed were thus the living
room and corridor. One might thus assume that some DNA of Raffaele Sollecito that
had been left somewhere in the living room or corridor was moved, and ended up
on the hooks. Such a movement of DNA and its subsequent repositioning on the
hooks would have had to occur either because one of the technicians walking on the
floor on which the DNA was lying hit it with his foot or stepped on it, causing it to
end up on the hooks, or because by stepping on them, he impressed onto them the
DNA caught underneath the shoe-cover he had on in that moment. But these
possibilities cannot be considered as concretely plausible: to believe that, moving
around the house, the DNA could have been kicked or stepped on by one of the
technicians, who in that case would have been [295] moving about, and to believe
that this DNA, instead of just sticking to the place it had been kicked or stepped on
by (probably the shoe, or rather, the shoe-cover), having already been moved once
from its original position, would then move again and end up on the hooks, seems
like a totally improbable and risky hypothesis.

One could think that in the moving around of all the various objects, one thing could
have been touched that carried some of Raffaele Sollecito's DNA on it, and by this
contact found itself on the hands (gloves) of some technician who, then using the
same gloves to touch another object, could have transferred onto that object the
DNA that was on the gloves he was using. This hypothesis could hold in relation to

274
the fact that objects were certainly picked up and thus subjected to a certain
pressure; furthermore, from what has emerged, during the search, gloves were not
changed every time a different object was handled, but several objects were touched
with the same gloves. However, such a hypothesis cannot be held acceptable with
respect to the bra hooks. Firstly, one must consider the search method, which
involved subdividing the areas: in Meredith's room no other object apart from the
hooks was shown to carry Raffaele Sollecito's DNA; Raffaele Sollecito, as already
observed and stated above, did not leave his DNA on any object that was in
Meredith's room; and more importantly, none of the operators, after having touched
some object which might have had Raffaele Sollecito's DNA on it, then touched the
hooks of the small piece of bra so as to make even hypothetically possible a transfer
of DNA (from the object containing Sollecito's DNA to the gloves, from the gloves to
the hooks). In fact, none of the operators during the search of November 6th and 7th
even took note of that little piece of bra, and thus in particular no one picked it up.
That the small piece of bra was later found in the inspection of December 18th in a
different position than where it was originally noted (in the early hours of
November 3, 2007) is not in contradiction with what has been said: during the
search, various objects present in Meredith's room (as in the other rooms) were
checked, [296] furniture was moved around and drawers looked into. Movement of
objects, in particular of clothing, may have induced the movement of other objects,
and this is what the Court considers to have occurred with respect to the piece of bra
which was seen on the floor of Meredith's room on November 2nd-3rd and left there.
Deputy Commissioner Napoleoni, referring to the search of November 6th, has
declared that she recalled the presence of a bluish rug; one can thus conclude that
this rug was looked at during the search and entered into contact with the operators
making the search, and like other objects, was moved from its original position, but
always remaining on the floor of the room; during this movement it must have
covered up the piece of bra (which was on the floor of the same room and yet was
not noted during the search), thus determining by its own motion the accompanying
motion of the small piece of bra, making it end up where it was then found during
the inspection of December 18th: under the rug, together with a sock, in the same
room, Meredith's room, where it had already been seen. So it underwent a change of
position that is, thus, irrelevant to the assertion of contamination.

It is also impossible to consider that contamination occurred from the manner of the
finding and collection that took place on December 18, 2007: on that occasion, the
personnel from the Scientific Police were equipped with gloves, shoe-covers, suits
and masks. The inspection took place in Meredith's room, and the piece of bra was

275
the first object to be found and catalogued. It should also be observed that in order to
assert the occurrence of contamination, one would have to hypothesise that some
object in Meredith's room contained a deposit of Raffaele Sollecito's DNA, and that
this object was touched in a way that determined the transfer of the DNA from it to
the gloves of the operator, who then touched the piece of bra on the hooks upon
which the DNA was transferred. This hypothesis is unsustainable according to what
has already been observed of the methods used and the conditions for
contamination that such a hypothesis would necessarily require. Furthermore, it
does not appear that before picking up the piece of [297] bra, any other objects were
not touched. Also, the use of suits, masks, gloves and shoe-covers, even if it occurred
after certain other activities, in particular the search, still demonstrate that particular
caution and care were used: thus it appears unlikely that the hypothesis of
contamination could hold in this situation.

Much has also been said on the finding of the piece of bra at a distance of one and a
half meters from where it was first seen. But this is a consequence of circumstances
which are not held to be significant for the hypothesis of contamination, and
correspond to the circumstances and considerations explained above, adding that
after those events the samples were dry and therefore transfer of DNA would have
been all the more difficult, according to Dr. Stefanoni. If anything, the passage of
such a long period of time would rather have had the effect of deteriorating the
DNA and losing information. However, these are aspects concerning the results of
the analyses and not the contamination of the finding.

It can thus be asserted that no contamination occurred on the hooks on the piece of
bra seen on November 3rd and collected on December 18th. These conclusions are
based on the arguments given above and are consonant with the manner of finding
of the hooks: they form a tiny surface which would be difficult to contaminate; the
piece of bra shows, from the attachment of some threads from the strap of the bra
and by the partial deformation of one of the hooks, that a rather firm and violent
pressure was applied to that piece and in particular to the hooks, a pressure which
adequately and convincingly explains the presence of DNA of the person exerting
this firm and violent pressure. The opposing reconstruction of events given by
Professor Tagliabracci is not held to be acceptable: he claims, judging from the
deformation of the hooks, that this would have been caused by a strong pull
exercised on the material and not on the hooks (p. 36 cited above), and he expressed
the hypothesis of contamination in relation to this point of view.

276
[298] However, it must be observed that the pressure exercised on the bra could not
have had any other purpose than to unfasten and remove the bra that Meredith was
wearing, a thing which was actually done; to obtain this result it seems logical and
natural that the hooks and eyes of the bra were privileged. For the rest, a bra that is
worn is very firmly on the person wearing it, in particular in that the hooks are
placed in the eyes. Thus, when intending to remove the bra, the person acting to
remove the hooks from the eyes they were hooked into, this being the principal act
necessary in removing a bra. This action, thus, must have been exercised on the
hooks, but then, not obtaining the desired result, in the context of the violence to
which Meredith was subjected, pushed [the attacker] to force the hooks, with the
consequence that precisely the hooks underwent some deformation. That the bra
was then torn and also cut signifies the resistance of the hooks, and their
deformation appears as a natural consequence of this resistance, and the placing on
them of the DNA of the person applying force to the hooks appears as a totally
coherent and logical fact.

Nor, as has already been said, is it possible to hypothesise a contamination in the


laboratory since, as was declared by Dr. Stefanoni, during the course of all the
analyses, no anomaly occurred, and the fact that all due controls, precautions and
procedures of good laboratory practice were complied with necessarily leads us to
rule out the possibility of such contamination in the laboratory.

TRACES IN THE SMALL BATHROOM

The traces of blood detected in the small bathroom, which was usually used by
Meredith and by Amanda, located next to the door of Meredith’s room, facing
Amanda’s room, have already been discussed.

Dr. Stefanoni gave precise details about these traces and about the outcome of the
analyses which concerned the following items:

On the right side of the inside doorframe there was a tiny droplet of the victim’s
blood.

[299] Also on top of the toilet-seat cover of the toilet there was blood from the victim.

277
In the bidet there was a substance which appeared to be diluted blood, and which
was shown to be a mixed trace specimen having the biological profiles of Amanda
and Meredith.

Also in the sink, there was a substance which appeared to be diluted blood, and
which was shown to be a mixed trace specimen with the same result.

On the front part of the tap of the sink, there was coagulated blood which was
shown to belong to Amanda.

On the box of cotton buds/Q-tips sitting on the sink/washbasin there were stains and
these showed the presence of blood and a mixed trace from Amanda and Meredith.

On the light switch in the same bathroom there was a mark which proved to be the
victim’s blood.

The sky-blue mat found in that bathroom was stained with blood which was shown
to be from the victim.

On the outcome of such tests, not only these but also others of a biological nature,
carried out in observance of the provisions contained in Article 360 of the Criminal
Procedure Code, no significant and specific criticisms were made. Instead, the
defendants’ teams maintained that these traces and the outcome of the analyses with
reference to the mixed sample traces were irrelevant. In this regard, starting from the
scientific data which emerged, according to which DNA analysis does not permit the
age of the sample/trace to be determined, nor, in the case of a sample/trace
indicating the presence of several biological profiles, can it be established whether
their apposition-formation was contemporaneous or not, it was affirmed that, since
it concerned a bathroom which was used both by Meredith and by Amanda, the
presence of mixed traces seemed to be a completely normal circumstance, and had
no significance. All the more so since the samples had been taken using the same
blotting paper which had been used for various parts of the bidet and the sink.

The Court, however, believes that the presence of the biological trace specimens that
were found is of great importance.

First, it should be recalled that Amanda Knox, in the course of her own examination
(questioning), declared that when she left the house on Via della Pergola on the
afternoon of November 1st, the bathroom was clean. It should then be highlighted
that in that same bathroom various [300] trace specimens were found, of a mixed
nature and testing positively for blood. It is true that, according to what was asserted

278
and explained, it is not possible with a mixed trace specimen that tested positive for
human blood to determine which of the trace’s contributors the blood belongs to. In
this case, however, non-mixed traces were also found, which were shown to be of a
haematological nature [i.e. blood] and turn out to have the biological profile of the
victim. Such traces, in particular the dribble of blood left on the right inside edge of
the door and the stains left on the light switch (see photographic illustrations 141,
142; 158, 159) lead to the deduction that whoever entered that bathroom had his or
her hands covered in Meredith’s blood. Furthermore, the sky-blue bathmat with the
print of a bare foot in blood, blood which also was shown to be from the victim,
indicates that whoever went into this bathroom was barefoot, and must therefore
also have been barefoot in Meredith’s room where she had been repeatedly struck, a
room which had great blotches of blood, and in one of these whoever transferred the
blood to the bathroom and the sky-blue bathmat must have placed his or her foot,
and thus must have been moving about that room with bare feet. The above
observation leads to the deduction that whoever went into the bathroom at that
point (after the stabbing of Meredith) must have had to do so to clean him/herself of
Meredith’s blood with which he/she was staining the various things he/she touched
or leaned against: the door, the light switch, the mat. And it is probable - not
necessary, but probable - that during the following act of scrubbing the hands to
remove the blood, he/she left the mixed trace consisting of Meredith’s blood and of
cells which had been removed by rubbing during the act of washing. An entirely
probable outcome given the likelihood of the act of scrubbing, yet not a necessary
one, since the running water which was used in the shower stall or in the bidet or in
the sink, or in several of these sanitary fittings, might well have rinsed away the
washed-up blood and the cells which had been lost during this washing.

At this point, one may turn for the resulting evaluations to the trace specimens
found in the sink, in the bidet, on the cotton-bud box, traces which tested positive for
human blood and which were attributed to Meredith and to Amanda.

[301] While it is not possible to use the genetic scientific data (Dr. Stefanoni
explained the impossibility of determining the date, the succession or the
simultaneity in the depositing of the components of the mixed trace specimen and
the impossibility of attributing the haematological component to one or the other of
the contributors), the information previously put forward provides answers which
are entirely consistent with the circumstantial evidence that has emerged and which
the Court considers convincing.

279
Amanda was not wounded; in the days following no one spoke of wounds that she
might have had; the examination which was carried out on her when measures
restricting her personal freedom were taken ruled out the presence of wounds.
Meredith’s situation was the complete opposite. In relation to this and to the
circumstance by which haematological stains attributable to Meredith were found on
the inside of the door, on the toilet-seat cover, on the light switch, it should be
deduced that the haematological components found in the sink, in the bidet, on the
box of cotton buds were also from Meredith. Nor can it otherwise be argued for the
presence of a drop of Amanda’s blood on the tap of the sink. This consisted of a spot
of coagulated blood, with respect to which Amanda explained that it came from her
own ear having been pierced; this spot, furthermore, was located towards the inside
of the sink: distinct, separate and morphologically different, therefore, from the trace
found in the sink itself.

This Court also considers that the components of the mixed trace specimens were
deposited simultaneously, and were deposited by Amanda.

Against this conclusion, the observations with respect to the shared use of the
bathroom by the two young women, the resulting likelihood of their biological traces
being present, and the way in which these specimens were gathered [by the police],
are not valid, in the sense that they are not considered either convincing or plausible,
neither in relation to the overall situation present in the bathroom, which has been
described, nor with [regard to] the statements made by Gioia Brocci and by Dr.
Stefanoni, who both stated that the trace specimens present in the bathroom and in
the bidet were of the same colour, as of diluted blood, and appeared to constitute
one single trace, one [part] in the bidet and one in the sink. The drop at the top [302]
and the drop at the bottom had continuity and formed a continuous pattern. The
specimens were collected accordingly, just like any other specimen which
necessarily occupies a certain space, and which the technician does not collect one
little spot after another.

It should also be noted that the statements according to which the traces in the sink
and in the bidet each constituted a single specimen correspond to the act of cleaning
the victim’s blood, an action previously mentioned and during which it would have
been easy to leave a mixed sample, constituted precisely of biological material from
the victim (blood) and biological material from whoever was cleaning (cells lost
during scrubbing/rubbing). It should further be noted that such mixed trace
specimens, with the morphology shown, were found both in the sink and in the
bidet. It should be considered that those in the sink occurred when Amanda, as has

280
been said, washed her hands which were stained with Meredith’s blood; in the bidet
it should be considered that they [the traces] originated from a similar activity, but in
relation to the feet, which must also have been covered with blood as can be inferred
from the print of a bare foot left on the sky-blue mat, stained with Meredith’s blood.
This print will be dealt with subsequently. Reference to it is made now in order to
make the point that the presence of such a print of a bare foot brings one to consider
that Amanda (also) could have had bare feet, stained with Meredith’s blood.

The mixed trace specimens found in the sink and in the bidet and on the box of
cotton buds therefore signify that Amanda, soiled with Meredith’s blood, entered
the bathroom which was right next door to the room in which Meredith had been
stabbed; putting her hand against the door she left a mark on it and the dribble of
blood which remained is a sign [proof] of this, and left a mark also - still with
Meredith’s blood - on the light switch; she touched the cotton-bud box which was on
the sink and left a mixed trace specimen of herself and of Meredith; to clean her
hands she used the sink in which, through the act of scrubbing, she left her own
biological trace mixed with that of Meredith, and used the bidet, most likely to wash
her feet, which must have become *blood+ stained in Meredith’s room, where there
were widespread and abundant traces of blood even on the floor, and where the
blood was spattered over various parts of the room, and also in the bidet [303] she
left a trace specimen of what appeared to be diluted blood, which contained both her
own DNA and that of Meredith.

LATENT TRACES REVEALED BY LUMINOL

Referring to the traces revealed by Luminol, Dr. Stefanoni testified that these traces
were absolutely invisible to the naked eye and [were] meagre/scanty/slight (page 60
of the minutes of the preliminary hearing). Such a test, it was shown, is performed in
order to check for the presence of traces of blood, since this substance - Luminol -
reveals blood by fluorescence. It also, however, reveals other substances, as Dr.
Sarah Gino, in particular, had emphasised, according to what has already been
stated (rust, fruit juice, bleach, various vegetables [vegetable matter] and some
enamels used for tiles). Moreover, the circumstance under which DNA is found
necessarily indicates the presence of biological material in the trace revealed by
Luminol.

281
The traces revealed by Luminol are those labelled 176 to 184 (traces already
indicated by the letter L, numbered 1 to 9).

Accordingly, Dr. Stefanoni stated that traces 176 and 177 (L1 and L2) found in the
room of Filomena Romanelli had yielded, respectively, the following results: a
specimen from Meredith and a mixed specimen from Meredith and Amanda; the
traces 178, 179, 180 (L3, L4, L5) all found in Amanda's room had shown Amanda's
biological profile; trace 184 (L9), found in the corridor, almost in front of the wall
separating Amanda's and Meredith's rooms, had shown a mixed genetic profile
attributable to both Meredith and Amanda.

The outcome of these investigations had not been the subject of any particular or
specific criticism. Dr. Sarah Gino observed that the quantity of DNA was compatible
with what is known as low copy number, and it did not appear that the analysis had
been repeated to validate the results. She underlined that the SAL [stato di
avanzamento lavoro – work status report] reports which had been made available had
shown that a generic diagnosis for blood had been performed and had given a
negative result, and therefore it could not be said with certainty that blood was
present in the material revealed by Luminol. There were peaks which were not
considered, which could indicate the presence of other contributors.

[304]

Page 304 of the original Italian is corrupted. Please see the Note at the front of this
document – we invite readers to submit an intact copy of this page so that we may
update the translation. What follows in the marked section between [304] and
[305] is a summary put together from what is observable on the page. However,
for obvious reasons, this should not be relied upon until the whole page can be
translated.

In considering these specimens, one must also consider the possibility that they
arose from other sources and are irrelevant to the investigation. But it must be noted
that the negative result for blood does not necessarily indicate that no blood was
present. The result may have been negative because there was not sufficient material
to indicate the presence of blood. Dr. Gino stated that in her experience there is a
probabilistic relation to the number of cases in which the blood test comes out
positive or negative. The negative result was also partly a consequence of Dr.
Stefanoni's choice to use most of the DNA to determine the individual profiles and
only the remainder to attempt to determine the nature of the trace. Furthermore,

282
since the traces revealed by Luminol ?? it becomes certain that the traces contained
human DNA. The fluorescence ?? implies that the biological material (in which
appears ?? human) was Luminol-positive.

As was recalled, Luminol-positive substances are ?? Dr. Gino also recalled that
ceramic and tiles can be Luminol-positive. However, nothing specific of this type
was pointed out in the house in via della Pergola ?? if the tiles of the house had had
such a peculiarity, then the traces revealed by Luminol would have been more
numerous and probably the technicians would have realised that the traces were
arising from the tiles themselves and not from other substances. In relation to these
considerations, it is not possible to accept the

[305] ... assumed, albeit very generically and suggested in an entirely hypothetical
manner, of the Luminol-positivity of the floor of the house at Via della Pergola 7.

The other possibilities expressed, concerning specific substances, appear unlikely. It


would be necessary, in fact, to hypothesise that one of these substances (some
vegetable matter, fruit juice, rust, bleach ...) had been on the floor on which the
Luminol test was carried out, and present on the date of December 18, 2007 (when,
on the occasion of the second search, the Scientific Police [Forensics] of Rome
performed these tests), [and] had been affected by any of the biological traces located
on one of these Luminol-positive substances, these biological traces having come
from Amanda and in two cases also from Meredith.

It would also be necessary to believe that one or more of these substances had been
present in the various rooms in which the Luminol gave a positive result; in
Romanelli's room, in Knox's room, in the corridor. It appears - it was held - clearly
possible that fruit juice might have been spilled in one or more places in the house; it
seems [more] difficult to believe that it could have been spilled in Amanda's room, in
Romanelli's room and in the corridor in front of the wall separating Amanda's room
from Meredith's. These considerations also hold for the other Luminol-positive
substances such as rust, various vegetables, etc. The argument concerning bleach is
different: in cleaning the house, such a product might indeed have been spread
about in the various rooms. But in actual fact, it was not known when and by whom
such widespread and extensive cleaning, and which had involved these various
rooms, had been carried out. Furthermore, no one entering the house had declared
that they had noticed any smell of bleach, unlike what, on the contrary, had occurred

283
with reference to Raffaele Sollecito's house on the occasion of the entry there on
November 6th. Furthermore, if the presence of bleach had been spread throughout
the house via some cleaning activity (carried out, it is not known by whom, in the
various rooms) which had affected these various rooms, then many more traces
ought to have been highlighted as Luminol-positive than were actually found.

The presence of the traces revealed by Luminol, whose presence in several points in
various rooms of the house [306] cannot be explained by reference to fruit juice,
bleach, various vegetables, rust, etc., appear, on the contrary, to be explained if one
holds that the Luminol gave off fluorescence because of the presence of blood. In this
regard, one cannot simply disregard the fact of the bloodstains that were undeniably
abundantly present in Meredith's room, from which easily, or indeed inevitably,
they must have been exported to other parts of the house by anyone who, coming
out of Meredith's room, went into these other parts. This was seen for the footwear
belonging to Rudy Guede which marked their owner’s footsteps along the corridor
towards the exit from the house; it was seen for the traces found in the bathroom; it
should be considered that also happened for the traces found in Romanelli's room, in
Knox's room, in the corridor, and it should be pointed out that two of these traces
give a mixed biological profile of Amanda and Meredith, and the others the
biological profile of Amanda alone. She, it must therefore be held, with her bare feet
washed of Meredith’s blood, but on the soles of which some residue of blood must
have remained, went into her own room, into Romanelli's room and passed through
the corridor, and in several points in the room[s] where she had passed, she left the
traces which were discovered.

As for the remark advanced by Amanda Knox's defence, according to which the
DNA in these traces was low copy number, with the [consequent] necessity of
repeating the analyses, the following should be observed: the reliability and the
dependability of the results of the analyses derives from the quality of the
instruments, the upkeep of these [instruments] in accordance with the prescribed
maintenance rules, the correctness of the methodology; in relation to precisely this,
much emphasis was given to this aspect and to the possession of a quality certificate
on the part of the organisation/body (Scientific Police of Rome) which performed the
analyses. Dr. Stefanoni declared that the organisation/body within which the
analyses were done benefited/profited from instruments and methodologies which
were absolutely reliable and which constituted good laboratory practice; this
declaration was compared with the quality certificate obtained in 2009 on the basis
of the machinery, instruments and methodologies already present and in use - as

284
declared by Dr. Stefanoni - without any modifications of any sort having to be made
in order to obtain this quality certificate[307]. The quality certificate was thus an
acknowledgement of what already existed, and had already been done.

On the other hand, it must be observed that the traces revealed by Luminol did not
yield isolated results: in two cases they showed mixed traces with biological profiles
attributable to Meredith and to Amanda; in four cases they showed a biological trace
attributable only to Amanda.

Finally, it should be noted that with respect to the interpretation of these traces, no
specific criticisms were put forward.

Both Professor Tagliabracci and Dr. Gino had complained about the lack of certain
documents, and had hypothesised the existence of others, and had argued [that there
was] a certain contradictoriness/inconsistency between what Dr. Stefanoni had
asserted and what had emerged from the documents, and in particular with regard
to Exhibit 36B.

These criticisms have been partially addressed. For example, the missing indication
of certain data, an element which would have been relevant in assessing the problem
of contamination in the laboratory, is an aspect which was addressed precisely when
laboratory contamination was being discussed.

The lack of SAL cards/reports relating to findings which yielded no results appears
to be irrelevant.

Other data, indicated by Dr. Sarah Gino as being difficult to interpret or not
expressly provided can be reconstructed on the basis of the declarations of Dr.
Stefanoni, who reported that she had adhered to the manufacturer's instructions.

With reference to the analyses of the traces which had tested positive for cat blood
and certain contradictions which were apparently noted in these [analyses],
Professor Tagliabracci also advanced a hypothetical solution to these contradictions
("that in the traces there was a mixture of human biological material which was not
blood"), while deploring that this had not been verification. On this point, it must
nevertheless be noted that this further verification was not done because of the
perceived irrelevance of the relative analyses, and therefore it cannot be inferred,
from a hypothetical contradiction, that the modus operandi of the Forensics
laboratory was not reliable/trustworthy. Besides, it must be emphasised that the
criticisms [308] all concerned specific findings and a very small part of the specimens

285
actually analysed; on the other hand, for many specimens, the results obtained by
Dr. Stefanoni were fully accepted (one has only to consider all the specimens
attributed to Rudy Guede and all of those attributed to Meredith Kercher, with the
exception of specimen 36B).

286
EXHIBIT 36, TRACES A AND B

Mention has already been made about the findings identified on the 31cm long knife,
seized on November 6 at Raffaele Sollecito’s home. Of the seven findings *tested+,
only two provided a biological profile, those indicated as specimens 36A and 36B:

The first [test] (36A) was carried out at the point where the handle of the knife ends
and the blade starts. This resulted in a biological profile attributable to Amanda.

The second (36B) was conducted on the side of the blade, on the part where -in good
lighting and by varying the angle [point of view] with respect to the light- striations
[scratches] could be seen. Analysis gave a biological profile attributable to Meredith.

No criticism was advanced concerning the results of the analysis regarding trace
36A, and Dr. Sarah Gino, consultant for Amanda Knox’s defence *team+, declared
that she agreed with the interpretation in that regard provided by Dr. Stefanoni, and
noted that the genetic profile obtained "abides by all the rules of good laboratory
practice and good interpretation‛.

The analysis of trace 36B and its results have, on the contrary, been the subject of
several strong criticisms by the defence [teams] of both defendants.

It was thus maintained that the blade did not show any visible sign of the claimed
scratches, and not even Professor Cingolani (the expert witness nominated by the
GIP [preliminary hearing judge] for the incidente probatorio [taking of evidence at pre-
trial stage], during which, in the course of the discussion, the knife, Exhibit 36,
having been made available at the request of the defence teams, was shown) has
declared that he noticed such scratches.

Furthermore, it was not possible to know the nature of the biological trace that had
apparently been found on the blade, and in fact the test for blood had given a
negative result.

[309] From the documentation which, following the Court’s ruling on that subject,
was made available by the Scientific Police [Forensics], it was seen that the quantity
of DNA was too low (‚troppo basso‛) to be able to perform the tests and to consider
those results reliable. In the presence of too low DNA, it was also noted, the risk of a
contamination capable of altering the results is very high because the contaminating
DNA could end up on the specimen to be tested, which also contains very little
DNA, and is therefore susceptible to a contamination likely to distort the result and
this, it was further noted, [was] particularly [the case] with regard to the very

287
numerous findings, about 50, which had given the biological profile of the victim
and which were subjected to tests in the same organisation/body of the Scientific
Police [Forensics] in Rome.

It was also noted, critically, that the same "too low" result had concerned other
traces, such as C, which was found to be negative and, recalling that the expression
‚too low‛ was used for quantities of less than ten picograms and also for zero
picograms, a complaint was made that it was not clear from the [state of
advancement of work] reports where the specimen B had tested positive for
quantization (see the presentation by Professor Tagliabracci, page 76, previously
mentioned). The analysis, moreover, had not been repeated and therefore there was
no confirmation of its result.

Regarding the remarks against the reliability of the results provided by the analyses
of Exhibit 36 trace B, this Court holds that the following should be observed:

The negative result of the test performed to determine the haematological nature of
the material of specimen B does not per se exclude the haematological nature of the
specimen. Dr. Stefanoni, [when] questioned on this specific aspect, noted that since
any DNA that might be present on the trace in question was certainly of a very
small quantity, a minimal quantity was used to determine whether the trace was of a
haematological nature or not: consequently the outcome of test, [which was]
negative for blood, did not necessarily signify the non-haematological nature of the
trace, as it might have been derived from too small a quantity of material to have
allowed a positive result, even if that substance had been [310] blood. She [Dr.
Stefanoni] explained that such a choice, whereby the greatest quantity of DNA had
been used to determine the biological profile rather than the nature of the specimen,
provided a basis for the subsequent assessments: it is preferable to know to whom a
given biological specimen is attributable, rather than ascertaining the nature of that
same specimen, without any possibility of attributing it to anyone.

With respect to the affirmation according to which the negative test for blood does
not necessarily signify absence of blood in the sample being analysed, no significant
counter-arguments were put forward. Moreover, Dr. Stefanoni’s explanation of this
point seems convincing: if the quantity is minimal, the negative outcome of the test
may also be a result of the insufficient quantity used for the test itself.

However, the main criticisms advanced concerned precisely this very small DNA
quantity, and it raised the question of the reliability of the result obtained.

288
Now, with reference to contamination in general, and to laboratory contamination
that could occur the more easily the smaller the quantity of DNA present in the
specimen being tested, one must recall the observations that were made about the
absence of elements and circumstances which permit it to be held that any
contamination had occurred and which, in fact, serve to demonstrate otherwise.

Regarding the too low quantity of DNA, Dr. Stefanoni declared, as has been seen,
that even in the case of a particularly scanty amount of material, the analysis and
evaluation should be performed, and she added that, if the data that emerges is
absolutely readable and interpretable and the correct laboratory practice was
followed, the result is reliable and there is no reason to repeat the test.

However in the case of a too low DNA quantity, that is of an excessively low
quantity (i.e. too low), it is convenient to be able to confirm the analysis and Dr.
Stefanoni, precisely with reference to this specimen 36B, while emphasizing that
compliance with good laboratory practice makes repetition of the analysis
unnecessary, [311] did not fail to point out and affirm that if she had had a greater
quantity of DNA she would have repeated the analysis.

It does not follow, however, that the data is unusable and unreliable as a
consequence of a lack of repetition due to a lack of further quantities of DNA. It is
necessary, instead, to take account of the data that emerges from such a specimen
and to check for the – possible – presence of other elements, both circumstantial and
inherent to the data itself that, despite the lack of repetition of the analysis, could
allow an evaluation of the reliability of the analysis and of its outcome.

As for the need to take account of data which have emerged from the analysis of a
trace with too low a quantity of DNA ("too low"), it should first be pointed out that
the category "too low" includes very different situations, indeed significantly
different since it [the category] is used - as has been pointed out by Professor
Tagliabracci - for [indicating] quantities of DNA ranging between an amount of
DNA equal to zero and the maximum too-low threshold (which is quantities of less
than 10 picograms, and therefore includes [quantities] equal to 9.999... picograms).
Thus, according to what has been observed by Dr. Stefanoni and Dr. Torricelli, in the
case in question a rather good specimen was obtained, indicative therefore of a
quantity of DNA equivalent to the maximum threshold of too low, and Dr. Torricelli,
after pointing out that the field of diagnostic genetics actually involves working on
DNA from one single cell and thus with a minimal quantity, observed, with specific
reference to specimen 36B, that while the amount of DNA concerned was very low,

289
the profiles were nonetheless very present and, comparing these with Meredith’s
profile, the alleles obtained from the swab taken for comparison from Meredith’s
wound were all to be found [in the trace profile]. She further emphasised that,
although the peaks were a little lower, they were nonetheless still within the range
that is considered useful for examination.

It should also be added that the electrophoresis run was repeated and though this
does not constitute repetition of the analysis, it may, however, represent some
confirmation of the previously obtained result, and such confirmation was obtained.

In relation to this, it was noted, however, that following the repetition of the
electrophoresis run, the peaks were of different heights with respect to the [312]
previous electrophoresis run and therefore, it was argued, confirmation of the first
result had not occurred.

That argumentation does not seem acceptable since even the second electrophoresis
run confirmed the original result; that this happened despite the variation in peak
heights serves to strengthen - it was held - the correctness and reliability of the first
result which had remained unchanged except in the changing heights of various
peaks.

The biological profile that emerged – it should also be noted – did not appear to be
consistent with the biological profile of a person who was unidentified or who
should definitely be considered extraneous to the event; that trace, found on the
blade of the knife, instead gave a biological profile attributable to the person who
was mortally wounded with that very knife: a result, therefore, that was entirely
reasonable and consistent with the event; [it was] certainly not explainable as a mere
coincidence, and it must be ruled out –according to what has already been observed
in this regard - that it could have originated from contamination or from the use of a
suspect-centric method.

Even the point in which Dr. Stefanoni declared that she had found the substance
which, when tested, furnished Meredith’s biological profile, presents its own
consistency and logic with the result obtained. This was taken from the side of the
knife blade where there were scratches, such that, in the tiny little grooves that these
scratches must have formed, biological material might have remained, resistant – u
unlike that which would have been present on the rest of the blade – to cleaning
which, although it appeared to have left the knife extremely clean (as has been

290
affirmed), might not have been able to remove the biological material that ended up
in these very tiny grooves, where it remained.

With respect to the existence of these scratches the defence and their consultants had
voiced doubts and perplexity; moreover, Professor Cingolani, the expert witness
appointed by the GIP [judge of the preliminary hearing] for the incidente probatorio
[pre-trial taking of evidence], who was shown the knife, Exhibit 36, during this
hearing, it having been made [313] available at the express request of the defence,
declared that he had not seen such scratches.

In this regard, however, Dr. Stefanoni’s statements should be recalled on the manner
of observing the knife (under good lighting and moving the blade so that it was
thoroughly illuminated) and it should be noted that it does not appear that the
others have examined the blade of the knife in the same way and with the same or
similar lighting. It must therefore be stated that Dr. Stefanoni, in reporting that she
had seen these scratches and had taken sample B from these very scratches, has not
stated a falsehood.

Undoubtedly, the presence of the biological trace on the knife found in Raffaele
Sollecito’s house, a biological trace *which is+ attributable to Meredith being mortally
wounded with a knife, constitutes an element of significant importance also in
relation to the circumstance, which has come to light, that Meredith had never been
to Sollecito's house and no one had reported seeing such a knife in Meredith’s house
in Via della Pergola.

At this point it is also useful to remember that, when dealing with the acquisition
and evaluation of [information of a] medical-legal nature *i.e. the coroner’s report+,
an examination was also made of the problem of the compatibility between this knife
and the most severe of the wounds inflicted on Meredith, a problem [which was]
resolved in terms of compatibility: indeed, it should be further noted, an observation
made and illustrated by Professor Cingolani, in the hearing before the GIP [judge of
the preliminary hearing] presiding in the incidente probatorio [pre-trial taking of
evidence], gives an additional element of strong compatibility and almost allows the
identification of an imprint left by this knife in Meredith’s neck. Examining the
wound just below the most severe one, Professor Cingolani had in fact noted and
declared the following: "in the second lesion, the one that is 2 centimetres deep and
1.5 centimetres wide from corner to corner, the only thing that we are tempted to do,
[albeit] in an absolutely amateurish/unprofessional way, because we only have
photographs available, is to measure, assuming that only the tip entered, how wide

291
the blade is [at a point] 2 centimetres from its tip: it is precisely 1.5 centimetres
wide!" (pages 33 and 34, minutes of the incidente probatorio before the GIP on April
19, 2008).

[314] At this point Amanda’s behaviour on November 4 should also be recalled,


when she was accompanied, together with Filomena Romanelli and Laura Mezzetti,
to the house on Via della Pergola and was asked, like the other two girls, to look at
the knives that were in the kitchen. The personnel from the Questura, [who were]
present on that occasion, reported Amanda’s severe and intense emotional crisis,
unlike [the reaction of] the other two girls. This circumstance appears significant
both in its own right and also when one considers that Amanda had never
previously shown signs of any particular distress and emotional involvement (in the
Police headquarters, on the afternoon of November 2, Meredith’s English girlfriends,
Robyn Carmel and Amy Frost in particular, according to their declarations, had been
surprised by the behaviour of Amanda, who did not show emotions).

Still with reference to this knife, it is considered appropriate to recall that in the
room tapping [intercettazione ambientale] of November 17, 2007 Amanda, talking with
her parents, after a brief mention of what had been reported on TV about the knife,
turned to talk about this object using the following expressions: ‚I am very, I am
very worried about this thing about the knife ... because there is a knife of Raffaele’s"
(pages 4 and 6 of the transcript, translated into Italian and ordered by the GUP
[judge of the preliminary hearing] and acquired for the case file, folder 4). It is true
that in the transcript version made available to the current trial/hearing, this
sentence and the reference to knife do not appear, and there is a mention of the night
and of a worry because they came at night (‚ ... I'm worried about this thing about
the night. Why did they come at night? ...‛ RIT 397, of 17.11.2007, page 133).
Assuming that among the different versions, the one offered by the experts
appointed in this current trial and the one offered by the experts appointed by the
judge of the preliminary trial [GUP] the first one does not necessarily prevail over
the other, since both are useable and subjected to an evaluation of the suitability and
logical consistency of the different versions, this Court holds that the version offered
by the expert appointed by the judge of the preliminary hearing [GUP] should be
considered correct. The two following reasons led to this conclusion: the version
given in the current trial seems to have no logical sense, its meaning is
indecipherable, unconnected to any other passage [315] and moment of conversation
present in the room tapping itself; the version given by the experts appointed in this
trial is also missing the reference to Raffaele’s name, which, on the contrary, appears

292
in the English language transcript (see page 6 of the transcript filed with the judge of
the preliminary hearing [GUP] on October 4, 2008, where we read the name:
Raffaele), which is reported and inserted [i.e., in the sense of embedded] in a
sentence that has meaning, logical sense and consequentiality in the version given by
the expert appointed by the preliminary hearing judge [GUP].

On the basis of the foregoing, it should therefore be affirmed that the analysis of
trace 36B, which detected the presence DNA attributable to Meredith, appears to be
completely reliable.

293
EXHIBIT 165B

The criticisms have already been recalled which were made with regard to Exhibit
165 (piece of cloth with hooks from Meredith’s bra) with specific reference to the
way it was collected, to the contamination that may have ensued, to the suspect-
centric method that may have flawed the interpretation of the trace which it was
applied to.

In particular, the consultant for Raffaele Sollecito’s defence, in examining some of


the gene loci, offered different interpretations from those put forward by Dr.
Stefanoni during the course of the various hearings, and recorded on page 202 of the
report. He had therefore maintained that the interpretation offered by Dr. Stefanoni
and considered to be wrong was derived from the suspect-centric method applied.
He also maintained that, since mixed traces were involved, the ratio between the
major contributor (Meredith Kercher) and the other contributor or contributors was
of 1 to 10, so that it fell within the category of "low copy number" with the necessity,
in order for the result to be considered reliable, of repeating the test - which
repetition was not done.

Speaking of the Y haplotype, which was also found in specimen 165B, Professor
Tagliabracci made no criticism of the reading/interpretation, but emphasised that
such analysis could exclude, but not establish, the presence of a given male subject.

[316] With reference to the suspect-centric method, there had already been occasion
to point out that it represents a criticism which on the one hand is illogical and on
the other hand is exclusive both of the results of any genetic analysis carried out, and
of the declarations explicitly made in this regard. The issue of interpretation
nevertheless remains, and, particularly with respect to cases that may present some
uncertainty in the application of the hermeneutical criteria [i.e. interpretation
criteria] which have been elaborated, other solutions may also appear without
calling into question the correctness and the professionalism of one or the other
geneticist. Besides, Dr. Stefanoni wished to emphasise that the result obtained from
the machine must be interpreted to determine the genotype, and on this point she
recalled the importance of experience, of the knowledge and training of the
individual geneticist, and recalled the difference between the technician and the
forensic geneticist who must provide the scientific interpretation of the
electropherograms, interpretations which can moreover give rise to different
readings by the geneticists called to carry out the same interpretation. At this point it
should also be noted that, in respect of the different interpretations offered by one

294
party and the other, this Court could, as indeed had been requested by the defence,
have ordered the appointment of experts and entrusted [charged] them with the
relevant assessment. On closer examination, however, they might have found
themselves confronted with further interpretations which might have fully or
partially confirmed one or the other of the interpretations already offered, and the
problem of the most suitable interpretation would still have remained, and therefore
no call was seen for the provision of an expert assessment on this matter in
accordance with [ex] article 507 of the Criminal Procedure Code. But that there was
no need for further evaluations and assessments in accordance with the provision
quoted above can be seen from what was highlighted and from what emerged
during the trial proceedings.

It has already been said that Dr. Stefanoni had reported that on the [bra] hook
(Exhibit 165B) the mixed genetic profile attributable to the victim and to Raffaele
Sollecito was found; looking at the electropherogram, the ratio had been estimated in
the proportion of 1 to 6 (the victim’s DNA being six times that of Sollecito); the
quantity of DNA found could not be considered terribly small because there were
several peaks that easily exceeded 1000 RFU, and no [317] repetition of the analysis
had been carried out because the peak height of the smaller fraction of DNA was
good, such that there was no reason to doubt the reliability of the result.

Even Dr. Torricelli, with specific regard to Exhibit 165B, found that the alleles of the
minor donor indicated the presence of sufficient DNA for these alleles to be clearly
recognized, and emphasised that all loci of the genotype were present and gave a
clear biological profile, attributable to that of Raffaele Sollecito.

Professor Tagliabracci contested those assertions, maintaining (also) that the DNA
was attributable to the "low copy number" category, and that there had been several
errors in the interpretation of the electropherograms.

Regarding the first point, as has already been seen, Professor Tagliabracci
hypothesised a ratio of 10 to 1 between the main contributor and the other
contributor(s). During the above-mentioned hearing, he had nonetheless realised
that he had over-estimated this ratio and had reduced it, but in an approximate way,
to [a ratio of] 8 to 1, which was different from the ratio of 6 to 1 indicated by Dr.
Stefanoni and which, looking at the height of the various peaks and making the
consequent comparison, seems more in accordance with the truth. In relation to this
and also - at least in part - in relation to what was admitted by Professor Tagliabracci
on the ratio of 8 to 1 rather than 10 to 1 as originally indicated, the calculations

295
presented by Sollecito’s defence consultant and the results of these calculations
which must be spoken of as being "low copy number", cannot be accepted.

Moreover, the peak heights appear suitable to provide a result that is completely
reliable according to the interpretation criteria demonstrated in that regard, and
mentioned above. It is sufficient to recall in this regard that the lowest peak was 65
RFU. The heights of these peaks are therefore indicative of a sufficient quantity of
DNA, as was also noted by Dr. Torricelli, such that there was no need to repeat the
analysis. Moreover, Dr. Tagliabracci himself, in the previously mentioned
memorandum dated August 27, 2009, affirms that ‚if the amount of extract was 50
microliters (mcl), by multiplying this by 0.114 ng/mcl the total DNA would be equal
to 5.7 nanograms. This is a considerable quantity which would be sufficient to repeat
the amplification without problems" and he hypothesises that one is dealing with
low copy number on the basis [318] of mere assumptions and deductions ("since it
was not stated in the technical report [RTIGF] that any of the extracted DNA had
been concentrated ... we deduce that the amount of extracted DNA which was
placed in the mix of PCR [polymerase chain reaction] is 10 mcl at the most, which
means that the total DNA used in the reaction was 1.14 ng at most‛) and *on the
basis of+ a ratio of the victim’s and of the contributors’ DNA in the amounts of 10 to
1 which was considered by Tagliabracci himself, as we have seen, as excessive.

Turning next to the interpretation according to which specimen 165B should be


attributed to Raffaele Sollecito’s genotype, an interpretation *which was+ put
forward by Dr. Stefanoni and shared by Dr. Torricelli, Professor Tagliabracci
examined various gene loci to challenge this interpretation and demonstrate its
erroneousness. It should, however, be immediately emphasised that of the 15 gene
loci plus the one for gender, constituting the complete profile, Professor Tagliabracci
disputed the interpretation of only some of these loci: D21S11 (pages 55 and 65 of the
transcript of the minutes of the hearing): D5S818 (p. 59); D7S820 (p. 67); CSF1P0
(page 68); D16 (page 70). With reference to D5S818, he noted, however: ‚now I
cannot say that Sollecito might not also be here, but there is also a third subject who
has a different genotype‛ (page 71, hearing minutes). In the memo dated July 15,
2009 lodged at the hearing on September 14, 2009, the interpretation put forward by
Dr. Stefanoni was challenged with reference also to the other loci. On the basis of the
considerations set out in the said report, Professor Tagliabracci maintained that the
possible genotypic combinations led to the affirmation that "Raffaele Sollecito’s
profile is not compatible with those that have contributed to forming trace 165B for
the following loci": D8S1179; D21S11; D7S820; CSF1PO; D16S539; D5S818; FGA

296
[note: possibly fast genetic algorithm?]. From these conclusions it would seem that
for the other loci, which are therefore greater in number, Raffaele Sollecito’s profile
would be compatible and it would also be [compatible] for locus D5S818 according
to what the consultant himself said during the hearing (see, once again, page 71).
Consequently, there are apparently a considerable number of loci that are not the
subject of dispute, a number which seems to be greater than the number of disputed
loci and greater than the number of six loci with reference to which Professor
Tagliabracci had previously declared, before the current systems were available ‚it
was enough ... we made hypotheses even with six loci‛ (page [319] 103). The
circumstance now exposed allows, it was held, the following consideration: if,
despite the subjective contribution of the geneticist, the interpretative disagreement
regarding the non-compatibility of Raffaele Sollecito’s profile with the loci that had
contributed to forming trace 165B involved those loci indicated by Professor
Tagliabracci during the course of the hearing and at pages 20 and 21 of the
previously mentioned memorandum conclusions, it must be held that, for the
greatest number of loci at least, the peaks were so clear and the interpretation so
sound that they could not be contested. Consequently, the overall result should be
considered fully reliable, even disregarding the repetition of the analysis. It should
however be noted that Dr. Stefanoni, during the hearing at which she testified, had
offered suitable explanations and answers which this Court considers acceptable.
Moreover, they *note: Stefanoni’s explanations and answers+ were also considered
acceptable by the defendants’ defence teams themselves for the greater part of the
results which the Forensics biologist had obtained. This refers in particular to all the
traces, but not just those, of Rudy Guede, the results of which were fully accepted
and in relation to which the defence teams had insisted on the theory of Rudy
Guede’s responsibility and, it must be added, Dr. Stefanoni (in examining specimen
165B) did not change either the methodology or the interpretive criteria.

Moreover, the attributability of the biological trace to Raffaele Sollecito does not
derive only from the correspondence/match with the gene loci: all 15, plus that of the
gender, according to Dr. Stefanoni and Dr. Torricelli; or equal at any rate to a
considerable number, according to what was demonstrated by Professor
Tagliabracci in court, and explained on pages 20 and 21 of the memorandum
conclusions, as has been said.

The attributability of trace 165B to Raffaele Sollecito derives also from examination
of the Y-haplotype in respect of which, as was emphasised, it is not possible to
consider any objections whatsoever because the haplotype obtained from the trace

297
present in the hooks emerged from the machine which attributed those numbers and
in that sequence. And, it must also be emphasised, for the test and the individuation
of this haplotype the identity of 17 loci was used, that is the maximum extension of
analysis possible, therefore much more precise and individualizing than the one in
use until a few years ago, when it was [320] possible to carry out an analysis on only
11 of these loci. Furthermore, with regard to the Y-haplotype, more sensitive kits
were used than those used for the DNA profile, capable of detecting the presence of
the Y even with a minimal quantity of DNA. Moreover, with reference to the
haplotype found on the [bra] hooks, no criticisms were advanced (except those,
already discussed, concerning collection and contamination) and even Professor
Tagliabracci declared that it was a different haplotype from that of Rudy Guede, and
compatible with Raffaele Sollecito’s genetic heritage. The problem brought to *the
court’s+ attention pertains instead to the frequency of this haplotype, which
Professor Tagliabracci declared that he knew only with reference to 11 loci, which is
seemingly equivalent to 3.36 per thousand subjects.

On this point, it should however be noted that in the memorandum cited above, the
frequency of almost 4 subjects in 1000 refers to 8 loci (see page 23). This frequency,
therefore, is destined to decrease considerably if compared to 11 loci and even more
considerably with reference to all 17 of the loci found, and in fact Dr. Torricelli, at the
hearing of June 5, 2009, declared that, with reference to the latest update of the
database with a population of 15,956 individuals, if only 11 loci were found and
inserted 31 people would be found with the same haplotype as Raffaele Sollecito;
whereas, using the 17 loci found, there was nobody found in this database with the
same haplotype as Raffaele Sollecito. On the basis of the foregoing, this Court
considered it absolutely improbable that another subject, other than Raffaele
Sollecito but with the same haplotype as his, individualized and matching to the
fullest extension of 17 loci, could have left - on the bra Meredith was wearing when
she was killed and which was torn from her - the biological trace which was found
on the hooks (Exhibit 165B). It would be necessary to believe that in the house where
Meredith lived, and where Raffaele Sollecito in those very days had just begun to
frequent, there had been a different subject than Raffaele Sollecito but from the same
male line of descent, and therefore having the same Y-chromosome. That subject,
furthermore, would have had, in addition, gene loci which were not the object of
dispute, as we have seen above, which matched with those that constitute the
specific, individual genetic heritage of Sollecito Raffaele.

298
[321] Consequently, the match between Raffaele Sollecito’s Y-haplotype and the Y-
haplotype found on trace 165B leads us to conclude that the biological trace found
on the hooks of the bra that Meredith was wearing when she was killed, was left by
Raffaele Sollecito. This conclusion becomes even more evident, strengthened and
further confirmed by the recognized match between the genetic profile of Sollecito
and that yielded from the trace, a match which, for a considerable number of loci
and as we have seen, turns out to be uncontested.

RAFFAELE SOLLECITO’S ‚MACBOOK PRO‛-MODEL APPLE LAPTOP

[321]
The Perugia Flying Squad seized the laptops of the accused, the victim, Patrick
Lumumba, and later, Rudy Hermann Guede, as well as Sollecito’s Kingston and
Seitec USB drives, each 128MB [in size].

The computers of Knox, Sollecito, Lumumba and Meredith Kercher were examined
first by the Scientific Police for fingerprints, and then, starting on 13 November 2007,
five sets of technical tests were carried out by the Postal Police (cf. record of the
Flying Squad, 3rd section produced at the 14 March 2009 hearing).

As far as the accused Raffaele Sollecito goes, the Postal Police technical examination
was carried out only on his MacBook PRO Apple laptop. Insofar as his other PC, an
ASUS L300D, as well as Amanda Knox’s Toshiba serial number 7541811OK and
Meredith Kercher’s G4 iBook sustained damage, it was impossible to retrieve data
from their respective hard drives.

Regarding the technical examination carried out on Raffaele Sollecito’s MacBook


PRO, during legal arguments presented in court Marco Trotta, Claudio Trifici and
Gregori Mirco, Polizia di Stato Assistants with the Umbria Division of the Polizia
Postale delle Communicazioni, gave testimony (Witnesses were examined at the
hearing of 14 March 2009).

The computer, as per the Flying Squad’s statement, was handed over to the Postal
Police on 13 November 2007.

[322] The Public Prosecutor had in the meantime ordered a specific investigation to
verify whether, based on an analysis of the hard drives, there had been human

299
interaction [on the computer] in the time period from 18:00 of 1 November 2007 to
08:00 of 2 November 2007.

The wide scope of the timeframe reflected the uncertainty regarding the time of
death of Meredith Kercher.

The verification of the MacBook PRO’s functioning (the only one, as before said,
analysed, and the only one this report will discuss) within the aforementioned
timeframe consisted of the performance of two fundamental operations.

First, there was the ‚acquisition‛ of the entire contents of the laptop’s hard disk(s) (a
kind of cloning/copying of the hard drive). Second, there was an ‚analysis‛ of the
image obtained.

The two tasks involved the use of two forensic software packages furnished to each
Postal Police Division by the Police Communications Service in Rome: Encase 6.7
was used for the so-called cloning/copying of data; the recently released Encase 6.8
was employed for the analysis.

The Postal Police operation, it was explained, involved the use of equipment capable
of ensuring the repeatability of the work carried out.

The five exhibits (that is, the Apple MacBook PRO and ASUS laptops seized from
Sollecito, Knox’s Toshiba laptop, the G4 iBook belonging to the victim, and Patrick
Lumumba’s computer, an HP serial number 375075-001), placed inside a cardboard
box, were received [from the Scientific Police] by the Postal Police on 13 November
2007.

The exhibits were not under seal and had already been examined by the Scientific
Police. They were intact (witness vice-captain Trotta; they were dismantled in the
presence of the Sollecito Defence consultant; no evidence presented itself of
erroneous assembly or tampering; the hard disks were perfectly integral, pages 103-
104, Assistant Trifici), and nothing of their external aspect gave any indication that
three of them were non-functional.

[323] (The Encase software had not revealed the presence of working hard drives, as
explained by the Postal Police testimony. To clone the hard drive, a write-prevention
tool, Write Protect from Logic Cube, was applied; then another computer was used
to read the linked hard drive: at this point, the Encase software and the operating
system of the reader-computer ‚reported that no functioning hard drive was visible‛;
page 99, Assistant Traffic’s deposition).

300
The first operation, which consisted of acquiring/copying the data, was carried out
in the presence of the Sollecito Defence technical consultant Mr. Fabio Formenti. The
initial activity had in fact been preceded by the appropriate written notification to
the defence teams, and the Sollecito Defence team had appointed a consultant.

The cloning operations, concluded successfully, as mentioned, only for the MacBook
PRO and Lumumba’s HP laptops, were carried out without any change of
equipment in the same room where, being of interest, a few copies of Sollecito’s
computer hard drive were produced. One of these, produced by the same means as
the one used for the ‚analysis‛ activity of the Postal Police, was handed over to the
Sollecito Defence consultant.

Before doing anything, the Postal Police verified the system date/time. The system
clocks were found to match real time: meaning that the laptop’s BIOS clock and the
real-world clock at the time of cloning ‚were perfectly synchronized‛ (page 16 of
witness Vice-Captain Trotta’s testimony). Therefore, the laptop files were not
carrying incorrect timestamps.

During the system-clock check and hard-drive cloning operations (including deleted
files that were at least partly retrievable), no remarks were made by consultant
Formenti, as is evidenced by the supplied relevant record of the conclusion of
operations.

And so, with the relevant prevention of the possibility of any write-to-disk action
(the above-mentioned Write Protect from Logic Cube), a copy of the hard disk’s
contents was obtained and the correctness of the [324] ‚clone‛ was certified by the
same Encase 6.7 software by means of the hash codes’ correspondence in the
relevant string.

With the Encase 6.8 software, the Postal Police were able to analyse the copy, for the
purpose of acquiring useful confirmations to establish the possible human
interaction on Sollecito’s computer during the time period indicated in the
*Prosecution’s+ request.

Given that each file has a creation date, modified date, last accessed date, delete date
and write date, the results showed:

• 0 (zero) modified files, in the sense that there were no variations in the
dimensions/sizes of existing files

301
• 0 deleted files

• 9 created files (they were ‚created‛, but in the absence of human interaction,
where two were both ‚created‛ at 03:15:07 on 2 November 2007 automatically by the
system, and the rest were automatically generated files, at 60-120 minutes intervals
by the ‚Firefox Mozilla‛ browser inside its cache (cf. 1 in the 19 November 2007
Postal Police report)

• 124 files with last accessed

• 17 written files (meaning a modification that increased the file size); of these, 3 files
related to program ‚crashes‛ for listening to/playing audio-video files. (We will
return to these crashes, once we consider the time at which they took place, - ndr
(‚editor’s note‛)).

The analysis undertaken using the Encase 6.8 software therefore gives the following
results:

Of the 124 files (or ‚reports‛) with ‚last accessed‛ in the referenced time period
(from 18:00 on 1 November 2007 to 08:00 on 2 November 2007), only two were
”human interaction‛; the remaining 122 reports were actions carried out automatically
by the Mac OS X operating system installed on the Apple MacBook PRO.

In particular, the evidenced human interactions occurred at:

√ 21:10:32 on the 1 November 2007.

[325] √ at 05:32:09 on the 2 November 2007, this last evidenced at heading 2 of the
Postal Police report, relating to ‚Files written‛.

Furthermore at 18:27:15 on the 1st November 2007, there was human interaction via
the ‚VLC‛ application, software used to play a multimedia file for a film, ‚Il
Favoloso Mondo Di Amelie.avi‛, already downloaded onto Sollecito’s laptop via
P2P (peer-to-peer) some days earlier.

Encase 6.8 therefore evidences two times:

■ at 18:27:15, VLC was launched to play the multimedia file ‚Amelie.avi‛(referred to


thus for brevity; cf. the 4 headings under 8 in the list)

■ at 21:10:32 the system recorded the last access to the file on the same [film] (cf. the
4 headings under 95).

302
The Postal Police witnesses explained ‚last access‛, including quoted material from
the explanation printed in the Encase software manual, as referring to an indefinite
quantity of actions performed for the last time on a specific file, such as: moving [a
file] to a different part of the Desktop or to different folders; right-clicking [on a file]
with the mouse when the pointer is on top of it, or the file is used by another
program; the conclusion of viewing – the end of playing – a video file; the
termination of playing a file, the moment during which the VLC application
interacts with the file without, however, requiring the presence of a user.

Encase 6.8 was used, as previously mentioned, to examine the MacBook PRO hard-
disk clone. The examination was undertaken on what the Postal Police call a ‚dead
system‛, giving a specific type of information.

At the same time, though, it was possible to conduct an examination on a ‚live


system‛, which allows for different possibilities, including verification of the
‚properties‛ of the ‚Amelie.avi‛ video file.

Live system analysis means installing the copy/clone onto a notebook with identical
hardware specifications to the Apple MacBook PRO [326] used by Sollecito. This
makes it possible to reboot a computer identical to the accused’s for the purpose of
inspecting the properties of the multimedia file in question to establish the period of
time during which the computer user would have interacted with the file and to
temporally link the start and end of the aforesaid activity.

This was done and the machine was started by inserting the password
‚palmiottosollecito‛, obtained by combining the family names ‚Palmiotto‛ and
‚Sollecito‛ of the mother and father of the accused. (The laptop password was
identified through intuition, being otherwise unknown to the Postal Police.)

Operating in the described manner, it was possible to confirm that at 18:27:15, there
was activity by the ‚VLC‛ application, the software used, as indicated, by the MAC
OS X operating system to play multimedia files, in this case that of the film
‚Amelie.avi‛.

The result obtained by running on the live system therefore offers confirmation as to
what the Encase 6.8 software already indicated (as per the appendix, at 4 headings
under 8).

Booting up the Raffaele Sollecito virtual laptop, via hardware identical to the
MacBook PRO notebook with a clone of the original hard disk, the Postal Police had

303
in front of them a desktop identical to the accused’s computer, including, amongst
many others, the icon for the video file ‚Amelie.avi‛. Clicking on the icon, they were
able at this point to obtain information about the file in question. And so it resulted
that the movie had been ‚created‛ on Sunday 28 October at 22:36, meaning that at
this time the download began from the Internet onto the laptop, via the P2P network.

The Postal Police then began to play the ‚Amelie‛ video file; such activity took place
on 27 November 2007, starting at 10:21.

After 5 minutes, at 10:26, the playing of the film was interrupted and they proceeded
to check, in the live system (with Mac OS X operating system), the properties of the
said file.

[327] The result obtained was that, at 10:21 on 27 November 2007, the VLC
application started playing the video file (being the last opening of the file). Turning
back to Encase 6.8, it showed that 10:26 on 27 November 2007 corresponded to the
‚last accessed‛ of the video file in question.

Turning to the prior playing of the film ‚Amelie‛ that took place on 1 November
2007, the result is the following:

The live system attested to the fact that the play command for the film (making the
film ‚Amelie.avi‛ play via the VLC application that the Mac OS X operating system
of the laptop used for multimedia audio and video files) took place at 18:27:15.

The dead system confirmed that the last access (‚the system closed the program‛, is
how Vice-Captain Trotta expressed it, on page 31, meaning that the ‚closure‛ could
be correlated as much to the human activity needed to stop the playing of the film, as
to the natural conclusion with the scrolling of the end credits, a place at which the
end of the ‚film‛ itself would have undertaken a last interaction with the system,
irrespective of the physical presence of a user), took place at 21:10:32 on the 1
November.

Finally, the subsequent human interaction on Sollecito’s laptop was recorded at 5:32
on the 2nd November.

On this occasion, the VLC software was launched to play a music file (MP3 file). The
attempt failed, however, due to a problem with the file extension, such that the
computer registered an ‚application crash‛, a kind of record that the OS writes to
leave a trace behind for problem debugging.

304
(The three VLC crashes are evidenced under heading 2 of the report, specifically,
number 2 at 5:32:12, number 3 at 5:32:13, number 16 at 5:32:09; all of them requiring
the action of a person, as said earlier, to start the VLC application.)

Further analysis showed that, immediately after the application crash, the playing of
the music files was done via another application, iTunes, which the MacBook PRO
operating system associates with MP3 files.

[328] The data obtained, highly important in view of reconstructing the movements
of the accused during the night of 1-2 November, is therefore the following:

After 21:10:32 on 1-November, and up until 5:32:09 on 2 November 2007 when the
VLC program was launched to play music files, there was no user-activity verified
on the Apple MacBook PRO.

In addition, the analysis carried out on the USB drives seized from Sollecito did not
reveal any file for which there was any interaction in the requested 18:00/08:00 time
period.

The Postal Police investigation, in extreme summary, has evidenced that, whereas
the Mac OS X system (in live system mode) showed inherent information for the last
opening of a file (in our case, the playing of the film ‚Amelie.avi‛ began at 18:27:15
on 1 November), the Encase 6.8 forensic software analysis tool was able to show the
last system access time of the same file (at 21:10:32 on 1 November 2007, in this
specific case).

305
THE NON-EXISTENT WEB-BROWSING ACTIVITY ACCORDING TO THE
POSTAL POLICE

The technical investigation of the Postal Police produced the result shown above.

Whereas the accused’s Apple computer was connected to the Internet during the
21:10:32 on 01-November to 5:32:08 on 02-November period, keeping the Mozilla
Firefox web-browser (which is a program for navigating on the Internet) open, the
Encase forensic analysis software determined, for such time period, that the only
files created (last created) or written (last written) were generated, automatically,
either by the computer’s operating system or the Firefox web-browser within its own
cache: being files generated at regular intervals.

As for what the cache might be, Assistant Gregori said first of all that Mozilla Firefox
is a program for displaying a web page. Before making the contents of a web page
visible, the data is first downloaded from the Internet and then transferred to the
computer before being [329] written, where such activity (writing) is carried out
within the cache. This being done, the program acquires the written data from the
cache and displays it on the screen for the benefit of the user.

The Postal Police were able to determine that there was no navigation inside Mozilla
Firefox’s cache (Firefox uses anti-phishing filters, used for anti-fraud purposes, that
work by activating every 30 minutes; with the web browser open, the program looks
for updates at the anti-fraud service with the preset periodical activations; Assistant
Gregori, page 117), also on the basis of the analysis of the log files supplied by
Fastweb.

Whereas the Encase software had obtained the ‚navigation history‛, which excluded
any trace of web browsing in the 21:10:32 01-November-2007 to 05:32:08 02-
November-2007 period, the Postal Police could have reached a similar result by
examination of the log files from Fastweb, the Internet provider with which Raffaele
Sollecito had a contract. (Cf. the printouts produced at the 14 March 2009 hearing.)

Fastweb’s logfiles, with reference to destination port ‚80‛ (a standard port for all
web-service servers), show that very few bytes went through port 80, the port of web
pages (as per the table; we are dealing with what the server sends back to the
computer making the request).

From this it was possible to infer that there was no web page retrieval in progress,
while the P2P service (the so-called file sharing service) remained active (but the

306
matter does not require the context of human interaction) for the exchange of files
between a household computer and another one (page 121, Gregori).

In this case, the human interaction was limited to the initial moment in which the
user started downloading the searched files (films, songs...). This done, the user only
had to wait: the system linked automatically with all the servers managing the
synchronisations that make P2P work, creating a spider web of links (in such a way
that a file could be supplied, in small parts, by several users).

[330] Fastweb’s log files, in brief, would have shown web page requests directed
towards internet sites: this was not the case, and the negative result would have been
applicable to whatever computer that happened to be found in Sollecito’s house
(page 121). This fact is therefore applicable not only to the Apple PC analysed by the
Postal Police, but also to the Asus PC whose hard disk had been impossible to clone.

As Assistant Gregori made clear in conclusion, whatever computer would have


made a webpage request, it would have been confirmed by means of Fastweb’s
logfiles.

For the ASUS, having therefore excluded Internet navigation, which is absent in the
documented table, P2P services could however have been active for exchanging
music, video etc files, which is different from navigation on the Internet.

Turning to the playing of music files, an activity initiated with the MacBook PRO
computer starting from 05:32:08 on the 2nd November 2007, around 05:56:37
(heading 40 of appendix 4 ‚files last accessed*‛+), a ‚playlist‛ was created. Human
interaction was continuous (cf. no.54, last access 06:18) for about half an hour from
that VLC application crash, of which we have spoken, when [attempting] to play a
music file.

307
THE TECHNICAL REPORT FROM THE SOLLECITO DEFENCE TEAM
CONSULTANTS

The Sollecito Defence Team consultants, Dr Michele Gigli and Dr Antonio


D’Ambrosio (this latter was cross-examined in the 26-Sep-2009 hearing) are of the
contrary view, with respect to the analysis carried out by the Postal Police, in
reference to the possibility that there was human interaction with the Web in the
time period with which we are concerned.

The consultants had available to them a copy of the magnetic hardware [i.e., the
hard drive] from the Apple MACKBOOKPRO computer obtained by the Postal
Police using the Encase software; they used another copy for carrying out their
investigations, and they analysed the log files furnished by the company Fastweb.

The Defence [team] had entrusted them with the task of verifying whether there had
been interactions on specific days and in specific time periods, [and] having
relevance, with [331] reference to the time period between 22:00 and 05:00 on 1-2
November 2007.

The result of their analysis led them to the following conclusions.

Starting with the data according to which the Fastweb log files under heading ‚L‛ of
the report (traffic extraction concerning port 80-http-) show 4 seconds of connection
to Apple’s international site (from 00:58:50 to 00:58:53) the following reconstruction
was provided:

It is claimed that at around 00:58, while the user was probably launching a
multimedia file with the Quick Time application (or alternatively with the iTunes
application to listen to some music), this software, on opening, contacted Apple’s
server.

At this point, the opening of an ad-type window occurred (a list of multimedia files
sold by Apple) after which this ‚window‛, coming directly from Apple, was closed
(due to a lack of interest by the user, one might say).

All of this left traces in the log files (cf. the related ‚L‛ cited, where the evidencing
[of this] is reported) and not in the computer hardware, with respect to which
Sollecito’s consultants agree fully with the investigation carried out by the Postal
Police using the Encase system, which provides, as has been noted, the time of last

308
access to the ‚Amelie‛ video file launched in the late afternoon of the 1st November
2007.

The human interaction with the Apple server would be limited to the four seconds
reported in the log files, without explaining [che sia dato sapere] what the user did
immediately afterwards, and whether or not a video or music file was watched or
listened to.

The uncertainty surrounding the ‚afterwards‛ depends on a loss of data connected


with the P2P sharing that Raffaele Sollecito had with the Internet.

For example, it was explained, it has been positively confirmed that in the afternoon
of 1-Nov-2007, the download completed for the multimedia file ‚Stardust‛ that the
user had requested from the Internet using the P2P system.

[332] The files requested were six in number (those in the Stardust series), where the
user had played the first three downloads, evidently of good quality, so as to cancel
the download of the further copies.

But the Stardust files remained on Raffaele Sollecito’s computer in a folder shared
with the Internet, such that, for these, a ‚last access‛ occurred right on the night of 6-
Nov-2007, at 02:47, during the time period in which Raffaele and Amanda were
being held in the Questura [Police Headquarters].

The fact that the Encase system registers a "last modified" entry during the night of
6-Nov-2007 for the Stardust files constitutes the confirmation that there has been a
loss of data.

It can be said, indeed, when there was a last access, but the information of when the
file was previously launched has been lost.

Bringing the Giglio-d'Ambrosio report into the framework of the present case, it is
possible to draw the following conclusions.

In the abstract, it can be hypothesised that a viewing of the Stardust file (and others
as well) downloaded from the Internet and shared with the Internet, could have
been launched even after 22:00 of the 1-Nov-2007. In fact, no one will ever know if
this actually occurred, as the Encase system supplies the information limited to the
last access, where the access in question is not even referable to the computer user but
[can be referred] to anyone at all around the world [quisque de populo] with a P2P

309
program requesting the sharing of the files from the dedicated folder on Sollecito’s
computer.

Whether the file was actually played or not must remain in the world of hypothesis,
where in any case the so-called file launch (of which Encase supplies the last access
to) could have taken place, still in the abstract, in the succeeding days, up until the
late afternoon of 5 November when Raffaele and Amanda went to the Questura, not
necessarily having had to occur right in the final hours of 1-November-2007.

The only certain data that comes out of the Giglio-D’Ambrosio report is of that four
second interaction with the Apple server, caused by the opening of the
http://www.apple.com website home page (a [333] secondary hypothesis made by
the technical consultants): equivalent to an intention to browse the Internet followed
by an immediate renunciation or else by the closing of an ad-type window generated
directly by Apple, which the Quick Time application (or else iTunes) had, according
to reconstruction by the consultants, opened.

Nonetheless, it is possible to infer from the technical report that the opening of the
so-called window is something absolutely tied with launching the Quick Time
application, which allows the playing of a film, independently of any confirmation
of whether the playing then took place, and at what time.

And so, the certainty that is reached is limited to the fact that, at most, starting from
00:58 on 2 November a certain use of the computer was made, where however its
usage in the preceding hours can only be ascertained by a crystal ball.

In conclusion, [the Court] takes note that around 1am on the night of 2-Nov-2007,
Raffaele Sollecito could have found himself in front of the computer; in the opinion
of the Court, the time thus mentioned is however after the hour of Meredith
Kercher’s death and nothing prevents the holding that Amanda and Raffaele could
have, at that hour, returned home again, after the murder [a cose fatte], to the
apartment at Corso Garibaldi 30.

310
[GSM] NETWORK COVERAGE: VIA DELLA PERGOLA AND VIA
SPERANDIO 5 BIS

From Rome’s SCO19, chief inspector Letterio Latella’s deposition introduced the topic
of radio base stations covering the abodes of Via della Pergola, Corso Garibaldi 30,
and the specific point where the discovery of Meredith’s mobile phones occurred, as
noted, in the yard of the Lana-Biscarini family on 2 November 2007. The accused, the
victim, and even Filomena Romanelli, for the purpose of reconstructing the
protagonists’ movements during the day of 2 November 2007 and, even earlier,
during the evening and night of 1 November 2007, possessed mobile phones, where
Meredith used a phone with a Vodafone SIM card [utenza] loaned to her by
Romanelli and another phone with an English SIM card which she used to keep in
contact with her own family.

[334] Meredith’s English number *utenza20+, based on the English provider’s contract
with the [mobile phone] provider Wind for when their own clients are in Italy, used
WIND’s network for roaming: hence the importance of identifying the Wind cells
securing coverage of Via della Pergola 7, since those radio base stations would be the
ones Meredith’s English phone *=cellulare] usually linked to when making or
receiving phone calls.

The Polizia di Stato (Chief Inspector Latella and others) handled the analysis of the
call records of the mobile phones [apparati] used by the accused, the victim, and
other persons, as well as the relationships of the mobile phone network cells to the
territory.

Taking into consideration the basic information, furnished during the trial, of the
concepts of ‚best server cell‛, ‚BTS‛ (the phone tower or iron pole mounted with
panels that ensure radioelectric coverage over an area; the phone records provide the
addresses of the towers in question), ‚endover‛ (which come in three types:
‚intracell‛, where the user using the mobile phone goes around the same tower,
therefore only a sector change occurs while being connected to the same tower;
‚intercell‛: the user exits that cell and enters another one of the same cell group or
BSC *best server cell+, remaining definitively within the same area; ‚external‛, in this
case the new cell connected to belongs to a different cell group), the Police
Investigators [Polizia Giudiziaria+ proceeded to acquire the ‚cell traffic‛ from Wind,
after which, placing themselves directly on the places of interest [posto] (the three

19
Servizio Centrale Operativo della polizia di stato, “the State Police‟s Central Operations Service”
20
service plan, subscription

311
places being, as said, Via della Pergola 7, Corso Garibaldi 30, and Via Sperandio 5
bis) by means of appropriate instrumentation supplied by the Scientific Police, it was
verified which signals [from those locations] reach the places of interest (with the
aim of checking whether the cell traffic furnished by Wind contained any errors).

As regards to Via della Pergola 7, where Chief Inspector Latella personally measured
the Wind signal strength (it was immediately clarified by the inspector that the radio
towers [ponti] of the various [GSM] Providers do not interfere with each other even
though they are very close to one another, each being independent from the other
[vita propria]), it was ascertained that, in the courtyard of the cottage, three Wind
cells were within reach (which is to say, that the cottage is at the intersection of the
three cells indicated below).

[335] The cells are:

• 30424

• 30423

•30064 (this last one sends the strongest signal)

They are located in the same place (radio tower) and the address is Strada Vicinale
Ponte Rio Monte La Guardia.

Regarding the selection of one cell instead of another, Chief Inspector Latella
explained that a mobile phone, with the help of the Network, scans for the strongest
signal (usually across 3-4 channels) in a certain spot at that moment: the Network in
fact knows which cell is free, and connects to the one able to ensure the best
communication. (In this regard, it was explained that the GSM mobile phones
[apparati] – which corresponds to the type the phones in evidence – have a minimum
and maximum sensitivity limit. At -50 decibels, for example, the signal is very strong
and we are close to the transmission source; -110dB constitutes the extreme limit,
where, though, by -102dB, the signal is no longer usable for telecommunication
purposes.)

At the side of the cottage, Chief Inspector Latella found that a fourth cell joins the
three listed above.

This is Wind cell 3302025621, situated at Piazza Lupattelli, which one can connect to
by shifting position by only half a metre while still inside the cottage garden.

312
The Wind cells reachable from Meredith’s room are those mentioned herein above.
To them can be added Wind cell 3302025620, which the Scientific Police
instrumentation detected near the window of the victim’s bedroom. (The Polizia
Giudiziaria carried out the [signal] detection sensing exclusively on the outside of the
cottage, re-positioning the instrument’s antennae with extensions.)

Cells 3302025620, 3302025621, and lastly 3302025622 are located on the pylon placed
in Piazza Lupattelli.

Of particular interest in the present reconstruction is that cell 25622 is different from
the other two on the same tower by the fact of not [336] covering the Via della
Pergola 7 cottage. And in fact, this cell, because of its positioning and the orientation
of the irradiation of the broadcasted radio signal, is facing in the opposite direction
of the cottage.

As a whole, the conclusion of the in loco21 checks is the following: just as cell 25622
does not cover Via della Pergola 7, cell 30064 does not cover the garden of the house
at Via Sperandio 5 bis.

In Via Sperandio – close to the Parco di Sant'Angelo [parco] – the Police investigators
verified, using technical equipment, that none of the cell signals covering Via delle
Pergola is present; in particular, there was no signal in the garden of the house from
cell 30064 (located in Strada Vicinale Ponte Rio Monte La Guardia) that one can get
at the cottage and surrounding area.

Conversely, the signal from cell 25622 does not reach Via della Pergola 7.

Therefore, between cell 25622 (signal present in Via Sperandio, absent in Via della
Pergola) and cell 25621 (signal present in Via della Pergola, absent in Via Sperandio),
a lack of overlap amongst the respective coverage zones was verified.

Meredith’s English phone that connected to cell 25622 could not have been in the
cottage and surrounding area at the moment of making or receiving a call.

At the same time, the connection to cell 30064 by the same phone would have meant
that it was not located in the garden of the Lana-Biscarini house, where certainly, as
of a precise moment in time, the mobile phone ended up being placed.

21
“on the ground”, “on site”

313
It should be noted at the outset that the records from Meredith’s English phone
(which was using the SIM 00447841131571) show incoming/outgoing calls on the 1st
November 2007 at these following times:

14:31:43
15:01:58
15:48:56
15:55:03
15:55:57
22:13:19
reference to the radio base station connected to for each call allows the localisation of
the phone in the following way:

√ at 14:31:43, the mobile phone connected to cell 3302025620 in Piazza Lupattelli,


whose signal was reachable near the victim’s bedroom window

[337]

√ at 15:01:58, the phone connected to cell 3302025621, whose signal was equally
reachable in Meredith’s bedroom

√ at 15:48:56 –>> cell 25621

√ at 15:55:03 –>> cell 25621

√ at 15:55:57 –>> cell 25621

√ at 22:13:19, the phone connected to the 30064 Strada Vicinale Ponte Rio Monte La
Guardia cell, the base radio station which Chief Inspector Latella referred to as the
same one that was detected by their measurements near Meredith’s bedroom (in
addition to having reception in the courtyard of the cottage).

The immediate deduction which the Polizia Giudiziaria arrived at is therefore that
Meredith’s English phone was at Via della Pergola 7 on the date 1 November 2007,
in the time period from 14:31:43 to 15:55:57, and lastly at 22:13:19, when the phone
made a GPRS connection (to which we will return) rather than a voice connection.

In addition, for the first call Meredith’s English phone had on the 2 November 2007,
exactly at 00:10:31, the base radio station connected to was 25622 at Piazza Lupattelli,
as said, positioned and pointing in the opposite direction from Via della Pergola 7.

314
At the above-mentioned time, Meredith’s English phone was located in the place it
would be later discovered in by members of the Lana-Biscarini family: the phone
from 00:10:31 onwards was thus situated in the garden of that family.

The dichotomy between cells 25622 (incompatible with Via della Pergola 7) and
30064 (incompatible with the garden of Via Sperandio) allows the establishment of a
fixed point [of reference].

Up until 22:13:19 at least, the phone was in the student’s [=Meredith’s] house; from
00:31:21 onwards, one can establish the presence of the phone in the garden
[parco] of the other abode.

From 12:07 onwards on the 2 November 2007, Meredith’s English phone would then
receive numerous incoming calls (which are seen better in the following section): the
first [few] involve the Wind 25622 radio base station; subsequently, for the 12:43 call
(still under cell 25622), the phone will have coverage [338] from cell 25603, since the
mobile phone had been taken to the offices of the Postal Police located in Via M
Angeloni in Perugia.

Regarding the mobile phone with a Vodafone contract (SIM 348-467311) loaned by
Romanelli to Meredith, the Polizia Giudiziaria has ascertained the non-existence of
phone-call traffic from the afternoon of 1 November 2007 up until 2 November 2007.

The data produced for 31 October 2007 show an SMS sent at 18:27:50 to number
3388921724, with connection to the cell Piazza Lupattelli sector [=sett.] 7, and the
receipt, under the same cell, of a response SMS at 18:29:05.

As regards 2 November 2007, Meredith Kercher’s Vodafone number received a call


from Amanda Knox’s number (348-4673590) at 12:11:02 (the Strada Vicinale S Maria
della Collina cell, sector 1).

Two calls followed, both originating from the same English number 447853133067,
handled by the service centre because Meredith’s phone was off or unreachable.

The first was received at 13:17:10 (the Strada Vicinale S Maria della Collina cell,
section 7); the second at 15:43:13, with the printout in this case omitting the radio
base station.

315
TELEPHONE TRAFFIC OF RAFFAELE SOLLECITO’S MOBILE PHONE

The Police investigators proceeded to analyse the printouts of the phone traffic of the
mobile phones in use by the defendants, by the victim, by Romanelli Filomena who,
as has been noted, late in the morning of 2.11.07 contacted the mobile phones both of
Meredith Kercher and of Amanda Knox, and finally to the father of Raffaele, Dr
Francesco Sollecito.

The analyses provided information of various types. Besides indicating the times at
which the calls were made, the printouts give a list of the radio base stations used by
the calling and receiving users, and for this reason the Court of Assizes was able to
reconstruct the routes followed by the persons concerned during the time in which
the phone calls in question were taking place.

A preliminary piece of information must be provided. The fact has been admitted, as
is borne out both by the Police investigators’ notes and by the defence consultants
according to whom [339] calls which are not answered do not generate phone traffic
when they involve mobile subscribers of Italian [GSM] service providers; an
exception is made for the Service Provider H3G which, having become operational
after the entry into force of law No. 155/2005, was able to immediately organise
itself, in conformity with the aims of the anti-terrorism legislation, to record all types
of traffic.

An unanswered call, therefore, does not leave any trace which could be verified in
the printouts.

There is however an important exception to the rule, and this exception concerns the
subscribers of foreign service providers that are used in Italy, as happened with
Meredith’s English mobile phone: in this case the contractual relationship between
the English operator and Wind [the Italian GSM service provider] in connection with
the roaming service stipulate a give-and-take relationship which is maintained even
for unanswered calls. In fact, phone traffic is also generated since the missed call is
redirected to the mobile phone’s answering service, producing its own record; the
unanswered calls are ultimately perfectly recognizable, since the printouts indicate
the involvement of the answering service.

Turning to the data which deals with Raffaele Sollecito’s mobile subscription (SIM
No. 340-3574303), the first point to highlight is the following: the defendant’s mobile
phone was inactive after 20:42:56 of 1.11.07 and until 06:02:59 of 2.11.07.

316
This signifies that the subscriber did not receive and did not make calls during the
approximately nine-hour period of time described here above.

As for the location of the apparatus [the phone], the call made at 20:42:56 on 1.11.07
used the Via Beradi sector 7 cell, which serves the houses located along Corso
Garibaldi.

At 06:02:59 on 2.11.07 (first contact of the day), the mobile phone received an SMS
sent from the mobile phone of the father, Dr Francesco Sollecito, using the reception,
in this case also, of the same base transceiver station on Via Beradi sector 7.

From this information, the investigators deduced that Raffaele Sollecito’s mobile
phone had been left always in the same place, or else it had been switched off and
switched on again in the [340] same place (being, essentially, inside the house at
Corso Garibaldi 30).

Sollecito’s house, it was established, receives various signals [in the places] where
the measurements were taken, as is the case for Meredith’s cottage when standing
outside, and placing the measuring instruments in front of the entrance.

The front of the house is reached by another 3 cells with powerful enough signals (as
will be explained in more detail), as Chief Inspector Latella reported, for which
reason the coverage offered by the Network would have allowed, except in cases of
mobile phones that are broken or switched off, SMSs to be received in real time.

Thus the SMS sent to him by his father was received on Raffaele Sollecito’s mobile
phone at 06:02:59 of 2.11.07, whereas Dr Francesco Sollecito’s mobile phone had
generated the text message at 23:14 on 1.11.07.

An SMS which does not immediately reach the recipient is stored on the server of
the operator, in the Vodafone server in this case it was explained, in order to be re-
sent when the Network realises that the mobile phone is once again accessible.

The importance of the delayed reception of the SMS generated at 23:14 thus poses a
specific problem [enigma]: in the period of time between 23:14 and 06:02:59, was
Raffaele Sollecito’s mobile phone switched off, or was it inaccessible? (That it was
broken is a circumstance which can be positively excluded, given its subsequent
functioning.)

317
According to the investigators, the mobile phone had simply been switched off, as
there were no technical reasons that prevented the SMS from being delivered within
seconds of being sent.

The above evaluation is based on a series of observations:

1. The area around the defendant’s home was reached by a very strong signal
radiated from the Via Berardi sector 7 cell, indicated as being the ‚best server cell‛
with regard to Sollecito’s house; furthermore the signals of other cells are also
powerful, respectively that with a pylon in Piazza Lupattelli sector 8 and that with a
pylon in Via dell’Acquilla-Torre dell’Acquedotto sectors 3 and 9.

[341]

2. On the basis of analyses of the printouts - dealing with the month preceding the
murder - Raffaele Sollecito’s phone had received until late in the evening, where the
calls were handled by the Via Berrardi sector 7 cell, clearly constituting the ‚best
server cell‛.

3. The global traffic of the said cell was obtained by the investigators to check if there
had been any problems; the results of the analyses led to the finding that many
mobile phones had been engaged in conversation, connecting during the night of 1-2
November 07 to the Via Berrardi sector 7 cell (it was determined that the Network
was functioning normally).

4. The signal of that base transceiver station reached *Sollecito’s house+ normally in
the preceding days (it was ascertained from the printouts that Raffaele Sollecito
normally used the mobile phone at night, thus it can be inferred that the phone was
rarely turned off), so there were no technical reasons that could explain a blackout
on that very night and only on that night.

Turning to Raffaele Sollecito’s mobile traffic, the subject was dealt with in the notes
of Chief Inspector Latella and with Assistant Stefano Sisani of the Polizia di Stato of
Perugia, where the latter dealt with studying the telephone record printouts with
reference to the landline subscribers in addition to the mobile subscribers.

With respect to Sollecito’s mobile phone 340-3574303, attention was paid to the entire
day of 1.11.07 with the following results:

− 00:00:39 an outgoing call, just after midnight

− 00:57 an incoming SMS

318
− 14:25 an incoming call which lasted 58 seconds

− 16:50 an incoming call, coming from the mobile phone of the father, lasting 214 sec.

− 16:56 another call from the father (64 sec.)

− 20:42:56 call from the father (221 seconds: this is the conversation which Dr F.
Sollecito referred to, made at the end of the film he had just seen in the cinema,
which the father recommended to the son, at which point Raffaele informed his
father of the problem with the water leak in the kitchen).

With regard to the day of 2.11.07 [342]

− 06:02:59 Sollecito Raffaele received the SMS from his father wishing him a good
night; from the evidence of the mobile phone record printouts of Dr Francesco
Sollecito, it was shown that the sending of the message occurred at, as has been said,
23:41:11 of 1.11.07. This was the last SMS sent from that mobile phone during the
whole day of 1.11.07

− 09:24 Raffaele Sollecito received a phone call from his father lasting 248 seconds

− 09:29 another call was received lasting 38 seconds

− 09:30 the father called Raffaele; the call connected to the Vial Belardi sector 7 cell
(the best server cell for Corso Garibaldi 30)

− 12:35: Raffaele’s mobile phone contacted a service centre for a phone [credit]
recharge (the cell used was that of Piazza Lupattelli sector 7, which gives coverage to
the little house on Via della Pergola 7. The signal in question does not reach Corso
Garibaldi 30, which instead is served by the signal from Piazza Lupattelli sector 8)

− 12:38: Vodafone sent a message of confirmation of phone [credit] recharge (Piazza


Lupattelli sector 7 cell, good for Via della Pergola 7)

− 12:40: incoming call from the father’s mobile phone (lasting 67 seconds; connection
through Piazza Lupattelli sector 7 cell, compatible with the Sollecito’s presence near
the little house)

− 12:50:34 outgoing call directed at mobile phone 347-1323774 belonging to Vanessa


Sollecito, sister of the defendant; duration 39 seconds. Connection to Piazza
Lupattelli sector 7 cell

319
− 12:51:40 Raffaele Sollecito called ‚112‛ to inform the Carabinieri of the presumed
theft in Romanelli’s room (duration 169 seconds; connection to Via dell’Aquila 5-
Torre dell’Acquedotto sector 1 cell, which covers Via della Pergola 7)

− 12:54: a second call by Raffaele to ‚112‛ (57 sec.; connection to Piazza Lupattelli
sector 7 cell)

− 13:40:12: incoming call from the father (94 sec.; Via dell’Aquila 5-Torre
dell’Acquedotto sector 1 cell)

− 13:50: the father called for 178 seconds (Piazza Lupattelli sector 7 cell) [343]

− 14:33: the father called for 21 seconds (as above)

− 17:01: the father called for 164 seconds; cell used is that of Via Cappucinelli 5/A
sector 2, corresponding to the location of the Perugia Police Station

− 17:42: the father called for 97 seconds (as above).

With regard to Raffaele Sollecito’s landline home phone (No. 075-9660789)

− on 31.10.07 Raffaele received *a call+ from the father’s fixed line (No. 080-3958602)
at 22:14 for 44 seconds

− on 1.11.07 *he+ called the father’s house at 00:02:41 for 262 seconds

− on 3.11.07 at 14:16 note was made of two attempted incoming calls from the
father’s fixed line.

For the entire day of 1 November and then of 2 November, Raffaele Sollecito’s fixed
line was not affected by any calls, either incoming or outgoing.

With reference to the subject of Raffaele’s very delayed reception (at 06:02:59 of
2.11.07) of his father’s message with respect to when it was sent (at 23:14 on 1.11.07),
the technical consultant for Sollecito’s defence *team+, Engineer Bruno Pellero
(testimony at the hearing of 17.7.09) offered an alternative interpretation with respect
to that maintained by the Scientific Police.

Given the point, in accordance with Chief Inspector Latella’s proposition with
regard to the fact that the phone record printouts do not give information as to
whether a mobile phone is switched on or turned off, the Consultant recounted the
survey, carried out using his own technical equipment inside Sollecito’s apartment at
Corso Garibaldi 30, for the purpose of recording the level of reception of the radio-

320
electric signals transmitted by Vodafone’s base transceiver stations operating in the
area.

The investigation’s arrival point as calculated on the spot by the Consultant is that
there is bad reception tout court [altogether] inside the dwelling, which is located on
the ground floor and is bounded by thick external walls, whereas optimal reception
of the signals is shown at the level of the entrance, as was demonstrated at the time
by Chief Inspector Latella, who had also dealt with [344] checking the signals,
without at any point going into the inside of any of the homes concerned.

Having mentioned Engineer Pellero’s remarks (the delayed reception of the SMS to
be attributed not so much to the switching off of the mobile phone as to lack of a
[reception] field, with the supposition that the mobile phone was resting in a
position deep inside the house and far from the door and the main window where,
on the contrary, signal reception was steady), the Court limits itself to taking note,
not without highlighting its perplexity as to how to endorse such an interpretation
taking into account: what Chief Inspector Latella had said with regard to the
optimum functioning of the network’s traffic, with respect to the operator Vodafone
and to the area in discussion during the night in question; the analyses of Sollecito’s
telephone traffic, which had revealed the intensity of mobile phone calls exchanged,
even in the middle of the night - which tends to confirm the theory that the student
also used the mobile phone while lying in bed, and therefore far away from the entry
door or from the window of the kitchen where reception of the signal would not
have given any problems; the absence of points of comparison from declaratory
sources, because neither in Knox’s divulgations nor in those of Sollecito, despite
having taken the stand on numerous occasions to make spontaneous declarations,
was there any indication of difficult [reduced] reception in parts of the apartment
which were far from the outside perimeter.

In conclusion, the remarkable work of Engineer Pellero, does not seem to weaken the
analyses carried out by the Scientific Police, bringing the court to the conclusion that
the delayed reception of the SMS was due to the actual switching off of Sollecito’s
mobile phone during a period of many hours, between that attendant to the sending
and that near to the actual reception of the short text message.

321
THE PHONE TRAFFIC ON AMANDA KNOX’S MOBILE PHONE

Amanda Knox’s mobile phone was provided with a Vodafone SIM [card] 348-
4673590.

The phone traffic with regard to the day of 1.11.07 was reconstructed in the
following terms (cfr. statement of Assistant Stefano Sisani at the hearing of 20.3.09).

[345]

− 00:41:49 hours: outgoing phone call of 20 seconds, to a number whose holder was
not identified

− 00:57:20: Amanda’s mobile phone sent an SMS, using the cell on Via dell’Aquila 5-
Torre dell’Acquedotto sector 3 (which does not provide coverage to Sollecito’s
house, since it pertains to Via Ulisse Rocchi, Piazza Cavallotti, etc. and therefore at
the heart of Perugia’s historic center). This consisted of the SMS which the young
woman exchanged with Raffaele at the end of the Halloween evening to arrange
meeting up with her boyfriend and be accompanied home

− 1:04:58: Amanda’s mobile phone received *a call+ for 53 seconds from the number
075/9660789, located in Piazza Danti 26

− 20:18:12: Amanda receives the SMS sent to her by Patrick Lumumba, which let her
off from having to go to work at the ‚Le Chic‛ pub on the evening of 1 November.
At the time of reception the phone connected to the cell on Via dell’Aquila 5-Torre
dell’Acquedotto sector 3, whose signal does not reach Raffaele Sollecito’s house. The
young woman was therefore far [i.e. absent] from Corso Garibaldi 30 when the SMS
reached her, as she was walking in an area which was shown to be served by the Via
dell’Aquila 5-Torre dell’Acquedotto sector 3 cell. This point of her route could
correspond to Via U. Rocchi, to Piazza Cavallotti, to Piazza IV Novembre, bearing in
mind that Lumumba’s pub is located in Via Alessi, and that Amanda Knox would
have had to travel along the above-mentioned roads and the piazza in order to reach
the pub

− 20.35.48 Amanda sent an SMS in reply to Patrick, at No. 338-7195723; the message
was sent when the young woman’s mobile phone was in Corso Garibaldi 30 or in the
immediate neighbourhood. The cell used, in fact, was that of Via Berardi sector 7

− no other [use] was shown for the day of 1.11.07, noting that Amanda declared
during hearings that she had switched her mobile phone off once she had returned

322
to Raffaele’s house, since she was more than happy she did not have to go to work
and could spend the evening with her boyfriend.

The day of 2.11.07

− 12:07:12 (duration of 16 seconds) Amanda calls the English phone number


00447841131571 belonging to Meredith Kercher. The mobile phone connects to the
cell at [346] Via dell’Aquila 5-Torre dell’Acquedotto sector 9 (the signal from this cell
is picked up at Sollecito’s house)

− 12.08.44 (lasted 68 seconds) Amanda calls Romanelli Filomena on number 347-


1073006; the mobile phone connects to the Via dell’Aquila 5-Torre dell’Acquedotto
sector 3 cell (which covers Sollecito’s house)

− 12:11:02 (3 seconds) the Vodafone number 348-4673711 belonging to Meredith (this


is the one [i.e. SIM card] registered to Romanelli Filomena) is called and its
answering service is activated (cell used: Via dell’Aquila 5-Torre dell’Acquedotto
sector3)

− 12:11:54 (4 seconds): another call is made towards Meredith’s English mobile


phone number (the cell used is the one in Via dell’Aquila 5-Torre dell’Acquedotto
sector 3, thus compatible with Sollecito’s house)

− 12:12:35 (lasting 36 seconds) Romanelli Filomena calls Amanda Knox (No. 348-
4673590); Amanda receives the call connecting to the cell on Via dell’Aquila 5-Torre
dell’Acquedotto sector 3 (still at Raffaele’s house)

− 12:20:44 (lasting 65 seconds) Romanelli F. calls Amanda, who receives the call
connecting to the cell in Via dell’Aquila 5-Torre dell’Acquedotto sector 9 (good for
Corso Garibaldi 30)

− 12:34:56 (48 seconds): Filomena calls Amanda who receives it from the cottage on
Via della Pergola 7 (the cell used is that on Piazza Lupattelli sector 7. As mentioned,
Raffaele also used the same cell when he called the service centre at 12:35 hours to
recharge [the credit of] his mobile phone)

− 12:47:23 (duration of 88 seconds): Amanda calls the American (USA) number


00120069326457, using the cell on Piazza Lupatetlli sector 7; the phone call takes
place prior to the one which, at 12.51.40, Raffaele Sollecito will make to ‚112‛,
connecting to the cell on Via dell’Aquila 5-Torre dell’Acquedotto sector 1, which
gives coverage to Via della Pergola 7)

323
− 13:24:18 (duration of 162 seconds): Amanda calls the same American number
which corresponds to the home of her mother, Mrs Edda Mellas, using the same cell.
It is obvious that the young woman is inside the cottage, where by this point, several
minutes earlier, the Postal Police had shown up, [347] represented by Inspector
Battistelli and Assistant Marzi, who were engaged in the task of tracking down
Filomena Romanelli, who was the owner of the Vodafone phonecard contained in
the mobile phone found earlier in the garden of the villa on Via Sperandio

− 13:27:32 (duration of 26 seconds): Amanda calls the American number


0012069319350, still using the cell at Piazza Lupattelli sector 7.

− 13:29:00 (duration of 296 seconds) Amanda receives [a call] from No. 075/54247561
(Piazza Lupattelli sector 7 cell)

− 13:58:33 (1 second): this is an attempted call to her mother’s number

− 13:50:06 (350 seconds): Amanda calls the American number 0012069319350 by


using the Piazza Lupattelli sector 7 cell

− 14:46:14 (102 seconds) Amanda receives a call from the German number
494154794034, most likely belonging to her aunt Doroty Craft

− 15:31:51 (1 second): Amanda receives an SMS sent from the number 389/1531078; at
this point the cell being used is the one on Via Cappuccinelli 5/A sector 2, where the
Questura [police headquarters] is located

In the hours that followed the [mobile phone record] printouts show that the
answering service of Amanda’s number 348-4673590 was activated due to a lack of
signal coverage.

Finally, the analyses of the [phone record] printouts highlight that the first phone
call made by Amanda on the day of 2 November was to Meredith Kercher’s English
number.

The American student called her English flatmate even before contacting Romanelli
Filomena to whom she intended to express, as she testified in court, her fears about
the strange things she had seen in the cottage, which she had returned to at about 11
o’clock in order to shower in preparation for the excursion to Gubbio which she and
Raffaele had planned.

It is strange that Amanda did not say a word to Filomena about the phone call to
their flatmate, when the call, not having been answered, would normally have

324
caused anxiety and posed some questions as to why Meredith did not answer the
phone at such an advanced hour of the day.

In the opinion of the Court of Assizes, the call to Meredith’s phone was the first
indispensible step before putting the [348] planned staging into action. The lack of a
reply, since the poor girl was obviously already dead, gave a reason for reassurance
about the fact that the young woman’s phone had not somehow been retrieved,
[and] was therefore safe in the spot where it had been thrown, which, according to
the expectations [in the minds] of the murderers was a precipice or some other
inaccessible spot, rather than in the garden of a villa located barely outside the city,
where the vegetation concealed it from view.

325
THE PHONE TRAFFIC OF MEREDITH KERCHER’S MOBILE PHONES
AND THE MEMORY OF MEREDITH KERCHER’S ENGLISH MOBILE
PHONE

For the day of 31.10.07 it was shown that Meredith’s mobile phone with service
provider Vodafone 348-4673711 sent an SMS at 18:27:50 hours using the cell at
Piazza Lupattelli sector 7. (this signal is received in Via della Pergola 7.)

The same number received an SMS at 18:29:05 hours (this exchange of messages took
place with the number 388-8921724) connecting to the same cell as mentioned above.

For the day of 2.11.07, when Meredith was already dead, the traffic registered for the
Vodafone number was shown to be the following:

− 12:11:02 (duration of 3 seconds): Amanda’s phone call reached the phone and was
diverted to the answering service. The Vodafone cell used by Meredith’s service
provider was situated in Strada Vicinale S. Maria della Collina sector 1.

− 13:17:10 (lasting 1 second): the cell used was located in the same place, sector 7

− 15:13:43 (5 seconds) cell not indicated.

From Inspector Latella’s examination it emerged that he had not had free access to
Meredith Kercher’s mobile phones, for which reason the investigation which had
been assigned to him had been limited, in parte qua [for this part only], to the
analyses of the [phone record] printouts of Service Providers Wind [an Italian mobile
phone company] and Vodafone relative to the two numbers in use by the English
student; the inspector had therefore not examined the memories of the two mobile
phones. The same thing happened for witness Assistant Chief Sisani Stefano.

[349] With regard to the information that a [phone record] printout can provide,
Chief Inspector Latella gave a general explanation that the [phone record] printout
records everything that generates traffic; it also records calls which do not give rise
to charges (e.g. free calls on the basis of promotional [marketing] campaigns).
Whenever there is traffic, it is therefore registered.

The printouts, with the exception of Service Provider H3G which, as previously
recalled, immediately complied with [the requirements of] the antiterrorism law -
Law 155/05 - do not register non-connected [i.e. unsuccessful] calls, with the
exception of those which are due to the roaming agreement where, for calls to
foreign numbers, [phone] traffic records are also produced.

326
Finally, the [phone record] printouts do not contain any indications whatsoever that
would allow one to determine whether a mobile phone was switched on or off; this
is, in fact, a detail which is of no interest [for the records], since it does not serve to
generate traffic.

Since the information which can be drawn from the [phone record] printouts cannot,
in itself, provide the entire range of what it is necessary to know with regard to the
use of any given mobile phone, the contents of the memory of Meredith Kercher’s
English [mobile] phone were copied to court documents.

In fact, it is established that the Postal Police acquired from this mobile phone the
complete contents of the phonebook [i.e. the list of names and numbers saved in the
phone’s memory+ (this was also done for the phone using the Vodafone SIM card)
and the data relative to its use during the late evening of 1.11.07 was extracted.

For the moment, the Wind [phone record] printout for SIM number 00447841131571
belonging to Meredith Kercher (used in the Sony Ericsson model K700i mobile
phone) showed the incoming/outgoing phone calls for the said phone in the early
afternoon of 1.11.07 (please see the chapter on ‚base transceiver stations‛, editor’s
note), all concentrated within the space of time from 14:31:43 hours until 15:55:57
hours, and all involving the cells which provide coverage to the cottage on Via della
Pergola 7.

These were the previously mentioned base transceiver stations with numbering
..25620 and ..25621 with the pylon in Piazza Lupattelli.

[350] As previously explained, the following and last [item] highlighted by the Wind
[phone record] printout concerns the traffic registered at 22.13.29 hours on 1
November 07, where the cell providing the coverage was ..30064 on Strada Vicinale
Ponte Rio Monte la Guardia, whose signal, as the on-the-spot measurements carried
out by Chief Inspector Latella prove, can be received both at the level of Meredith’s
bedroom window and in the courtyard of the cottage on Via della Pergola 7.

This is, as has been noted, the last record of telephone traffic of the day of 1.11.07
whereas, for 2.11, the first record is that of [0]0:10: 31, when it has been established as
an incontrovertible fact that Meredith’s English mobile phone was no longer in Via
della Pergola, the mobile phone having received the contact under the coverage from
Wind signal [cell] ..25622, which is incompatible with the cottage.

327
At this point in the discussion, other information should be highlighted [which was]
provided by the witnesses and consultants concerning the record reported in the
Wind [phone record] printout for 22:13:29 hours, [and] at the same time the subject
of the contents of the memory of Meredith’s English mobile phone should also be
introduced.

The documentary findings are briefly as follows.

The memory of the Sony Ericsson mobile phone showed

1. at 20.56 hours on 1.11.07, an attempted call was made towards the family number
(‚home‛) at 441737553564 referable to Meredith Kercher’s mother

2. at 21.58 hours there was an attempted call to the mobile phone’s answering service
‚voicemail 901‛

3. at 22.00 hours the number ‚08459724724‛ which, according to the phonebook of


both mobile phones, corresponds to the user ‚ABBEY‛ is dialled.

The Wind [phone record] printouts register that (but the data is absent in the mobile
phone’s memory)

4. at 22.13.29 hours a GPRS connection (to the Internet) lasting 9 seconds to the IP
address 10.205.46.41 (cf. printout). This connection took place, as has been said,
under the coverage from Wind cell ..30064 which is compatible with the cottage at
Via della Pergola 7, while the Scientific Police’s instrumentation [351] did not
register this signal in the site where the mobile phones were found (garden of the
Lana-Biscarini house in Via Sperandio 5 bis).

Now, while even the Scientific Police paid attention to the GPRS connection, having
explained what this represented, it is only in the technical investigations of the
Defence (Engineer Pellero, technical consultant for Raffaele Sollecito) that attention
is also paid to the three contacts made between 20.56 hours and 22.00 hours which
were seen in the mobile phone’s memory.

It is in fact important to point out that the timing of the three contacts corresponds to
the late evening of 1 November, a time span which is situated extremely close to (if
not actually after the event, as the defences suggest) the moment in which the
English student was killed.

The GPRS connection is the last information reported by the telephone [record]
printout for the last day on which Meredith had been seen alive, and for this

328
connection and for the two calls preceding it, Engineer Pellero provided a possible
key to their understanding.

First of all, the Internet connection occurred towards the APN [access point name]
‚wap O2 co uk‛, while Meredith’s English service provider - which is called O2 -
indicates this APN as the one to be used for sending and receiving MMSs.

Three hypotheses were elaborated with regard to this connection, which should
explain its significance.

1st hypothesis. Meredith’s English mobile phone may have received a multimedia
message (MMS) - which would be confirmed by the number of bytes received, No.
4708, and transmitted, No. 2721 - where such reception would not have called for
any manual intervention by the user. (The MMS therefore arrived automatically, but
the decision of whether to connect to the Internet to see this message was up to the
user, who could alternatively erase the MMS to avoid the cost of reading it).

2nd hypothesis. There was a connection to the Internet via WAP of a very brief
duration. And in truth, the limited quantity of data exchanged would not have
allowed the actual use of any service, given that even such a short access [352]
required in any case a human interaction. (This second hypothesis therefore cannot
disregard human interaction.)

3rd hypothesis. There was an involuntary activation of the Internet WAP access followed
by a not rapid disconnection (in total 9 seconds) which Engineer Pellero attributed to a
hand unfamiliar with the instrument, to sum up, the hand of the killer who was
struggling to end the connection.

Considering the criticism which Engineer Pellero addressed to the Police for not
having acquired the telephone traffic of the Sony Ericson mobile phone directly from
the English service provider O2 and for not having further investigated the data
contained in the mobile phone’s memory, Sollecito’s Defence were, in short, in
favour of the hypothesis according to which the few minutes when, in rapid
succession, contacts 2 and 3 and connection 4 were made, would correspond to the
crucial moment of Meredith’s end *death+. The two attempted calls would have
taken place during the moments in which the physical assault was being carried out
against the student, who evidently was tightly holding her mobile; the GPRS
connection would have happened while the murderer was in the road, by now far
from the cottage, at which time, having with him[/her] both stolen mobile phones,
the ringtone of the 22.13 MMS would have prompted the sudden decision to rid

329
him[/her]self of the two instruments [mobile phones], throwing them in the direction
of an apparent cliff (the landing spot, however, was inside the garden of a beautiful
villa) just in front of the spot where the criminal was at that moment. (A spot which
is situated inside Park S. Angelo, facing the said villa, a place which benefits from
excellent coverage from Wind cell 30064, as was shown by the appropriate
instruments used by Engineer Pellero.)

Engineer Pellero also focussed attention on the two attempted calls under 2 and 3 for
the following reasons.

The call at 21.58 hours to the answering service ‚voicemail 901‛ did not produce any
telephone traffic - to the point that it had not left any trace on the Wind [phone
record] printout - in view of the fact that the caller had hung up before the welcome
message of the answer service ended, at which point the charge for the relevant costs
would have become due.

[353] The call at 22.00 hours to the ‚Abbey‛ number, which corresponded to an
English banking institute, could not be routed because the international country
code for Britain ‚0044‛, or else the symbol ‚+‛ followed by ‚44‛, had not been
dialled. The number ‚08459724724‛ was therefore dialled (the memory attests to
this) but [the call] could not have been successful.

Now, Engineer Pellero emphasised the three situations to point out that they would
confirm an anomalous situation, if necessary supposing that the two attempted calls
at 21.56 and 22.00 hours had happened at the same time as the assault on Meredith,
with the activation of the buttons of the answering service and of the user ‚Abbey‛ -
which is memorized in the phonebook - not having been voluntary, and the GPRS
connection of 22.13.29 hours being explained in the form given under hypotheses 1
and 3 of the presentation.

But the reconstruction [of events] proposed did not persuade the Court.

Nothing compels [us], among the circumstantial evidence available, to consider that
the assault took place in the minutes between 21.58 and 22.00 of 1.11, and not rather
merely moments of relaxation during which Meredith Kercher, still alone in the
house and probably just lying on her own bed, was absent-mindedly playing with
the mobile phone in her hand.

First of all, the arrival of the MMS is a highly possible thing, as it is incontrovertible
that the message was not saved in the memory of the phone. From this it can be

330
inferred that Meredith simply deleted it without opening it, not intending to incur
the charge for the Internet connection necessary to be able to view it.

As for the call to ‚Abbey‛ destined to failure because of the absence of the British
telephone country code, it must be recalled that in the mobile phone’s phonebook
the entry ‚Abbey‛ was the first in the list; from this, as shown by experience it is
easy to argue that the number could have been dialled by chance.

The call to the answering service for listening to recorded messages was, in the end,
interrupted before incurring any costs: all this was in line with the frugal habits of
Meredith, who used the mobile phone during the [354] less expensive times and
days, as was highlighted by the reconstruction of her habits concerning the use of
the telephone.

With this, the matter of the computers and mobile phones is closed, without failing
to mention that the murderer, had he/she been interested in the mobile phones,
would have behaved in the expected way.

[The murderer] could have removed the SIM cards, which constitute an
inconvenient encumbrance, as soon as possible, keeping only the mobile phones
(alas with the related risks, which derive from the combination of the IMEI 22 code of
the individual devices with every phone card that is used subsequently); he[/she]
would not have needed to deprive him[/her]self of the Sony Ericsson only because of
the reception of the MMS ([he/she] might as well have, in that moment, removed the
SIM or else switched the mobile phone off); there would have been, in such a case,
no need whatsoever to get rid of the Motorola mobile phone with the Vodafone SIM
card, which was not a problem.

In the Court’s mind, the reason for the fear of the phones was quite different. It is
due to the need to eliminate the two devices [mobile phones] from the scene of the
crime to prevent the possibility of their being called, essentially by relatives, within
too small a time-span with respect to the [time of] death. The ringing of a mobile
phone which had been left in the room would have created the risk, in fact, of
drawing attention before time, and of greatly advancing the [time of] discovery of
Meredith’s body.

22
International Mobile Equipment Identity

331
THE SHOEPRINTS: DR RINALDI’S AND CHIEF INSPECTOR BOEMIA’S
09-APRIL-2008 REPORT

Now we come to the topic of the technical investigations entrusted to Dr Lorenzo


Rinaldi (Engineer, Principal Technical Director of the State Police, director of the
three sections which compose the Identity Division of the ERT), and to Chief
Inspector Pietro Boemia of the ERT in Rome, the aim of which was to compare the
shoe prints found and photographed during the course of the crime scene
examination by Forensics [Polizia Scientifica] at the cottage at Via della Pergola 7
between 2 and 5 November 2007, with several pairs of shoes present in the
bedrooms, respectively, of Amanda Knox and Meredith Kercher, as well as footwear
seized at the residences of Raffaele Sollecito and Rudy Guede.

[355]Responsibility for the examinations [consulenza] was entrusted to Dr Rinaldi


and Chief Inspector Boemia by the Prosecutor as of 9 January 2008.

At that time, the Prosecutor’s Office was already working with a consultant
(Ippolito-Mainieri, dated 7 November 2007) who had concluded that a particular
shoe print was attributable to the accused Sollecito. It was left by the deposit of
haematic substance and discovered in the English student’s *=Meredith’s+ room near
the body, pointing towards the door leading out of the room.

This relates to evidence item [rilievo] 5A, which will be referred to in what follows.

The purpose of the technical investigation, the first of two entrusted to Dr Rinaldi
and Chief Inspector Boemia, therefore was to ascertain, with the express request to
not proceed by scraping the soles of Raffaele Sollecito’s shoes and to follow an
absolutely repeatable operative procedure, whether or not there was a match between the
print, item 5/A, and the sole of Sollecito’s shoe.

As Dr Rinaldi and Chief Inspector Boemia noted in their report dated 9 April 2008,
entered in evidence at the conclusion of testimony on 09 May 2009, the police
technicians worked with four pieces of evidence, made up of four pairs of shoes
attributable to the three accused [=Guede, Knox and Sollecito], and the photographic
album portraits of prints isolated based on Forensic findings.

The shoes were made up of:

1. Nike ‚Air Force 1‛ model, size 9 (corresponding to 42.5 [cm]) seized at Raffaele
Sollecito’s (the left shoe was of interest)

332
2. Skechers size 7 (corresponding to 37 [cm]) belonging to Amanda Knox

3. Adidas ‚Universal‛ model, size 10 (44*cm+) taken from Rudy Guede’s house on
the 16 November 2007

4. Timberland, ‚RLLTP Camo Wheat‛ model, size 11, seized at Guede’s house on 21
November 2007

The technicians also had at their disposal the photo of the ‚Puma‛ shoes discovered
next to Meredith’s body, and thirty shoe prints in total detected in the course of
crime scene examinations.

At Guede’s house, during a search on 21 November 2007, an empty shoe box was
also found for ‚NIKE OUTBREAK 2‛ size 11 (45*cm+); with this model in mind, the
[356] Investigation Taskforce purchasing identical shoes, brand new and without
defects, given that those used by Guede have never been found and stored as
evidence.

As for the detected prints, of interest to the technical investigation were those that
Forensics labelled, in the 2-to-5 November 2007 inspections, with the letters F, G, J,
Y, I, H and with the numbers 2, 3, 5/A, 5/B, 5/C.

Attention was also focused on the prints present on the pillow-case of the pillow
found underneath Meredith’s body, corresponding to the following items: photo 104
and photo 105 of the ERT Latent Prints Evidentiary Section’s report.

Finally, Exhibit 68 was examined, constituting two prints (photo 16 letter Q)


discovered on a postcard found in Filomena Romanelli’s room, and the size 9 prints
found in Meredith’s room on a paper-like material (photos 17-21).

Lastly, at Rudy Hermann Guede’s house at 26 Via del Canerino, on 20 November


2007, prints 1/A and 2/A corresponding to photos 12 and 13 were found in the
bathroom.

Specifically, and given the interest in the above prints, known information regarding
their location is provided below:

• prints F (corresponding to Exhibit 161 of the Perugia Public Prosecutor’s Office), G


(Exhibit 162), J (Exhibit 166), I (Exhibit 163), H (Exhibit 165) were found in the living-
room of the cottage at Via della Pergola 7 (H and F were found in front of the sofa in
the living room).

333
• prints 2 (Exhibit 71) and 3 (Exhibit 73) were found in the hallway, where print 3
was positioned just in front of the doorway of Meredith Kercher’s room

• prints 5/A (Exhibit 86), 5/B (Exhibit 87, being 3 prints), 5/C (Exhibit 88, three prints)
were found in Meredith’s room near the body.

For prints 5/A, 5/B, 5/C, 3, 2 and F, it was possible to determine their orientation; the
orientation of the remaining prints G, I, J and Y was, instead, not identifiable owing
to their small size.

Prints F, G, J, Y, I, H, 2, 3, 5/A, 5/B, 5/C, a total of all 11 prints, were produced by


means of compression of the sole onto the floor.

[357] For these, and for the prints of Exhibits 104 and 105 (pillow-slip in Meredith’s
room), it was determined that they were made by the probable deposit of haematic
substances. (The photographic images attached to the report show the
corresponding colour – editor’s note.)

For the 11 shoeprints, the direction of blood flow was toward the outside of the
various parts of the sole, revealing the contours of these parts.

Given the results of the investigations, the Rinaldi-Boemia report overturned the
conclusion of the prior expert witness Ippolito. Where in the course of investigations
the shoe sole of Exhibit 5A had been attributed to the footwear of Sollecito (namely
the left shoe of the size 9 Nike ‚Air Force 1‛ model used by the accused), the new
examination concluded that there was a correspondence of the 5A print with the size
11 ‚NIKE OUTBREAK 2‛ model that was certainly worn by Rudy Guede, given that
in the Ivory Coast national’s *=Guede’s] apartment a box corresponding to said shoe
model was found.

(In fact, during the course of legal debate in Court, it emerged that, from the first
findings [rilevazioni+, it appeared to Rinaldi and Boemia that Sollecito’s shoe print
was smaller than the print left on the floor, given that the circular diameter was
equal to 33mm in place of the 36mm of Exhibit 5/A. It was thereby hypothesised that
the trace could not have been left by the Pugliese student’s *=Sollecito’s+ Nike shoes.
The investigations consequently turned towards using the results of examinations
carried out in the meantime at Guede’s house, where the examination conducted in
Via del Canerino revealed both an empty box for size 11 ‚NIKE OUTBREAK 2‛
shoes, and, on the bathroom floor, two shoe prints on the ground, made from dirt,
grease and dust. Comparing the two prints found in the bathroom with the shoe

334
model in question led Rinaldi and Boemia to the confirmation that the size 11 NIKE
OUTBREAK 2 shoes were, in fact, worn in that house [=Guede’s house+. At this
point, the investigation turned to comparing the 5/A print and a pair [358] of size 11
‚NIKE OUTBREAK 2‛ shoes purchased from an authorised Nike retailer, leading
lastly to a determination of probably identical. It was not possible to formulate a
determination of certain identity with regard to the prints in the bathroom of the
house *=Guede’s house+, *because+ this would have required gaining access to
Guede’s actual shoes, which were never located and seized as evidence. The
determination of certain identity cannot in fact be based on the mere knowledge of
the general characteristics of a shoe, it was explained; it requires knowledge of
specific characteristics arising from wear and tear of the material, abrasions,
imperfections arising from use, etc.)

The examination of Exhibits H, 2 and 3 from the corridor, as well as 5/A, 5/B and 5/C
near to Meredith Kercher’s body, showed as well that the print had been from a left
shoe, if the three fragments of Exhibit 5/C evidenced the heel of a left shoe
(specifically, it was a case of three heel contacts [with the floor] of the same left shoe).

These prints, not presenting any particular markings, were evaluated as being useful
only for negative comparisons.

At the operational level, making use of the footwear samples for testing, Nike “Air
Force 1” model size 9 (Sollecito) and Nike “OUTBEAK 2” size 11 (a shoe purchased
specifically for testing purposes [all’uopo+, corresponding as has been said to Guede’s
footwear), technicians Boemia and Rinaldi then proceeded to ink up the soles of
Sollecito’s shoes which they then pressed onto sheets of A4 paper; on the Nike
OUTBREAK 2 size 11 brand obtained from an official retailer, an adhesive base
support was applied.

The comparison led therefore to establishing that print 5/A (photo 9 of the attached
set) was not produced by Sollecito’s size 9 Nike ‚Air Force 1‛ model shoe, given that
the print did not correspond to the shoe of the current accused [=Sollecito] in its
general shape and size features.

The outcome of the first Rinaldi-Boemia report, taking into account that the
comparison with Guede’s size 11 Nike ‚OUTBREAK 2‛ shoes was [359] extended to
all of the aforementioned evidence (prints left by the probable deposit of haematic
substance), leads to the following results:

335
• for the print Exhibit 1/A (bathroom in Guede’s house, relating to the heel of the left
shoe, photo 12), the conclusion was reached of probable identity with the footwear
owned by the accused separately tried [=Guede]

• a similar response for the print Exhibit 2/A (Guede’s bathroom, photo 13: heel of
left shoe)

• Exhibits F and H (cottage living room), 2 and 3 (hallway): the technicians arrived
at a conclusion of probable identity between said Exhibits and the left shoe of
Guede’s Nike ‚OUTBREAK 2‛ size 11.

• Exhibits 5/A, 5/B, 5/C (near Meredith’s body; the three prints under 5/C are very
close to the outer edge of Meredith’s jeans which are visible under the duvet
covering the body): analogous conclusion of probable identity with the left shoe of
the above-mentioned [=Guede]

• photo 104 of the report from the Latent Prints Evidence Section (Meredith’s
pillow): conclusion of probable identity with the bottom of the right size 11 Nike
‚OUTBREAK 2‛ shoe (there is full compatibility of the heels’ *tacchetti] traces left
behind with those of the new shoe bought from the official Nike retailer, cf. Rinaldi
testimony)

• photo 105 from the Latent Prints Evidence Section (Meredith’s pillow): this print
was not produced by any of the shoes tested. It is, in the absence of any distinguishing
features, useful solely for negative comparisons rather than for a determination of
identity; with regard to this print, the technicians reported that it was made by the
deposit of haematic substance; the outer edge of the shoe is distinctly visible; nine
lightly arced elements are discernable, with a width of 2.6[mm] 3.5mm apart. The
print measures approximately 39mm [wide] at the heel, and 46mm at the upper sole,
corresponding to the ball of the foot. The technicians hypothesised that the print had
been made by the heel and the central part of the sole of a left shoe. Based on the
small size of the heel and the reduced dimensions [overall], it was held to be a
woman’s shoe print, of a size between 36 and 38. In any case, it is a shoe much
smaller than that attributed to Rudy Hermann Guede

[360]

• Exhibit Q (Romanelli’s room): two prints left by the superimposition of dust on a


postcard were found. Print number 1, left by a right shoe and the sole useful for
negative comparisons, was not produced by any of the shoes tested

336
• photo 17/21 (Meredith Kercher’s room) prints on paper-like material: these were
not produced by the shoes tested.

THE PRINT ON THE MAT IN THE SMALL BATHROOM, THE PRINT (IN)
PHOTO 105, THE PRINTS HIGHLIGHTED BY LUMINOL: DR RINALDI
AND CHIEF INSPECTOR BOEMIA’S 31 MAY 2008 REPORT:

On 12 May 2008, the Public Prosecutor charged Dr Rinaldi and Chief Inspector
Boemia with a second consultancy task.

The technicians were asked to: (1) compare the shoeprints found during the crime
scene inspection – in particular, trace 105 on Meredith’s pillow-slip, attributed to the
presumed print of a woman’s left shoe – with the seized shoes; (2) compare the
footprints taken from those being investigated with the foot print found on the
bathmat in the so-called small bathroom of the Via della Pergola cottage; (3) compare
the footprints taken from those being investigated with the prints revealed by means
of Luminol; (4) ascertain the compatibility or non-compatibility of the prints found in the
cottage with those taken during physical examination of the persons under investigation.

For their consultancy activities, as the Public Prosecutor’s technicians explained,


Rinaldi and Boemia had in their possession numerous pairs of shoes which had been
found and seized, on the date of 23.04.08, respectively at Via della Pergola 7 and at
Raffaele Sollecito’s house.

They thus had 12 pairs of shoes belonging to Meredith Kercher, 4 brands [of shoes]
from Amanda Knox (the pair of ‚free climbing‛ Boreal-brand were found, the left
one in a room, the right one in the suitcase in the hall), and 6 pairs seized from
Sollecito’s, making for a total of 22 pairs of shoes.

Furthermore, they possessed three footprints taken from the accused on the date
12.05.08, during the course of a physical examination, and of the prints, already
examined [361] during the course of the preceding technical investigation, made up
of: photo 14, corresponding to Exhibit 105 on Meredith’s pillow-case; photo 16
(postcard from Romanelli’s room); photos 17-21 (nine prints on paper-like material
in Meredith’s room).

New traces, being taken into consideration for the first time, were:

337
– the footprint found on the bathmat in the little bathroom during the course of the
2-5 November 2007 crime scene inspection

– 4 photos of prints revealed by means of Luminol (found by Forensics on 18/12/07).

Of these, traces 1, 2 and 7 corresponded to three footprints, while trace 6


[corresponded] to a shoe print.

Specifically,

 trace 1 was a footprint, revealed by Luminol inside Amanda’s bedroom


 trace 2 was made up of two footprints present in the hallway facing the exit
 trace 6 (hallway) a shoe print pointing towards the exit, it did not result in
being useful for comparisons
 trace 7 (hallway) a footprint orientated towards the entrance into Meredith’s
room

These prints were compared with those prints taken from the three accused during
the course of a physical examination on 12.05.08.

All the Luminol-positive prints, as well as the bathmat print, were of the right foot.
And so, only the right foot print of each of the accused was taken.

The foot prints were taken using inking technology, with printer’s ink, which is
absolutely widespread in the literature and practical, as Dr Rinaldi noted during the
legal debate, and a successive acquisition on a paper base placed on a flat surface.

THE MAT: FINDING 9F, LETTER A

[362] The technicians first checked the compatibility of size and morphology
between the print on the mat and the top part of Raffaele Sollecito’s sole-print.

Various prints on the mat were made by deposits of haematic substance, there where
on the exhibit [i.e. the mat] various traces of blood can be seen (cf. table 7 of the
attachment relative to the ‚mat‛).

Among these, the trace sub lett. A (table 8) can be seen clearly: this is a print of a bare
right foot.

338
In this [print] the big toe, the metatarsus and a part of the plantar arch are clearly
visible, whereas the heel is missing completely (this is the print located on the
bottom right of the mat, when viewed by someone entering the bathroom).

The measurements quoted in the report highlight:

• for the big toe: 33mm width and 39 length (sheet 11)

• for the metatarsus: 99mm width and 50 length (sheet 11 of the photographic
attachment, on page 5649)

giving the print on the mat a clear definition of the general characteristics of shape
and size (with regard to the morphological aspects).

Due to the lack of minutiae found on the friction ridges *‚epidermal ridges‛+, these
latter being highly differentiating elements, the technicians decided that the print on
the mat was useful for negative comparisons but not for positive ones; in this case, in
the same manner as for print 5/A and for numerous others, Dr Rinaldi and Chief
Inspector Boemia arrived at an opinion of probable identity, as will be explained.

Using Raffaele Sollecito’s sole-print where the big toe measures 3cm in width and
37mm in length - table 5651 - (the width of the outline of blood measures, as has
been said, 3cm and 30mm) one element immediately came to the technicians’
attention.

One characteristic of the defendant’s sole print was indeed to be found in the print
on the mat: this was the relevant size in width of Sollecito’s big toe with respect to
the measurements belonging to the co-defendants Guede (whose big toe measures
23mm in width, with a significant difference of 7mm, [363] and 43mm in height; cf.
table 5653) and Knox (big toe: width 22mm and height 41.8mm; table 5655).

Furthermore, Sollecito’s metatarsus is 99 mm wide (table 5651), where [the one] on


the mat has a matching width of 98-99mm (table 18, or 99mm on table 19).

The analyses of the size of the big toe, Sollecito’s being absolutely the widest, led in
itself to the conclusion of compatibility between the print on the mat and the right
foot of the defendant, while the comparison between the sole-print of Guede and
that of Sollecito also demonstrated the different size of the plantar arch, with
Guede’s narrower one attesting to the fact that the Ivory-Coast national has an
altogether narrower foot in comparison to Raffaele Sollecito’s foot.

339
The sole-prints of the two defendants in question therefore present considerable
differences in terms of: 1) the big toe; 2) the width of the metatarsus; 3) the width of
the plantar arch; 4) finally, the width of the heel (attention to the heel will become
relevant in relation to the examination of the print highlighted by Luminol, whereas
the heel cannot be used in the examination of the print on the mat since, as has been
said, the heel is not present).

Given that the analyses of the size of Sollecito’s big toe had already led the
technicians to conclude that there was compatibility between print ‚A‛ on the mat
and the defendant’s right foot, Dr Rinaldi and Chief Inspector Boemia now carried
out an in-depth metrical analysis of the sizes, and as a result their level of certainty
increased with regard to this kind of identification.

The method used was that of overlaying each print with a grid measured off in
centimetres, the so-called ‚Grid of L.M. Robbins‛ (tables 16-17 all. cit. [previously
cited]), positioning the grid so that the vertical axis lined up with the right-hand
outline of the foot, while the horizontal axis was aligned with the tip of the big toe
(table 16. The procedure, in this case was carried out in relation to the sole-print of
Sollecito’s right foot; the grid marked off in centimetres was then also used to
measure the sole-prints of Amanda Knox and of Rudy Guede and, finally, to
measure the print on the mat which was used as the point of comparison).

[364] The procedure in question, it was explained, allows a homogeneous alignment


of the points of comparison, which is then used as a basis for analyses of the outline
containing highlights of the analogies (points in green), of the differences (in red)
and lastly of the ‚bumps‛ *gobbe] in the outline, the latter protuberances make a print
highly individual when considered to be relevant from a morphological point of
view.

On the basis of the points of reference taken, the technicians of the ERT23 therefore
made the measurements (cf. table 18 for the similarity between Sollecito’s sole print
and the print on the mat; table 19 for the differences, highlighting the analogies
between the two points of comparison.

The results led to the finding according to which that while Sollecito’s plantar arch is
40mm wide, the plantar arch of the print on the mat is 39mm [wide], measurement
which is also found in Guede’s plantar arch (table 24), however the latter’s foot (table

23
Esperti Ricerca Tracce, the trace-finding experts

340
25: the differences) presents differences which are irreconcilable with respect to the
print on the mat, as shown analytically in table 25.

(e.g., the distance between points 1-2 on Guede’s big toe, table 23, is 20mm against
the 28mm on the equivalent point of the print on the mat; the metrical differences are
highlighted with respect to points 3-4, # Guede’s ‚bumps‛ are aligned differently
with respect to those of the print on the mat, where table 28 shows a distance of
8mm which identically portrays the ‚bumps‛ on Sollecito’s foot and those of the
print on the mat; in Guede’s foot, on the contrary, the equivalent distance is 12mm
compared to the 8mm of footprint ‚A‛ on the mat, cf. table 28 and for points 5-6-7
which correspond to the left-side outline of the foot; the left-hand outline of
Sollecito’s right sole-print is characterised by profound similarities with the print on
the mat, as is shown in table 18. In this case the measurements were seen to be fully
overlayable, showing identical values of 99mm, 92mm and 75mm which
corresponded to the width of the metatarsus measured at different points; otherwise
there is *also+ the value of 93mm of Sollecito’s foot, which is very close to the value
of 92mm at the corresponding part of the print on the mat, these measurements
concerning the distance between the top of the big toe and a certain green point at the
beginning [365] of the plantar arch, [this] point being used as a fixed end-point and
resulting in a vertical measurement of 93mm and a horizontal one of 75mm, as
shown in table 18. Finally, the differences in Guede’s sole-print with respect to the
print on the mat can also be seen with reference to points 8-9-10 which define the
plantar arch, which are shown for Guede, in table 25, as measurements of 37mm and
36mm in comparison to the equivalent 40mm and 43mm on the mat, and against the
equivalent 40mm and 42mm belonging to Sollecito’s sole-print, in table 18).

With regard to the non-correspondence in absolute terms of measurements in the


two categories of footprint (the sole-print on the one hand, and that on the mat, on
the other), Dr Rinaldi highlighted (page 42 transcript) that, in general terms, one
would never find oneself in the presence of two identical footprints, the one
acquired with typographical ink and the other left through the deposit of an
haematic substance on the mat, and this was because the second was left where blood
was present. (The quantity of blood therefore influences the extension of the print.)

With regard to the point of departure of the investigation, the fundamental


parameter which, according to technicians Rinaldi and Boemia, distinguishes
Sollecito’s right foot from Guede’s, is determined by the width of the big toe and the
shape of the metatarsus, to which are added further differences found in the plantar
arch, in the f the heel, in the left-side outline of the foot (in table 29, for example, it is

341
shown that, once the left-hand outline of the print on the mat has been traced, when
this outline is overlaid on those of the sole-prints of Guede and of Sollecito
respectively, an outcome is obtained in which, for Guede’s foot, the left-hand outline
drawn overlaps one part of the phalanges of the big toe; in the case of Raffaele Sollecito,
on the contrary, this does not occur, and in fact the outlines of the two prints match
perfectly) and finally, with regard to the measurement of the bumps (12mm Guede;
8mm Sollecito), as demonstrated by tables 27 and 28 of the report.

The above-mentioned differences led the technicians to conclude that there was
compatibility of imprint “A” on the mat with regard to the general characteristics of shape
and size with Raffaele Sollecito’s right foot, and this outcome allowed them to express of
an opinion of probable identity; at the same time they arrived at a finding of non-
[366] compatibility of print ‚A‛ with Rudy Hermann Guede’s right foot (page 44
transcripts).

THE PRINT (IN) PHOTO 105 (MEREDITH’S PILLOW-CASE)

According to the technical evaluation by Dr. Rinaldi and Chief Inspector Boemia,
none of the seized shoes under examination and used for comparative purposes
were able to recreate the print on the pillow case.

Like the previous ones, this print, without special markings, is considered useful
only for negative comparisons. The [technical evaluation] indicates that the print
was imprinted by a deposit of haematic substance and the outer contour of the shoe
is well defined along with nine slightly arched elements with a thickness of 2.6 mm,
at a distance of some 3.5 mm from each other. Lastly, the evaluation provides the
measurement of the print which is about 39 mm on the heel side and 46 mm at the
top, surely corresponding to the plantar arch.

As had been anticipated, technicians of the Polizia Scientifica hypothesise that the
print was made by the heel and the middle part of the sole of a left shoe. Because
of the reduced width of the heel and its small size it is considered to be a mark from
a women's shoe, between size 36 and 38.

Given the above, we recognize that, in the hearing of 9.May.2009, Chief Inspector
Pietro Boemia, whose testimony was focused on the evaluation of the shoeprint in
question, said that an investigation was conducted among merchants and shoe
manufacturers in order to verify whether a woman’s shoe, with sole measurements

342
like those taken from the print in photo 105, were on the market (not sports shoes
but walking shoes, given that in sports shoes the heel is normally much wider in
order to comfortably accommodate one’s posture).

The photograph, according to the proffered explanation, presented a portion of the


heel on the left, where one could see the circle at the centre; the total length was
measured as 77mm by 46mm wide, comprising 9 distinguishable arcs.

[367] Chief Inspector Boemia’s investigation of merchants and shoe manufacturers


led him to identify a woman’s shoe brand, ASICS, on which he then focussed his
attention in consideration of the specific form of the sole, whose width was equal to
40mm, which contained a circle just next to the hind part of the heel.

Inspector Boemia reiterated during the course of his deposition that the photo 105
print could not have corresponded to that left behind by a man’s shoe, taking into
account the different range in width one would expect from a man’s shoe, measuring
around 60mm in width.

The purpose of the investigation of merchants and shoe manufacturers was not to
propose the ASICS as the shoe that produced the print in question; the objective,
more modestly, was simply to indicate how the dimensions of the print (held to be
sufficiently complete and not merely partial) were in themselves comparable to
women’s shoes available on the market, with the consequence of providing support
for the hypothesis of two types of footwear at the murder scene, above all Rudy
Guede’s indisputably identified shoe, and, on the other hand, a woman’s shoe,
whose dimensions, being indicated as between size 36 and size 38, are compatible
with Amanda Knox’s shoe size, which is size 37.

With respect to Boemia's professional opinion, Professor Vinci, who is Raffaele


Sollecito's technical consultant and who performed an in-depth study of the print in
photo 105 as well as other studies on different matters, holds a contrary opinion.

Vinci’s report arrived at a completely different conclusion from that of Forensics.


Comparing the sole of the right shoe of Guede’s Nike Outbreak model 2s with the
enlargement of the 105 print found on Meredith’s pillow (cf. tables of the technical
report), the expert witness reconciles imprint 105 with the pattern on the sole of
Guede’s right shoe.

The print would therefore have been left by the co-accused’s *=Rudy’s+ second shod
foot, namely the right one [shoe] (the arc-like elements being indicated as

343
corresponding to the homologous elements of the pattern on the anterior part of the
right shoe, [368] in effect abandoning the methodical approach of Forensics, who
want to attribute the print [as being] the part [of the foot] positioned near the heel
rather than to that [part from] the forefoot) , with the result of excluding from the
murder scene the presence of a co-participant who necessarily would have worn a
small-size shoe, in considering the dimensions of print 105 as fully complete.

The Court, on this point, takes notice of the opposing conclusions without
expressing a specific opinion. It cannot in fact be excluded that Guede alone tread on
the cushion lying on the floor, to the exclusion of Knox (the smaller dimensions of
the right foot can be explained by the characteristics of the underlying surface, the
pillow, having a non-rigid structure and where the material of the pillow-slip may
have been not perfectly straightened out, but, on the contrary, soft and as such
determining the curvature), to whom [=Knox], actually, one [must] attribute moving
herself about the murder scene essentially in bare feet, as shown in the part of the
report that examines the genetic investigations that were done on certain biological
traces and the positive Luminol prints.

THE PRINTS HIGHLIGHTED BY LUMINOL

During the second inspection carried out in the cottage on Via della Pergola 7 by the
Forensic police of the ERT on 18.12.07, at the end of the evidence-gathering which
was documented in real time through video recordings and through photographs
carried out by the experts in that branch (cf. statements of Deputy Commissioner
Maurizio Arnone and Chief Inspector Claudio Ippolito), the final operation carried
out that day was to spray Luminol on certain areas of the floor.

This activity concerned some of rooms of the cottage: the corridor and the kitchen-
living room, the bedrooms of Amanda Knox and Filomena Romanelli, and the large
bathroom.

The job of highlighting the prints had, on the other hand, been carried out in the
course of the first inspection, particularly during the days of 3 and 4 November 07,
when the, as it is known [c.d.], biological evidence collection phase, (conducted by
Dr. Stefanoni), had, in her turn, [369] preceded every other technical investigation,
having begun the very evening of 2.11.07 after the ERT specialists arrived from
Rome.

344
When the Luminol was sprayed on 18.12.07, Chief Inspector Ippolito was in charge
of the photographic documentation of what might be revealed: it was his task,
therefore, to photograph any fluorescence that might appear.

To take the photos, it was necessary beforehand to ensure complete darkness in the
rooms, so all the lights of the apartment were switched off. This having been done,
what the Luminol exposed was consistent with bare feet (but also a shoe print),
foot[prints] which Chief Inspector Ippolito recalled as having been present both in
the corridor/living room as well as in Amanda Knox’s room, excluding the rooms
that were subsequently sprayed with Luminol.

Chief Inspector Ippolito thus took photos of the areas where the Luminol had given
results, [although] the choice of where to photograph did not depend on him.

The photos were then taken using a tripod, in order to ensure a stable support for
the camera.

During the shots, fluorescent measuring tapes were used (normal measuring tapes
were used when the photos taken in natural light were shot, it was explained), so
that the metric reference could be used for the subsequent measuring of the
photographed prints.

So, although Chief Inspector Ippolito is responsible for the photographic


documentation showing the prints on the floor highlighted by Luminol, the
subsequent technical investigation of measuring these prints and comparing them
with the sole-prints of the three defendants was carried out by Dr Rinaldi and by
Chief Inspector Boemia, having been the subject of the consultancy task which the
Public Prosecutor assigned, together with other in-depth examinations - concerning
the prints on the mat and the presumed woman’s shoeprint, print 105 - on 12.05.08.

Coming, therefore, to the Rinandi-Boemia report, Dr Rinaldi highlighted, during the


course of his statement, that the Luminol-positive prints, unlike the print on the mat
which, having had the measuring strip placed next to it (cf. photo 1 on page 5646),
was photographed in visible [370] light, the second category of prints was
characterised, as already mentioned, by the absence of the measuring reference,
since the shots had been taken in complete darkness.

Accordingly, it was necessary to make use of some of the technical findings of the
forensics team in order to obtain a definite metric reference.

345
As a consequence, use was made of photographic finding 5, which page 3 of the
report on ‚perspective correction‛ used for comparison with photographic finding 2
(the photographic findings under discussion are all from 18.12.07, and portray the
same point on the floor under different lighting conditions, being light in
photographic finding 5 and dark in photographic finding 2 which shows the
fluorescence highlighted by the Luminol; photographic finding 5, therefore, uses the
aforementioned measuring tape placed on the floor).

Photographic finding 5 contained the definitive metric reference; for this reason it
allowed calibration of the print highlighted with Luminol.

Photographic finding 5 thus allowed the floor-tile to be measured: the first


measurement obtained was 169.3 mm (height) x 336 mm (base) which a further
study carried out in view of the hearing on 09.05.09 (summarized in the report on
‚perspective correction‛) resulted in a re-evaluation of the height of the floor-tile,
which was reduced to 162mm.

With regard to the perspective correction which was worked out by the technicians,
on the technicians’ own initiative *motu proprio], before the hearing on 09.05.09 Dr
Rinaldi explained that a way of thinking had prevailed according to which the
photos of the Luminol-positive findings had certainly undergone some reduction
with respect to the real dimension, in that the images were not taken in from a
position perpendicular to the floor. The shots had therefore not been taken with the
operator in a 90° position with respect to the floor.

The images consequently displayed characteristics due to perspective, whereas the


correction of the perspective allowed the incorrect trapezoidal shape of the tile to be
rectified to its own rectangular shape, ultimately using the metric references
supplied by the forensics team, which measured the floor-tiles as 162mm in height
and 336mm along the base. The result of the perspective correction was to straighten
the lines, obtaining [371] thereby a lengthening of some measurements. (Example:
the print in Luminol-positive finding 2 was ultimately attributed a length of 244mm,
contrary to the 227mm attributed by the previous measurement in which the
perspective correction had been applied only to the height of the tile, without
changing the base of 336mm).

The Luminol-positive findings which were the subject of technical study were, as
previously mentioned:

346
• finding 1 present in the bedroom of Amanda Knox; this is the print of right foot,
most likely imprinted in a deposit of haematic substance, in which are clearly visible
(cf. attached [to the report], following perspective correction): the big toe or 1st toe
(which measures 22mm in width); the 3rd toe or middle toe (17mm in length); the
metatarsus (80mm wide); a portion of the plantar arch. This finding was considered
useful for negative comparisons and the comparison led the technicians to express an
opinion of compatibility with Amanda Knox’s right foot

• finding 2, present in the corridor in the direction of [facing] the exit. Finding 2
corresponds to the print of a right foot, most likely imprinted in a deposit of haematic
substance, useful for negative comparison. The print next to it, made by a left foot,
also facing the exit, was not considered useful for any comparison since it does not
clearly present general characteristics. The dimensions of this print of a right foot (cf.
page 16 of the attached [to the report] which corrects the perspective), after having
positioned the Robbins grid [ruled grid in centimetres], are: big toe 28mm wide;
metatarsus 95mm wide and 55 long; heel 58mm wide, with a total length of the
luminal-positive print of 245mm, where the length of Raffaele Sollecito’s right sole-
print is equal to 244mm (with the big toe being 30mm wide, the width of the
metatarsus, taken from the base to the green dots positioned at the end of the right
and left outlines, being 96mm, with height 57mm – cf. table 16 cited - and width of
the heel of 57mm)

• finding 6, print of shoe present in corridor, pointing towards the exit. In the absence
of the measurement reference necessary for the correct sizing this print was not
considered to be useful for any comparison [purposes]

[372]

• finding 7: this is the print of a foot most likely imprinted in a deposit of haematic
substance, since the Luminol was positive; it was found in the corridor in front of the
door to Meredith Kercher’s room, and was pointed towards the entrance. It is considered
useful for negative comparisons. The dimensions of the Luminol-positive print
(photo 51, main album) show 22.4mm width for the big toe; 78mm width for the
metatarsus; 43mm width of the heel, compared to the corresponding measurements
from Amanda Knox’s sole-print (cf. photo 44 on page 5669, main album) at: 22mm
with regard to the width of the big toe; 76.7mm the width of the metatarsus; 43mm
the width of the heel.

347
Moving to the conclusions on the matter, the Rinaldi-Boemia consultancy (the
Luminol-positive prints considered usable had the outlines of the foot absolutely
defined, explained Dr. Rinaldi) expressed itself as being:

• in favour of the compatibility of the prints in findings 1 (inside Amanda’s room)


and 7 (corridor just outside Meredith Kercher’s room) with the right foot of
Amanda Knox

• in favour of the compatibility of the print in finding 2 (the only useable one of the
two parallel prints, the one on the right) with the right foot of Raffaele Sollecito.

Dr Rinaldi pointed out the differentiating characteristics of Luminol-positive finding


2 with respect to the right foot of Rudy Guede, since, in the sole-print of the latter,
(cf. page 19 of the report on the correction of perspective) one can notice:

− a different length of the foot (which measures 247mm, compared to the 245mm of
finding 2, Sollecito’s foot being 244mm long)

− the lesser width of the heel (51mm for Guede’s foot, against the 58mm of the
finding and the 57mm of Sollecito’s foot)

− the lesser width of the big toe (which in Guede measures 23mm, against the 28mm
of finding 2 and the 30mm of the big toe of the co-defendant)

− the difference in the metatarsus, which for Guede has a width of 93mm against the
95mm of finding 2 and the 96mm of Sollecito (table 16).

The differentiating factor in the sole prints of the two defendants lies, as was pointed
out with regard to the print on the mat, in the specific width [373] of Sollecito’s big
toe and metatarsus, distinctive characteristics which were identified in the Luminol-
positive prints of finding 2 and which are lacking, in an obvious manner, in Rudy
Guede’s sole-print, *which is+ more tapered, narrower and longer than the other’s
[sole-print].

In Dr Rinaldi’s explanation, it was evident that only the general characteristics of


shape and size (concerning the morphology of the foot) of the prints in consideration
- Luminol-positive and [on the] mat - are known, lacking the minutiae [minute
details] present on the friction ridges [also known as epidermal ridges], which
would have furnished more highly differentiating information.

The general characteristics referred to above may undoubtedly refer to any number
of people, requiring in each case the identification, among the various quisque de

348
populo24, those persons who present the same combination of values [measurements]
and who have, therefore, at the same time, with respect to finding 2, a 99mm-wide
metatarsus, a big toe with a width of 30mm and a heel of 57-58mm.

Such metric values [measurements], as has been said, are present in Raffaele
Sollecito’s right sole-print, but are on the contrary lacking in the right feet of both
Rudy Hermann Guede and of Amanda Knox.

Lastly, the evidence available (width of the big toe, shape of the bumps, the outer
profile much more defined with respect to the heel) constitute measurement and
morphological pointers which are widely used in scientific literature, which declares
that they [these pointers] have, in themselves, a very great value in differentiating.

In this particular case, they lead to an opinion of probable identity with one subject
(Sollecito with respect to trace 2, Amanda Knox with respect to traces 1 and 7) and to
the demonstrated exclusion of the other two25.

THE CONSULTANCY OF PROFESSOR FRANCESCO VINCI, TECHNICAL


CONSULTANT FOR SOLLECITO'S DEFENCE

Professor Dr F. Vinci, Associate Professor of Forensic Medicine at the University of


Bari, and director of the University Centre for Ballistic Forensics of the same
university, is the author of various reports relevant to this trial.

[374] On December 18, 2007, Professor Vinci participated, in his capacity as technical
consultant for Sollecito, in the inspection of the cottage at Via della Pergola 7, and on
January 15, 2008 he wrote the first of several technical reports, whose object was a
discussion of the shoe-sole print "5 A" marked in haematic substance near the body
of Meredith Kercher.

An account of this print was given in regard to the consultancy entrusted to Dr


Rinaldi and to chief inspector Boemia of the ERT of Rome, it being noted that from
April 2008, it was definitively accepted that the shoe-print "5A" should be attributed
to the Nike Outbreak 2 footwear used by Rudy Hermann Guede, rather than to the
sole of the Air Force 1 Low shoes worn by Raffaele Sollecito.

24
general masses/man-on-the-street
25
in terms of each print matching only one person‟s feet, and not the feet of the other two

349
Before arriving at this point, the process of identification of the shoeprint followed,
in any case, a route marked by conflicting technical views and opinions.

As Professor Vinci recalled in the opening words [incipit] of his report, the first to
make a statement on the shoeprint were the Forensics agents from the State Police
Commissariat in Foligno, officiated by the Forensics Provincial Office of the Perugia
Police Headquarters, on November 6, 2007.

The very first indications thus came from the police of Foligno, who asserted as a
premise the necessity of bearing in mind that in the absence of characteristics and
details usable for the purpose of comparison, the shoeprint in question could not
yield a "judgement of identity" but only of "probable or possible identity". According to
these indications, taking into account the examination of the shape and the
dimensions, it was held to be possible that "the sequestered shoes of Sollecito (could
have) produced the shoeprint A".

The next technical report, from the Scientific Police in Rome (consultancy of Ippolito-
Mainieri of November 11, 2007), further worsened the position of Raffaele Sollecito,
since at the beginning of April 2008, when the Court of Cassation came to a decision
in the matter of de libertate 26
(judgment of April 1, 2008, on appeal against the
rejection order of the Re-examining Tribunal of Perugia), the mass of serious
indications of guilt [also] included the technical judgement that attributed the
shoeprint "5A" to the shoe of the student from Puglia.

[375] It was in fact held that, on the basis of "comparisons made by


superimposition/combination, the traces under examination marked by the letter 'A' would
correspond to the design (model and size) of the sole of the 'Nike' brand shoe which was the
object of these comparisons".

But already at that time, as Professor Vinci recounts in his report of January 15, 2008,
Professor Giovanni Arcudi, Sollecito's technical consultant at that time, held the
opposite view, maintaining that there were insufficient - the shoeprint did not
possess "constitutive elements with characteristics of sufficient definition and clarity, nor
elements which could be considered particularly clear" - objective elements suitable to
support the claim that the bloody shoeprint had come from Sollecito's shoe.

In short, Professor Vinci had the intuition that the size 9 Nike Air Force 1 Low model
shoe that Sollecito wore could not be called into question (the edge of these shoes
leaving a "tank-track" style print with a characteristic design absent from the print
26
in this case, the decision about the remand in custody of the defendants

350
under examination. This gave the technical consultant the next indication, according
to which the trace 5A could very well correspond to the design of the sole of the
other Nike model that had been suggested, the Outbreak 2 model, whose sole design
was analysed on p. 24 of the report.

Thus, Professor Vinci can be said to have been the first to pay attention to the Nike
Outbreak 2 model which was finally shown to have been worn by Sollecito's co-
accused, Rudy Hermann Guede (as for the question of whether the technical
consultants Rinaldi and Boemia knew about the report of January 15, 2008, it was not
established that this report had been drawn to their attention; they were engaged in
their own investigation as of January 9, 2009, and Professor Vinci's report had been
deposited as an attachment to a request from Sollecito's defence to obtain an expert
opinion on the print during the pre-trial phase). Arriving at these further technical
investigations by this consultant, at this point there came into play the reports on the
bathmat print and the Luminol-positive print 2, on both of which, as has been noted,
the Scientific Police reached an ‚opinion of probable identity‛ with respect to Sollecito's
right foot, having by a comparison of the footprint on the bathmat and the footprints
taken from Knox and Guede at least excluded the footprint's belonging to either of
the two co-accused.

[376] Professor Vinci's report on the bathmat – we highlight this from the beginning -
completely contradicts the conclusions of the Rinaldi-Boemia consultancy.

Not only is the possibility of attributing (in the form of a "judgement of probable
identity") the bathmat footprint to Raffaele Sollecito or to Amanda Knox completely
denied, but it is somehow hypothesised that the print could have been made by the
right foot of Rudy Guede.

It must first be noted that Professor Vinci disagrees with the some of the
terminological choices of the consultants of the prosecution. In the opinion of this
technical consultant, one should not speak of "print" but of a "track"[orma], as the
term "print" should be reserved uniquely for prints containing "ridges", not for foot
outlines.

The topics of disagreement also concern the technique used to take footprints. As he
testified in Court, Professor Vinci dissents from the methods used by the technical
operators of the ERT, and also from the R.I.S. of the Carabinieri, of placing the foot
on an inkpad and then on sheets of paper (a method suitable for studying
fingerprints). He recommends a more modern method, approved by the scientific

351
community, which would have those submitting to the procedure of footprint
acquisition walk for a length of at least six metres along a paper-covered gangway.

The professor furthermore supports the theory that the technical investigations in
question belong to the domain of forensic medicine, as they require mandatory
orthopaedic and anatomical knowledge. He then criticised the fact that the
investigations were conducted uniquely on the basis of image analysis (Dr Rinaldi
did state that he had not seen the crime scene, as he did not participate in the
inspections, and that he worked only with the photographic materials that had been
made available to him, which in particular required correcting the perspective of the
tiles because the snapshots are not perfectly perpendicular), without any direct
examination of the bathmat on which the footprint was actually found.

The professor personally examined the bathmat (on a visit to the laboratory of the
Scientific Police in Rome, where he spoke to [377] Dr Rinaldi and Dr Stefanoni), and
took accurate photographs with his own sophisticated equipment, and using
absolutely accurate measuring tapes, approved by the scientific community of the
United States. He then examined the left and right footprints which he had himself
taken from the three accused, checking that what was obtained was in appearance a
non-static footprint, even though the manner of impression onto A3 paper was
actually static, since the accused were not asked to walk for a certain distance, but
instead to press down the heel and the ball of the foot (etc.) at different moments.

Having made these remarks, Professor Vinci stated that he then proceeded to take a
new measurement of Sollecito's footprints (those obtained during the bodily
inspection), yielding results that are extremely close to those obtained by the ERT.,
(differing only by decimals) and finally, that he used in his own investigation the
results of a baropedometric27 examination of the feet of Raffaele Sollecito, which had
been performed on September 9, 2006 by a specialist from Acquaviva delle Fonti
(BA) because of a knee problem.

Bearing in mind the claimed importance of orthopaedic and medical forensic


competence in performing this type of investigation, Professor Vinci stressed the
value of some particularly individualising details of the right foot of Raffaele
Sollecito, revealed by the said examination, consisting of: the fact that his second toe
does not touch the ground (the so-called "hammer" position of the distal phalange)
connected to a slight case of valgus on the right big toe, and the fact that the distal
phalange of the big toe also does not touch the ground, (meaning that there is a

27
measurement of weight distribution on the feet

352
distinct separation between the print of the ball of the foot and the print of the big
toe in the footprint of the accused).

Given these two features which make Sollecito's foot morphologically distinctive,
Professor Vinci's study basically arrives at the assertion that, while the second toe of
Raffaele Sollecito's right foot is entirely absent from the footprints known to be made
by him, on the contrary the footprint on the bathmat does contain the imprint of the
second toe.

[378] Professor Vinci reached these conclusions based on a close examination of the
weave of the bathmat, and also by varying the colours of the footprint, as shown in
the photograph album of the Scientific Police, so that via the use of different filtres it
could be viewed in black and white or in a more intense red colour which
emphasised the traces of blood.

A morphological examination of the footprint alone led the professor to consider it


as irreconcilable, due to its general shape and size, with the footprint taken directly
from Sollecito's right foot.

Indeed, the consultant hypothesised that the measurement calculated by the


Scientific Police of the width of the big toe of the bathmat footprint was to be
reconsidered: he rejected the measurement of about 30mm in favour of a much
smaller measurement of 24.8mm, which he obtained by detaching a mark of
haematic substance which he did not consider to be a mark from the surface of the
big toe, but from a separate body, namely the imprint of the second toe, which is
totally absent from the print taken from Sollecito's right foot.

This opinion is supported by slides shown in Court that refer to the tables in the
technical report, which establish that the point on the right, corresponding to the
ERT's calculated width measurement of 30mm, is set in a clean area without any
traces of blood, whereas the mark under discussion (to be separated from the big
toe) actually would appear separated from it by a visible interruption of continuity.

When Professor Vinci's consultancy then proceeded to carry out the measurements
aimed at comparing the two items (bathmat print, Sollecito's print), they also made
use of the "Robbins grid", but yielding results of non-reconcilability of the two terms
of the comparison.

The grid was not positioned according to the methodology followed by Dr Rinaldi
(with the right edge of the millimetric graph paper placed vertically with the points

353
on the right and the horizontal edge touching the apex of the big toe), but instead
was placed just under the metatarsal line (table p. 54 of the report). The ‚reference
line‛ is placed in this point (the zero point of the grid horizontally, [379] with the
whole of the ball of the foot in the upper part) from which the millimetric graph
paper yields the result that all the important points (for example the apex of the big
toe and the so-called bump, or the right external contour of the bathmat footprint)
are out of alignment with Sollecito's foot.

However, the Court cannot agree with one point of departure, which is the operation
that consists of detaching the small mark from the big toe print, since this results in a
clearly visible resizing of the big toe.

This operation rests on the assumption that there is an interruption of continuity in


the print (tables on pp. 45-46 of the report), but this starting point is not at all
convincing, given that the photograph provided as documentary evidence of this
appears to show exactly the contrary. The base of the material in the disputed point
(in this portion of the mat, the terrycloth [also] has a decorative protuberance) shows
that the trace of blood is a single unit on all of the curl (flourish), and is uniformly
linked, forming a single unit with all the other parts of the material on which the big
toe was placed. For these reasons, the proof that this mark is actually the mark of the
second toe (missing in the morphology of Sollecito's foot) appears totally weak and
unsatisfactory.

Finally, although it is possible to agree that in the calculation of the width of the big
toe (of approximately 30mm.) the point of measuring may fall in an unstained place,
nevertheless a comprehensive view of the bathmat clearly shows why this was done.
Considering (see attached photo 17 of the ERT showing a complete view of the
bathmat print) that the small region under discussion is part of the tip of the big toe,
the point on the right of the toe giving the 30mm measurement lies along the line
descending perpendicularly from that tip, without any widening.

In brief, the suggestion that the extension of the big toe trace be sacrificed,
interpreting it instead as the print of the second toe, appears far from realistic.
Furthermore, the association of the bathmat footprint with Guede's foot (see the CD-
ROM provided by Professor Vinci showing the "superimposition sequence" for
Guede's foot and for Knox's) appears, frankly, as strained, given that Guede's
footprint, apart from having a morphology [380] which is generally longer and more
tapered, also has a second toe print which unequivocally falls quite far from the big

354
toe print, so that the small mark whose detachment from the big toe is in question
here could hardly be attributed to the second toe of the co-accused.

Finally, there is a piece of data which the Court has uncontrovertibly adopted: the
same images of the bathmat, shown in deepened colours by the lighting equipment
of the Crimescope, do actually increase the impression of solidity of the size of the
big toe (and also of the metatarsus), and augment the perception of the unity with
the rest of the small mark whose detachment was suggested.

The consequence is that the Court does not hold as practicable the alternative
version aimed at confuting or undermining the judgement of probable identity
formulated by the Scientific Police, which instead finds itself strengthened.

Finally, with regard to the Luminol-positive print/trace 2, the results emerging from
the consultancy are as follows.

The consultant performed a morphological examination, comparing the footprint in


question and Sollecito's footprint; he first made the two footprints to the same size
(table p. 70 report) and then placed them side by side, showing what he pointed out
as irreconcilable differences (for example the print of the second toe revealed in the
Luminol-positive print, and the print from the first phalange of the big toe which
does not show in Sollecito's prints).

But in the opinion of the Court, the table on p. 70 seems to communicate an absolute
morphological similarity of the two prints brought to the same size, in which the line
of the heel, the isthmus and the width of the metatarsus and the big toe are
practically superimposable.

As for the line of the toes of Sollecito's right foot (table p. 72), which is of the type
that goes down from the big toe to the little toe, this detail also appears to
correspond to the Luminol-positive print, which shows up clearly the mark of the
ball of the foot, with much lighter marks for the third and fourth toes.

[381] The fluorescence photographed in the upper part, a somewhat fuzzy area in
the zone of the big toe, might, rather than being attributed to the second toe, reflect a
dynamic positioning of the foot as described in the report, with respect to the
explanation of "drag marks" which would indicate this dynamism.

Finally, one more aspect of the report is not shared by the Court.

355
This concerns the moment in which Professor Vinci, although he noted that the
consultancy of Dr Rinaldi performed the correct perspective adjustments on the tiles,
illustrated during the hearing of May 9, 2009 and yielding a larger length for the
Luminol-positive print (calculated as 245 mm with Sollecito's footprint measuring
246mm), concluded as though the uncorrected data from the previous report
remained valid and unmodified.

This led the technical consultant to consider the print only 215mm long (which it is
not), and consequently to judge that it came from a foot of that length, a good 3cm
less than the foot of the accused, with a shoe size between 36 and 37.

While the morphological appearance alone supports the comparison between the
Luminol-positive footprint and Sollecito's right footprint, the Court cannot share the
conclusion that the print revealed by Luminol was made by a foot much smaller
than Raffaele Sollecito's.

356
CLOSING CONSIDERATIONS

From the facts set out above it is possible to reconstruct the events during which, on
the night28 of 2 November 2007, Meredith Kercher was murdered in her own home
on Via della Pergola 7.

These facts also provide proof of the presence of Amanda Knox and of Raffaele
Sollecito in the house on Via della Pergola when Meredith was killed and clarify the
role that they played, outlining a framework of evidence that leads to a declaratory
judgement of guilt with regard to the crimes imputed to them.

As [the Court] has already pointed out, it does not recognize the necessity, as
requested and defined by articles 523 and 507 of the Criminal Procedure Code, for
[382] new evidence to be introduced.

In this regard, what has been previously observed on the subject is called to mind;
with specific reference to the stains found on the pillowcase, particular mention of
which was made by Sollecito’s defence *team+ during the trial and in the related
illustrative memorandum, the following should be noted: even if a genetic
investigation established the spermatic nature of these stains, such an investigation,
as a rule, would not allow these stains to be dated and, in particular, it would not be
possible to establish that they had been deposited on the night on which Meredith
was killed. It having furthermore been established that Meredith had an active
sexual life and at times had intercourse in her own room (cf. on this point the
statements of her boyfriend Giacomo Silenzi) such an investigation, besides not
being of a strictly necessary nature due to the impossibility of dating [i.e.
establishing the date] (cf. what was elucidated on this aspect by the genetic experts),
might also yield an entirely irrelevant outcome even for establishing the spermatic
nature of those very stains and seems to be, therefore, a purely explorative activity,
[which] is not permitted at this stage of the proceedings because it is lacking in the
requirement for absolute necessity which was, on the contrary, requested.

Amanda Knox, it has been seen, has declared that from the afternoon of 1.11.2007
until the late morning of the following day (10.30-11.00 am) she did not leave the
house on Corso Garibaldi where she was staying with Raffaele Sollecito. He, in his
turn, as was recalled by Robyn Carmel Butterworth, stated that he had spent the
night together with Amanda Knox.

28
i.e., the night of 1-2 November 2007

357
With such declarations, one as much as the other [i.e. they both equally] have
therefore interposed, between the place where they affirmed they had been (the
house on Corso Garibaldi) and the scene of the murder (the house on Via della
Pergola), such distance and space that it ought to have protected them from every
suspicion and involvement in the murder.

Not one element, however, confirmed that Amanda and Raffaele were not to be
found, late in the evening of that 1st of November, in the house at Via della Pergola.
No phone calls, no meetings, no interactions on the computer, nor anything else
allows it to be believed that in actual fact Amanda and Raffaele, after having dined
at the apartment on [383] Corso Garibaldi and after the last interaction with the
computer, as was shown, at 21.10.32 pm remained in there without going out until
the following morning. On the contrary, their presence in that apartment,
uninterrupted from the evening of 1 November to the morning of the 2nd according
to Amanda (the only one of whom a [witness] examination was requested), besides
not being in any way confirmed, was refuted and contradicted on various points.

Antonio Curatolo, whose declarations have already been established to be reliable,


declared that he had noted both the one and the other [i.e. both of them] (whom he
already knew, albeit only by sight) at about 21.30 to 22.00 pm on the 1st November
in the little square [piazzetta] in front of the University for Foreigners.

The uninterrupted sleep which seemingly continued until 10.30 am on 2.11.2009 (in
contrast to the normal habits of Amanda, whom her flat-mates declared as being an
early riser, and also not compatible with the planned trip to Gubbio, since Raffaele
Sollecito’s father called his son at 09.24 am to know if they had set out) is
contradicted by Quintavalle, who declared that he had seen Amanda in his own
store at 07.45 am and is contradicted by the interaction on Raffaele Sollecito’s
computer which occurred at 05.32 am and continued for about half an hour as has
been shown; also the SMS which Raffaele Sollecito’s father sent to his son at 23:14
pm on the 1st November and which the son received at 06.02 am on the following
day, leads to the conclusion, so far as has been seen in the chapter dedicated to the
telephone traffic of the mobile phone belonging to Raffaele Sollecito, that the latter
switched on his mobile phone shortly before 6 am on 2 November and thus was able
to receive the SMS sent to him by his father late in the evening of the previous day.

Amanda Knox and Sollecito Raffaele therefore did not spend the evening and the
night of 1 November in the house on Corso Garibaldi uninterruptedly and without
going out until 10.30 am the next morning. The declarations made on this point by

358
Amanda Knox and which would have constituted, if they had been true, an alibi for
both, were shown to be false, and were aimed therefore at avoiding an investigation
into the truth and are therefore considered to be evidence against [them] (e.g. Cass.
15.12.2005 No. 5060).

With regard to Raffaele Sollecito, he did not give any statements other than
spontaneous declarations, and none of the parties requested him to be questioned. It
should nonetheless be recalled [384] that Robyn Carmel Butterworth (one of
Meredith’s English girl friends) declared that, while they were at Police
Headquarters on the afternoon of 2 November, Raffaele said that Amanda was with
him on the night between 1 and 2 November.

For the evening of 1 November 2007 both Amanda and Raffaele had planned to go
out: the one to go to work in Patrick Lumumba’s pub located in Via Alessi and the
other to do a favour for a young woman, Jovana Popovic.

Almost at the same time, around 8 in the evening, both these appointments were
cancelled and both Amanda and Raffaele found themselves without commitments.
Once dinner had been finished at about 20.40 pm (on this subject the phone call
which Francesco Sollecito made to his son, and what he declared in this regard
during the hearing of 19 June 2009, should be recalled) and the last operation of the
day had been made on the computer at 21.10.32 pm (as was demonstrated in the
chapter dedicated to the examination of Raffaele Sollecito’s computer), Amanda and
Raffaele were therefore able to leave the house, completely free of commitments, and
find themselves a few minutes later in the little square [piazzetta] in front of the
University for Foreigners, where the basketball court is; a few metres from the news
kiosk and from the bench which, at about 21.30 or 22.00 pm, would be occupied by
Antonio Curatolo who, already knowing both the current defendants since he had
come across them on previous occasions, noticed their presence at various times,
when he broke off from reading his magazine. He saw them, therefore, several times
in the square where there were other young people, and this took place in the time-
span between 21.30/22.00 pm and about 23.00 pm. It should also be recalled that
Curatolo had declared that he had seen Raffaele Sollecito go towards the railing
which is to be found in that square and look down below.

The square where the defendants were from between 21.30 and 22.00 pm up until
about 23.00 pm as has been said, is only a few metres distant from the house at Via
della Pergola 7 and the little road situated at the bottom of this square would have
allowed the house on Via della Pergola to be reached in a minute or slightly more,

359
without passing in front of the bench occupied by Curatolo who testified that, when
he left [385] his bench at about 23.00 pm, the two young people were no longer in the
square where he had previously glimpsed them several times.

The said square is just a few metres distant from the house on Via della Pergola
which Rudy Guede entered that evening, and the itinerary which he took in that
house has already been demonstrated and the biological traces which he left in
Meredith’s room and on Meredith’s person *body+ have also been recalled.

On the entry door, furthermore, no signs of breaking and entering or of forcing were
found. The window in Filomena Romanelli’s room had a broken pane but - and as it
was seen - Rudy Guede did not enter the house on Via della Pergola through that
window: the breaking of the window and the disorder which had been created in
Filomena Romanelli’s room formed part of the staging carried out by whoever
allowed Rudy Guede to enter the house, and were done in order to divert any
suspicion from themselves.

Whoever allowed Rudy Guede to enter the house and then carried out the staging of
the broken window and the disarray could only be the person to whom the key was
available, who had free access to the house because they lived in it and who, finding
themselves in the area, could calmly enter the house and bring, precisely, Rudy
Guede into it.

The key to the apartment, it has already been seen, was available to the four young
women who lived there.

It has already been pointed out that it does not seem likely that Meredith would
have opened the door to Rudy Guede; for that matter, if it had been Meredith who
opened the door of the apartment, there would be no explanation - as has already
been observed - for the staging carried out in Romanelli’s room.

With regard to the other three flatmates, it should be recalled that Laura Mezzetti
was at Montefiascone at her family home and Filomena Romanelli, while she was in
Perugia, was staying with her own boyfriend Marco Zaroli, with whom she was
celebrating the birthday of Luca Altieri, the boyfriend of Paola Grande, with whom
she would share a car the following day in order to go to the Fiera dei Morti.29

[386] The fourth flatmate, Amanda Knox, was with Raffaele Sollecito, suddenly free
from any commitments, as was her boyfriend, and with the latter, as has been seen,

29
The Fair of the Dead, held on All Saints‟ Day.

360
[was] a few steps from the house on Via della Pergola, in the square in front of the
University for Foreigners where she was spotted together with Raffaele Sollecito
until about 23.00 pm, and then no more.

All of the circumstances just noted (Amanda has access to the key; the entry door is
not forced; the broken window is staged in order to mislead the investigations; the
other flatmates, Mezzetti and Romanelli, have commitments which have taken them
elsewhere; Amanda and Raffaele, until about 23.00 pm were just a few steps away
from the house on via della Pergola, and have no commitments ) constitute a
framework of evidence on the strength of which it must be concluded that it was
Amanda, who was with Raffaele Sollecito, who allowed Rudy Guede to enter the
house on Via della Pergola 7, and that this happened at around 23.00 pm, give or
take a few minutes.

Amanda, moreover, knew Rudy Guede and he knew Amanda; indeed, he was
attracted to her (it was considered that the interest that Rudy showed for the young
woman demonstrates, in fact, an undeniable appeal that Amanda must have
wielded towards the young man); Rudy, furthermore, knew the house on Via della
Pergola since he had already been there, whether by invitation or without invitation.

It cannot be known whether Rudy entered the house at the same time as Amanda
and Raffaele or several minutes afterwards, when Amanda and Raffaele were
already there, even if only for a few minutes. It is not possible to answer such a
question since no one offered any indications on this point and no one saw the three
young people enter the house.

This Court considers the first hypothesis most likely in consideration of the fact that
Amanda and Raffaele were in the square in front of the University, a place which
Rudy often frequented. Therefore, it is probable that, Rudy may have been in the
area of the square on the same evening and, seeing Amanda, stopped to speak with
her before all three went together to the house on Via della Pergola. The other
hypothesis (Rudy arriving at the house on his own) seems less likely because; while
it is true that Rudy had previously [387] gone to the said house without having been
invited by anyone, this had happened with regard to the apartment occupied by the
young men with whom Rudy was more familiar and who were not there that
evening, having returned to spend the festive period in their respective home towns,
all in the Marches Region.

361
Raffaele Sollecito’s Defence *team+ stressed a great deal that Raffaele did not know
Rudy, and did so in order to rule out the configurability [i.e. falling into the
category] of complicity of one [person] with another in carrying out crimes of
homicide and assault.

To uphold the thesis of non-acquaintance they pointed to the unreliability of


witnesses Gioffredi and Kokomani, and this Court considers reasonable what they
highlighted on this point: the activity on Raffaele Sollecito’s computer makes an
encounter with him in the time-span indicated by Gioffredi scarcely plausible; also
the red coat which Amanda apparently wore at that time, a coat of which there was
no other evidence, does not allow [us] to consider as believable the circumstances
related by Gioffredi, and according to which he allegedly also saw Rudy
accompanied by Raffaele, as well as by Amanda and by Meredith.

The inconsistencies in Kokomani’s statements are even more obvious. It is enough to


think of the black bag which then revealed itself to be two people and of the
throwing of olives and of a mobile phone which had allegedly been used to make a
video which was subsequently shown to others and, furthermore, the time he had
seemingly seen Amanda, a time predating her arrival in Italy and the mention of an
uncle of Amanda’s of whose existence no one was able to supply confirmation.

But, even if it is accepted that Rudy and Raffaele did not know each other, such a
circumstance cannot lead [us] to arrive at the outcome desired and affirmed by
Sollecito Raffaele’s Defence *team+, for whom the lack of acquaintance would rule
out complicity in the hypothesised crimes. In fact, it must be highlighted that the
circumstance that Rudy knew Amanda allowed the former to approach and greet
the young woman who, being [i.e. since she was] with Raffaele, could quite easily
have acted as an intermediary between the two and enabled an immediate and easy
acquaintanceship of each other. After all, it was in this way that Amanda had met
Rudy: he was introduced to her by the young men [388] from the downstairs
apartment, who knew both the one and the other (Amanda Knox statements, hearing
of 12 June 2009 page 28).

362
With regard to the complicity of persons in the crime, it must be recalled that the
desire to participate together does not necessarily presuppose a prior agreement and
can manifest itself without distinction either as prior arrangement or as instant
understanding or as simple compliance in the deeds of another who might even
remain unaware (cf. Cassation 15.5.2009 No. 25894 and, therein recalled: Cassation
Section 11 22.11.2000, Sormani). Therefore, even if Rudy and Raffaele did not know
each other until November 1, the existence of complicity in the crime [configurabilità
del concorso] cannot be excluded since the acquaintance could have been formed the
very evening of 1 November through Amanda who knew both well, and given that,
as noted above, complicity in a crime may also be manifested through an instant
understanding in the determination of an event [in a crime].

Therefore Amanda and Raffaele, most likely accompanied by Rudy who had asked
or had been invited to go with them to the house on Via della Pergola, arrived in that
apartment around 23.00 pm; Meredith was already in the apartment, having gone
back home around 21.00 pm, after having spent the afternoon and the evening with
her own English friends.

It is not possible to know why Rudy also came to be in the house on Via della
Pergola; perhaps to spend the night as had happened on another occasion although
in the downstairs apartment; or perhaps to hang out with Amanda and Raffaele for a
while and to use the bathroom, and that did indeed happen, as has already been
recalled; maybe even to say hello to the young men in the downstairs apartment,
with whom he had a friendly relationship, young men who, since they were all from
the Marches, were absent during those days having each returned to their home
towns. It must nonetheless be considered [possible], given the relationship [and]
regular visiting that existed between Rudy and these young men, that having
arrived at the house on Via della Pergola, Rudy went to check for the presence of
any of the young men from downstairs, and finding that none of them were home,
most likely shared that [information] with Amanda and Raffaele.

It was not possible, however, to ask Rudy any questions or receive any reply from
him.

[389] Rudy, who had been asked to testify, refused to reply and the defence [teams]
of the defendants did not consent to giving testimony.

The recording fragment of a conversation produced by Raffaele Sollecito’s Defence


and which apparently took place with a certain Debenedetti gives evidence of the

363
acquaintance between Rudy and Meredith and the presence of the former in the
house when Meredith was killed; in that conversation mention is made of the blood
and of the glass in Romanelli’s room which Rudy claims not having seen that night.
These references however are vague and, lacking in confirmation and details, seem
to be of little use. There remains, however, the fact that Rudy, around 23.00 pm on 1
November 2007 was in the house on Via della Pergola 7 and was there because
Amanda and Raffaele, closely united and together, had allowed him to enter.

Rudy goes to the bathroom, as he had on previous occasions, although in the


downstairs bathroom and, just like in the previous occasions he does not flush the
toilet, leaving behind traces of his use of the bathroom (faeces and toilet paper).

The presence of Meredith in the house must have been immediately noticed.

Meredith, moreover, kept the door of her room open (as has already been seen) and
did not close it unless she was going to be absent for a certain amount of time and
that happened only once, when she returned to England for a few days; at that hour
Meredith must still have been awake and in her own room, most likely reading the
book which her friend had given her that very day, or busy with the homework
which her own university studies called for.

In accordance with the information noted above, it is considered likely that she was
still dressed: the blood stains on her trousers; the t-shirt which was found pushed up
to reveal her breasts was stained with blood; the sweatshirt on which biological
traces of Rudy were found in one of the cuffs, all indicate that Meredith was dressed
in her own room, and therefore still awake.

Furthermore, the wounds she suffered give evidence that the victim was not
harmed in [her] bed since, otherwise, there would have been many more blood
stains found on the sheet and on the mattress given the great [390] quantity of blood
which came from the wounds struck and no explanation would have been found for
the haemorrhagic swelling on the occipital region of her scalp (see page 13 of the
forensic report of the forensic experts appointed by the Preliminary Hearing Judge
[the GIP] in the pre-trial hearing).

Additional evidence supporting this claim (that the victim was not already in
her own bed when she was harmed), is that Meredith was still dressed and awake,
[and was] in an entirely normal condition having consumed neither alcohol nor
drugs as shown by Dr Lalli and confirmed by the experts appointed by the
Preliminary Hearing Judge. It must also be recalled that the house was rather cold,

364
as Amanda testified during her own examination and as can be deducted from the
measurement of the ambient temperature which Dr Lalli took at 00.50 am on 3
November 2007. With regard to the aforementioned observations, it must be
considered that Meredith was in her own room, awake, still dressed and, at least
when Rudy and then the others entered and began the assault, was not stretched out
on her own bed.

Amanda and Raffaele, having arrived at the house slightly after 23.00 pm, it should
be considered that they went into Amanda’s room with the intention of being
together, in intimacy. Amanda moreover had reported that that evening they had
‚made love‛, although in Raffaele’s house, after having consumed drugs (hashish)
prepared by Raffaele Sollecito. Besides, as Laura Mezzetti had testified, Raffaele
Sollecito and Amanda Knox, when they were together, were very affectionate
towards each other; Raffaele was always ‚stuck‛ to her, and even in the Police
Headquarters, during the afternoon of 2 November, the behaviour of the two young
people was evident: they were very close to each other, caressed each other, kissed
each other. Conduct which is scarcely appropriate in that environment and that
situation; and yet it carried on, indicative, therefore, of the strong attraction which
existed between the two which manifested itself through continuous displays of
affection, even in inappropriate contexts such as, precisely, the Police Headquarters
must have been shortly after the discovery of Meredith’s body, and where Amanda
and Raffaele were waiting, along with others, to be questioned about [the murder].
All the more, therefore, must such affectionate and effusive behaviour have been
manifested on that particular occasion: Amanda and [391] Raffaele who were
together in Amanda’s house; together in Amanda’s room and alone, since Meredith
was in her own room and Rudy, as previously mentioned, was in the bathroom.

It is therefore probable that Rudy, coming out of the bathroom, let himself be carried
away by a situation that he perceived as being charged with sexual stimuli and,
giving in to his sexual urges, sought to satisfy them by going into Meredith’s room,
where she was alone with the door at least partly open (she never closed it unless
she was going away for several days).

Speaking of Meredith, there has already been occasion to make mention of her
personality (serious, not superficial, with a strong character), of her romantic
situation [i.e. her love life] (she had not long beforehand begun a relationship with
Giacomo Silenzi), of the plans she had for that evening (studying, preparing for the
following day believing that there would be classes at the University, finishing a
piece of homework, as her mother recalled during the hearing of 6 June 2009, and

365
resting). None of the people she frequented and in whom she confided (her relatives
and her English girlfriends) testified that Meredith had made any mention to them at
all of Rudy, for whom, therefore, she must not have felt any interest. With regard to
the totality of these circumstances, it must be considered that Meredith could only
have made an outright refusal to Rudy’s advances and in doing so could also count
on her slim [fit] physique, which the photos allow [one] to understand, [and] on her
good athletic training (other than dance she had also done sports characterised by a
certain physicality such as football, and had even taken a course in karate), sustained
by her strong character.

That Rudy then yielded to his lust, and tried to find sexual satisfaction with
Meredith, is revealed by how Meredith’s body was found: wearing only a little t-
shirt, pushed up to expose her breasts and for the rest completely nude, and by the
results of the vaginal swab which showed biological traces of Rudy. There can be no
doubt that the part of the girl’s body which Rudy had ‚lingered over‛ to the extent
that he left his biological traces on her and even [392] caused the bruises which have
already been mentioned, and [the fact of] having stripped the young woman, [all]
point to the objective of sexual satisfaction carried out against Meredith’s wishes.

It is not possible, however, to know if Rudy went to Meredith’s room on his own
initiative, almost subjugated by the situation which he interpreted in erotic terms
(the two young lovers in their room and Meredith who was on her own in the room
right next to it) or, instead, he went to Meredith’s room at the urging of Amanda
and/or Raffaele.

This Court is inclined towards the first hypothesis.

It cannot see, in fact, the motive for such an invitation on the part of Amanda Knox
and/or of Raffaele Sollecito. Besides, Rudy does not seem to have needed to be
encouraged to make advances toward Meredith. Abukar Barrow [who was]
interrogated on 11 December 2007 (and whose testimony was acquired with the
consensus of the parties) testified that Rudy, above all when he was drunk or under
the effects of drugs, ‚bothered people, especially young women. He blocked them
off physically and tried to kiss them‛.

Nevertheless, it should also be considered, and this seems to be the most probable
hypothesis, that Rudy decided on his own to enter Meredith’s room, the young
woman’s reaction and refusal must have been heard by Amanda and Raffaele
(Amanda’s room was very close to Meredith’s) who, in fact, must have been

366
disturbed by them [i.e. by the reaction and the refusal] and intervened, as the
progression of events and their epilogue show, backing up Rudy, whom they had
brought into the house, and becoming themselves, together with Rudy, Meredith’s
aggressors, her murderers.

Why, then, two young people, strongly interested in each other, with intellectual and
cultural curiosity, he on the eve of his graduation and she full of interests, resolved
to participate in an action aimed at forcing the will of Meredith, with whom they
had, especially Amanda, a relationship of regular meetings and cordiality, to the
point of causing her death, falls within the continual exercise of choice among [the
range of] possibilities, and this Court can only register the choice of extreme evil
which was put into practice. It can be hypothesised that this choice of evil began
with the [393] consumption of drugs which had happened also that evening, as
Amanda testified.

On the effects of drugs of the type used by Amanda and by Raffaele, such as hashish
and marijuana, [we] heard the testimony of Professor Taglialatela who, while
underlining the great subjective variability (page 211, hearing of 17 July 2009)
specified that the use of such substances has a negative influence on the cognitive
capacity and causes alterations of perception (pages 201 and 207) and of the capacity
to comprehend a situation (page 218). In his turn, Professor Cingolani, who together
with Professor Umani Ronchi and Professor Aprile, had also dealt with the
toxicological aspect (see witness report lodged on 15 April 2008, pages 26 and
following), responding to the question he had been asked as to whether the use of
drugs lowers inhibitions replied: ‚That is beyond doubt‛ (page 163 hearing of 19
September 2009), while correlating that effect to the habits of the person [on] taking
the drugs. Raffaele Sollecito’s friends had furthermore stated that such substances
had an effect of relaxation and stupor.

Therefore it may be deduced that, accustomed to the consumption of drugs and the
effects of the latter, Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito participated actively in
Rudy’s criminal acts aimed at overcoming Meredith’s resistance, subjugating her
will and thus allowing Rudy to act out his lustful impulses; and this is considered to
have happened because, for those [i.e. for people] who did not disdain the use of
drugs (Amanda has stated that on that evening, before ‚making love‛, they had
consumed drugs), watching films and reading comic books in which sexuality is
accompanied by violence and by situations of fear, disregarding the concept of
sexuality as an encounter of [two] persons moved by reciprocal and free emotion
(see the comic books seized from Raffaele Sollecito and the statements on the

367
viewing of films which had drawn the attention of the tutors of the ONAOSI College
attended by Raffaele Sollecito), the prospect of helping Rudy in [his] goal of
subduing Meredith in order to sexually abuse her may have seemed to be an exciting
stimulant which, although unexpected, had to be tried.

[394] A motive, therefore, of an erotic, sexually violent nature which, arising from
the choice of evil made by Rudy, found active collaboration from Amanda Knox and
Raffaele Sollecito.

That such participation, active and violent, also involved the current defendants in
combination with Rudy can be derived from what has been observed in earlier
discussion of the wounds suffered by Meredith, of the outcome of the genetic
investigations, [and] of the bare footprints found in various parts of the house.

THE INJURIES

The consultants and forensic scientists have asserted that from the point of view
of forensic science, it cannot be ruled out that the author of the injuries could have
been a single attacker, because the bruises and the wounds from a pointed and
cutting weapon are not in themselves incompatible with the action of a single
person. With regard to this, it is nevertheless observed that the contribution of each
discipline is specifically in the domain of the specific competence of that discipline,
and in fact the consultants and forensic experts concentrated their attention on the
aspects specifically belonging to forensic science: time of death, cause of death,
elements indicating sexual violence, the injuries present on the body of the victim,
and the causes and descriptions of these. The answer given above concerning the
possibility of their being inflicted by the action of a single person or by more than
one was given in relation to these specific duties and questions, which belong
precisely to the domain of forensic science, and the meaning of this answer was thus
that there are no scientific elements arising directly from forensic science which
could rule out the injuries having been caused by the action of a single person. But,
to actually answer this question, of whether the criminal action which determined
Meredith's death was the action of one person alone or several people acting
together, it is necessary to take into account, not only the contributions of forensic
science, but also other elements which have emerged and which are relevant to this
point, and to evaluate the situation in a way which takes the comprehensive picture
into account.

368
One first such additional element is what has been said of Meredith's personality
and her physical condition; one must take into account that, according to what has
already been noted, Meredith, when the attack began, [395] was awake and dressed
and not lying on the bed; additional elements are given by the place in which the
violent action appears to have taken place, of which the file of photographic
documents make it possible to determine, as they represent Meredith's room, with
the various pieces of clothing and objects present there.

In fact, putting together the elements mentioned above - including, of course, the
forensic observations - it is considered that the injuries and the violence were the
result of an action of several people.

A first indication to be taken into account is Meredith's physical build: the


photographs of her body and the data of her approximate height and weight reveal a
physique with "normotrophic muscular mass and normally distributed
subcutaneous fat" (cf. declarations Lalli p. 3), a slim physique which would have
permitted Meredith to move with agility. To this must be added the declarations of
the parents and the sister of Meredith. Her mother, Arline Carol Mary Kercher,
recalled that Meredith had practised football and karate (p. 7 hearing 6 June 2009),
and her sister, Stephanie Arline Lara, stated that Meredith also did boxing, if only
the once, and that "physically she was very strong" (p. 20, hearing 6 June 2009). Also
her father, John Leslie Kercher, declared that his daughter was quite strong and had
taken a course in karate (p. 23 hearing 6 June 2009).

It has also been noted that Meredith was not in bed and undressed when the
"advances" and the attempts to subject her will commenced. Being still dressed and
awake, and since it must be excluded because of what has been said above that the
violent action could have taken place with Meredith lying on the bed, it is
considered that she, who was sober and fully conscious since no traces indicating
either the use of drugs or the abuse of alcohol were found, would have opposed a
firm resistance, as she could claim a strong physique, experienced in self-defence by
the lessons in karate that she had taken. The signs of this resistance, however, consist
in a scream, the scream heard by Nara Capezzali at around 23:30 and by Maria Ilaria
Dramis when, having gone to bed at 22:00 pm, she awoke at a later time which she
was not able to quantify; they consist also in some tiny defensive wounds: one on the
palm of her [396] right hand of a length of .6cm showing a tiny amount of blood;
another on the ulnar surface of the first phalange of the second finger of the left
hand, also of length .6cm; another on the fingertip of the first finger with a

369
superficial wound of .3cm, and another tiny wound corresponding to the fourth
radius.

Compared with these almost nonexistent defensive wounds (cf. report of Dr Lalli,
pp. 33, 34, 35 with the relevant photos), there is an injured area which is impressive
by the number, distribution and diversity, specifically of the injuries (bruises and
wounds) on the face and neck of Meredith.

This disproportion is all the more serious and inexplicable if one considers
Meredith's physical and personality characteristics recalled above. It seems
inevitable that it must be considered that the criminal action was carried out by
several people acting together against Meredith, who, strongly limited in her
movements, could not defend herself in any way nor shield herself with her hands in
order to avoid a vital part of her body (the neck) being repeatedly struck.

Furthermore, it is impossible to imagine in what way a single person could have


removed the clothes that Meredith was wearing (shoes, pants and underwear), and
using the violence revealed by the vaginal swab, could have caused the resulting
bruises and wounds recalled above, as well as removing her sweatshirt, pulling up
her shirt, forcing the bra hooks before tearing and cutting the bra. In order to
maintain such a hypothesis (action performed by a single attacker), Professor Introna
suggested that Meredith was undressing, and thus when her attacker arrived, she
had already removed her own shoes, pants and underwear; the attacker would have
come up from behind, thus taking her by surprise. But this reconstruction appears
unrealistic, as we have seen. It must also be noted that the representation of
Meredith's room with the distribution of the various furnishings and the direction of
opening of the door towards the interior of the room (see in particular photos 80, 89,
94) makes it rather improbable that someone entering into that room could have
surprised Meredith from behind, especially as in addition, and there seems no
reason for this as already noted, [397] she would have had to be (but one cannot see
where in the room her attacker would have been able to surprise her from behind)
naked from the hips down.

The breaking of the bra alone, from which a small piece of material with hooks
(photos 140, 119, 118 and 117) was cut off and thrown to the floor, by an act which
was necessarily conducted from behind Meredith (one cannot see in what other way
the bra could have been thus forced), requires the following observation: such an
action would occupy both hands of the attacker, and thus Meredith would have had
her hands free, and in that situation she could have attempted some action in self-

370
defence (for example trying to run out of the room and attempt to flee, in other
words reacting towards her attacker by getting away from him), whereas in fact
there is no trace of such a thing, and it seems inexplicable unless it is admitted that
several attackers were present, with a distribution of tasks and roles: either holding
Meredith and preventing her from any significant defensive reaction, or actually
performing the violent actions (and here one must recall that a biological trace of
Rudy was found on one of the cuffs of Meredith's sweatshirt, which appears to be
the sign of having gripped Meredith in order to prevent any reaction, any defence).
Also the diverse morphology of the injuries and their number and distribution lead
one to consider that those participating in this criminal action were more than one.
Many injuries appear to have been caused by an activity of restraining; others were
inflicted by a pointed and cutting weapon, and are greatly diverse in dimension and
harmfulness; furthermore, even when directed at the same part of the body they
sometimes attained the victim from the right and sometimes from the left. In fact, in
order to maintain the hypothesis of a single attacker it would be necessary to
hypothesise that the same person continually modified his own harmful conduct,
first exercising a strong manual pressure on the victim, producing bruises, then
deciding to seize the knife, thus changing the very nature of the attack (now armed
rather than with the hands) and then striking first on the right (4cm wound) and
then on the left [398] (8cm deep wound). In the first case, a single blow was
apparently halted by the jawbone (4cm deep wound), and instead in the second case,
the knife was held inside the victim's neck, after the same knife having been used to
run over the surface of the same part of the neck, just a few centimetres below the
zone on which the more serious and deeper wound was inflicted. Furthermore, in
spite of all these changes in the action of the attacker, Meredith would have
remained in the same position, continuing to offer the same part of her body (the
neck) to the attacker who would in the meantime have picked up a knife. Yet after
the first wound, the normal and instantaneous reaction would have been to protect
the wounded part (the neck, precisely, which would have moved away from the
possibility of another blow) even running the risk of receiving the blow on another
part of the body. Conversely, considering the neck wounds sustained, it must be
believed that Meredith remained in the same position, in a standing position, while
continuously exposing her neck to the action of the person striking her now on the
right and now on the left. Such a situation seems inexplicable if one does not accept
the presence of more than one attacker who, holding the girl, strongly restrained her
movements and struck her on the right and on the left because of the position of each
of the attackers with respect to her, by which it was easier to strike her from that

371
side. One of these attackers was Rudy and the others were those who allowed Rudy
to enter the house and who were with him in the house and who, in order to lead the
investigations astray, then organised the staging of the broken window and the mess
in Romanelli's room: Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito, according to all that has
already been shown.

RESULT OF THE GENETIC INVESTIGATIONS

[The Court] has focused at length on the genetic investigations, on their outcome, on
the objections moved, and on the evaluations that this Court held to expound, and
this with particular regard to Exhibits 165B and 36B.

The first relates to the fragment of bra with the clasps upon which was found the
biological trace attributable, by what has been observed above, to Raffaele Sollecito.
The focus brought by the Defence upon this Exhibit is justified [399] by its relevance
and significance: it is a part of the intimate clothing Meredith was wearing when she
was murdered; it was found torn, cut, and in part covered in blood, in the victim’s
room, under the pillow upon which Meredith’s body was partially placed; her bra,
missing this little piece, came to be found, instead, at Meredith’s feet.

The biological trace attributable to Raffaele Sollecito and found on the clasps of this
small fragment of bra, near to the biological trace attributable to Rudy Guede and
found on one of the straps of the same bra, places Raffaele Sollecito at the crime
scene, active – negatively active – when Meredith was stripped with violence: the
top she was wearing had been rolled almost up to her neck to uncover her bra,
which it was thus possible to unfasten, and remove even this piece of clothing from
Meredith. An action in which the goal of sexual satisfaction is evident due to the
erogenous zone on which the attention was focused, and tightly tied to the violent
behaviour, symptomatic signs of which are the raised top and the eagerness with
which the bra was ripped off and cut.

The biological traces found on this bra (for the probative relevance of the outcome of
the genetic investigations on the DNA, cf. Cassation 30 June 2004, no 48349) and
attributable (other than to Meredith) to Rudy Guede as regards one bra strap and to
Raffaele Sollecito as regards the clasps, placing the one and the other together and
actively present at the scene of the crime; the pair of them united in the intent to strip
Meredith, who was suffering the sexual assault which is documented by the vaginal
swab. Both of them, therefore, pursuing the same objective (cf. on the concourse that

372
can be realised with an immediate intent, without a previous accord, e.g., Cassation
15 May 2009 no 25894), denoted by violence and sexuality.

The cutting of the piece of bra on which the clasps were to be found, one of them
resulting in being bent, a clean cut that appears to have been done with a cutting
implement, requires a further consideration: whoever was eagerly forcing the clasps,
being unable to unclasp the bra and only to bend and deform one of the [400] clasps,
decided to cut the bra so that, in fact, it resulted in being cut right next to the clasps.
At this point the inquiry findings are to be recalled, from which it emerged that
Raffaele Sollecito was in the habit of carrying upon his person a small knife, such a
deep-seated habit to render vain his father’s recommendation to not carry the knife
(‚Oh, in these days, don’t you go around with the little knife in your pocket‛,
telephone interception of 5 November 2007, at 15:00 pm, number 13), and indeed
Raffaele Sollecito carried one, in those days, for, on the 6 November 2007, a pocket
knife came to be found and seized.

A habit known to Raffaele Sollecito’s friends and referred to also by his father, who
stated that his son’s ability to use the pocket knife was such that he was able to
model himself objects from wood (page 23, hearing of 19 June 2009).

His friends, in speaking of this habit, added significant details.

Mariano De Martino recalled that Raffaele always had the pocket knife with him and
the blade must have been around 4cm long (page 21, hearing of 4 July 2009).

Saverio Binetti declared that, to Raffaele, the pocket knife was like an ornamental
object which, though, when it was necessary, he made use of, and so it happened for
a fruit, and for a takeaway pizza. It must have been a rather thin and pointed pocket
knife, inasmuch, Saverio Binetti declared, ‚he didn’t let anyone use it because he was
afraid that they would hurt themselves‛ (page 26, hearing of 4 July 2009). Even
Saverio Binetti had indicated the blade of this pocket knife as about 4cm [in length].

Of Raffaele Sollecito’s habit of carrying a pocket knife, Corrado De Candia also made
reference, recalling that the blade of Raffaele Sollecito’s pocket knife had a length
around 6-7cm and a width of 1cm or less.

In relation to the preceding (Raffaele Sollecito actively present at the scene of the
murder, finding himself behind Meredith, pulling on the bra with violence, finally
deciding to cut it), it must be affirmed that Raffaele Sollecito not only found himself
at the scene of the murder and pursuing, with violence, the same objective as Rudy

373
Guede, but he is there with a well-sharpened knife (dangerous and thus capable of
cutting a resistant material, such as that of a bra, [401] especially in the part that was
cut, which may be seen in photos 117 and 119 in the second volume of photographic
evidence) and having a blade probably around 4cm long, as De Martino and Binetti
have referred to (the length of this, 4cm, appears more consonant with the type of
pocket knife described, and Raffaele Sollecito’s habit of always carrying a pocket
knife attached with a clip to his trousers, and therefore to be considered rather short
and manageable, with respect to a blade of 6 or 7 cm, as indicated by Candia).

Elements which lead one to consider that the 4cm in depth wound was inflicted by
Raffaele Sollecito with the pocket knife that he was always carrying around with
him, and was inflicted immediately after having cut the bra, while Rudy penetrated
the unfortunate victim – who had been almost completely stripped naked – probably
with his fingers because the biological trace on the vaginal swab did not present
anything of a spermatic nature.

That the knife used by Raffaele Sollecito on that occasion, according to what has
been said, has not been found, is an irrelevant circumstance when it is a case of blade
weapons [arma bianca] of easy availability and easy enough to conceal (cf. on this
specific point, Cassation 30 June 2004, no 48349).

This progression of violence, from advances to gripping, from which derive the
numerous bruises, to ultimately injuring the girl with a knife, finds a possible
explanation in the fact that Meredith, it must be held, continued to put up the
resistance that she could (there are in fact no signs of yielding, of any acquiescence
occurring and, as a matter of fact, the scream that Nara Capezzali and Maria Ilaria
Dramis have declared to having heard confirm this behaviour of the young lady),
and, to the end of completely subduing her, even to her will as well, probably, as an
angry and almost punitive reaction against a girl continuing in this behaviour, there
was the blow inflicted upon the neck producing the 4cm deep wound
(corresponding to about the length of the blade described by Binetti and De
Martino), a blow that, as observed above, is to be held to have been inflicted with the
same pocket knife used to cut off the bra and therefore by the [402] same person who
had sliced the bra itself and who had the use of this pocket knife, and this is Raffaele
Sollecito.

The very loud scream (as described by Maria Ilaria Dramis) of pain and, at this
point, also of terror, made by Meredith and of which it was said, not causing any
repentance among the attackers, but the final definitive progression of violence, and

374
while her already-cut bra was being removed (the bra that, coming into contact with
the part of the body that had begun to be covered in blood from the wound in the
neck, itself became partially stained with blood), the hand of one of the attackers
sealed Meredith’s mouth, so that she could not scream again, and another of her
attackers struck her again on the neck, but on the left side because, probably, they
were on the other side with respect to the person who had inflicted the 4cm deep
wound, causing [in their turn] a lesion 8cm deep. Meredith tried to withdraw the
part of her body that was once again and more deeply attainted but, held by the
hand of whoever was holding her mouth shut and countered by the presence of the
one who had caused the 4cm-deep wound, she ended up being driven back towards
the knife that still remained in the wound itself, and occasioned a second incision on
the epiglottis, as has been seen, almost as if it were [a case of] a second blow being
inflicted upon her.

This dynamic requires the presence of a second attacker, of a second knife. This
Court holds that the second attacker is Amanda Knox and the second knife is Exhibit
36. The outcome of the genetic investigation with a quantity of DNA indicated as
‚too low‛ was placed under censure and doubts about reliability. Equally, the
incompatibility of this knife with the wounds suffered by Meredith was affirmed.
On these matters, the considerations already made must be recalled, which led this
Court to evaluate the outcome of the genetic investigation as reliable, and this knife
as absolutely compatible with the most serious wound.

The inquiry elements allow, still, further observations.

This knife, which attracted the attention of Inspector Finzi during the search in
Raffaele Sollecito’s house such that it was taken, unlike the other knives that were in
the same drawer, must have presented itself as different from the others, with [403]
its own individuality with respect to the other knives present in the Corso Garibaldi
house. The owner of this house, were this knife not to be found in the Corso
Garibaldi house, would have been able to remember its presence and note the
absence of this utensil, and this circumstance would have been able to constitute a
trace, an investigative hypothesis upon which Raffaele Sollecito may have been
called in to supply an explanation for. In relation to this, it is to be held that Amanda
and Raffaele would have evaluated as opportune to carry the knife back to the house
from which it had been removed, considering also that its cleaning (it was in fact
found extremely clean, as has been noted) would have ensured the non-traceability
of the wounds suffered by Meredith to it itself.

375
Now, concerning how this knife could have found itself in the house at Via della
Pergola when Meredith was killed, and in the custody of Amanda, the following
must be observed: Amanda had with her a very large handbag, as Romanelli
declared (page 51, hearing of 7 February 2009); in this handbag there could have
been found a place for the knife in question. Amanda, in her various movements
[about town], as for example to take herself to the le Chic pub situated in Via Alessi,
could have found herself walking alone, even late into the night, on roads that could
have seemed not very safe for a girl to be on at night time. It is thus possible and in
fact probable, considering the relationship that Raffaele Sollecito had with knives (he
never separated himself from his knife, as has been seen), that Amanda, advised and
convinced by her boyfriend, that is Raffaele Sollecito, to take this knife with her, if
not only to make her feel more secure, and that, if necessary, it could have served as
a deterrent against possible ill-intentioned persons that, at night and on her own, she
may have encountered. Furthermore, since it was a kitchen knife, Amanda, were she
to be checked, would have been able to easily explain why she was carrying it.

The presence of this knife in the house at Via della Pergola when Meredith was
killed, and its discovery in Raffaele Sollecito’s house, thus find plausible
explanations. It is moreover quite plausible that Amanda, holding this knife in her
own spacious handbag, when together with Raffaele they found themselves in the
house at Via della Pergola in the late evening of the 1st [404] November, may have
been able to take this knife at some point during Rudy’s advances, Meredith’s
refusal and Rudy’s reaction, perhaps with the intention, initially, of mere threat.

It must be also emphasised that the presence of biological traces discovered on the
handle of this knife, – and on which, regarding its attribution to Amanda, there was
advanced no particular censure nor perplexity, – appears more likely to have been
derived from her having held the knife to strike, rather than from having used it to
cut some food.

Remembering that this trace was found at the point in which the knife handle has a
kind of upturn or rise [rialzo], after which the blade begins, with the knife positioned
thus in a horizontal position with respect to the plane on which one is cutting [piano
di appoggio], it appears somewhat unlikely to hypothesise that such a biological trace
would have come to rest at the point indicated. Conversely, should the cutting
implement be used for striking, and therefore moving it not horizontally, but with a
certain inclination, it is quite probable for the hand holding the knife to undergo a
sliding motion due to the violence required for the blow and, finishing up with a
certain violence against said upturn, thereby leaving behind the biological trace.

376
Even this consideration, therefore, leads one to hold that the biological trace
attributable to Amanda and found on the knife handle, could have derived from the
use of the knife for the purpose of striking, rather than to cut food; it could have
derived, therefore, from the harmful action carried out against Meredith and as a
consequence, a biological trace attributable to Meredith remained in the tiny
striations present on the face of the blade, in spite of the subsequent cleaning, and
which does not appear otherwise explainable as to how, in this regard, it was to be
found there (Meredith had never been in Raffaele Sollecito’s house and could never
have used this knife).

Moreover, the knife Raffaele Sollecito carried with him had a definitely shorter blade
– as has been seen – than the length that would have been necessary for causing the
deeper resulting wound, with a depth of 8cm, and therefore, there must necessarily
have been [405] two knives at the scene of the crime, first one, and then the other,
being used against Meredith.

Amanda also, therefore, is to be found at the scene of the crime, and she also
participated in the violence against Meredith, united with Raffaele and Rudy, with
one objective pursued together, and participated in together: to subdue Meredith,
allowing Rudy to sexually assault her, creating a situation of violence and eroticism,
as observed earlier.

In this context, the death of Meredith, while not constituting the primary end,
became an eventuality that easily could be realised due to the particularly vital body
region that came to be struck (the neck); due to the certain suitability of the weapons
used (knives capable of producing deep wounds), and due to the violence carried
out against the victim: hands used to seal the mouth and impede the breathing, the
repeated and violent blows that caused 4cm- and 8cm-deep wounds.

This eventuality of death, highly probable, came to be accepted [by the attackers]
and the harmful actions [were] carried out and followed through both by Amanda
and by Raffaele, who acted pursuing the same objective that made them similar to
Rudy: there is therefore the awareness and the will to cause death in the context of
sexual assault.

377
BIOLOGICAL TRACES FOUND IN THE SMALL BATHROOM USED BY
MEREDITH AND AMANDA

The inquiry activity revealed further elements against the accused.

We refer to the traces found in the bathroom next to Meredith’s and Amanda’s room,
and generally used by both girls.

It was maintained that this common usage ought to render the traces found in this
room completely irrelevant. It is an argument which cannot be upheld when we
consider the overall situation found in this bathroom and which appears almost to
document, in sequence, the actions carried out.

After Meredith had been killed, those who had struck her with the knives must have
been stained with blood and had, therefore, the necessity of cleaning themselves.

[406] The bathroom nearest to Meredith’s room was the environment best suited for
this need, and it is likely it was there that they took themselves, and the traces found
in the bathroom give confirmation of this, and so, on the bathroom door, evidently
touched to gain entry or on which something was pressed (for example, a piece of
clothing) there was a droplet of blood, Meredith’s blood (see photos 141 and 142 of
the photographic evidence, volume 3). On the light switch (evidently pressed on
because, being night time, it was necessary to turn on the light), one can see the
presence of a slight blood stain that turned out to be Meredith’s. On the box of cotton
buds on the washbasin, bloodstains were found and a biological trace, attributable to
Meredith and to Amanda.

Mixed biological traces, attributable to Meredith and to Amanda, were also found in
the washbasin and in the bidet, and appear to evidence the signs of an activity of
cleaning of the hands and feet, effected in the washbasin and in the bidet, an activity
that, through the action of rubbing, involved the cleaning of the victim’s blood, and
could involve the loss of the cells through exfoliation of whoever was cleaning
themselves: the two biological traces thus united together in that single trace
described by Dr Brocci and that, because of the presence of blood, took on a faded
red colouration, like diluted blood. This trace was attributable to Amanda and to
Meredith, both as regards the bidet as well as the basin.

The sky-blue mat positioned inside the bathroom contained imprinted blood stains
which were found to be Meredith’s, and in particular one of these stains outlined a
footprint (see photo 157 of the photographic folder last cited).

378
The Defence also focused attention on this stain, and in particular Professor Vinci,
consultant for the Raffaele Sollecito defence, tried to demonstrate that this shape was
imprinted from a bare foot compatible with that of Rudy’s. In the relevant chapter
[of this sentencing report], the various considered elements were examined, and the
reasons by which Professor Vinci’s assumption does not appear to be sustainable
were described. In addition to recalling these considerations, it is to be [407]
observed that there are further arguments which lead to excluding that the print on
the mat could be attributable to the foot of Rudy Hermann Guede.

It must in fact be emphasised that the shoe prints found in the hallway, after an
initial attribution to Raffaele Sollecito, were traced to footwear matching those that
were to be found in the shoe box found in Rudy’s house. In relation to this, it must
be affirmed that Rudy had been in Meredith’s room with his shoes on, and, moving
around in this room where there were large patches of blood, it is quite possible that
he had placed his feet in these pools as well; Rudy, in this way, came to have blood
on the soles of his shoes, and, leaving the room, left his blood-marked prints, which,
therefore, showed the course and direction that he took: towards the exit of the
house, as has already been shown. These factual elements lead, therefore, to ruling
out that Rudy had been barefoot in Meredith’s room and that he had stained his feet.
As a consequence, the shape of the bare footprint on the sky-blue mat in the little
bathroom cannot be attributed to Rudy, who, on leaving Meredith’s room (according
to what the shoe prints show), directed himself towards the exit without deviating or
stopping in other rooms.

Also from this viewpoint it must be excluded that the print left on the sky-blue mat
in the little bathroom could be attributable to Rudy. A footprint that, for what has
been observed in the relevant chapter [of this report] and for the reasons just
outlined, must be attributed to Raffaele Sollecito, who, therefore, took himself, along
with Amanda, into that same bathroom, and for the same reason as Amanda. That
there then were no biological traces found in this bathroom also attributable to
Raffaele Sollecito as there were biological traces attributable to Meredith and to
Amanda, does not diminish the validity of what has been said. Raffaele Sollecito
could have washed himself in the shower stall, in a different way and with an
abundance of water, so that, either for one reason (no rubbing action, or not effected
in the same way), or for another reason (use of water in large quantities), he did not
leave his own biological traces while he [408] was washing himself, or rather, he
could have washed himself before Amanda, so that the water used by her
immediately afterwards could have carried away the preceding possible traces.

379
The traces found in the bathroom constitute, in their overall evaluation as mentioned
above, a further element of proof against Amanda Knox, showing how she herself
had been in the room where Meredith was killed and, stained with blood, she went
to the bathroom to wash herself, leaving, as a result of this action, mixed biological
traces constituted of her own material and of Meredith’s (likely the blood which
coloured the trace a faded red).

TRACES HIGHLIGHTED BY LUMINOL

It was also said of the traces highlighted by Luminol and of how these very traces,
because of the certain presence of blood in abundance in the house and because of
the lack of indication, beyond the mere hypotheses made, of substances which could
actually have been present and present in various areas, indicate that Amanda (with
her feet stained with Meredith’s blood for having been present in her room when she
was killed) had gone into Romanelli’s room and into her own *room+ leaving traces
[which were] highlighted by Luminol, some of which (one in the corridor, the L8,
and one, the L2, in Romanelli’s room) were mixed, that is, constituted of a biological
trace attributable to [both] Meredith and Amanda, and others with traces
attributable only to Amanda (the three found in her own room and indicated as L3,
L4 and L5) and only to the victim (one found in Romanelli’s room, the L1).

These traces, besides constituting further evidence of the presence of Amanda in


Meredith’s room when she was killed, lead *us+ to believe that Amanda and
Raffaele, before deciding to break the glass in the window of Romanelli’s room and
leave the house, wished to make sure that there was no-one in the street; a worry
that may have had its basis both in the scream let out by Meredith and which could
have been heard by someone who, being in the street, had stopped in curiosity, and
in the presence, only slightly earlier, of a broken-down car, in the very near [409]
vicinity of the house on Via della Pergola, a car which both Amanda and Raffaele
must have noticed when they entered the house; in fact, it should be considered that
Raffaele must have already noticed the presence of such a vehicle when he was in
the square in front of the University when, as Curatolo testified, he went close to the
grating located there in order to look below, where that same broken-down car,
causing an obstruction to the traffic, may have caused horns to be blown. Such
noises may have drawn the attention of Raffaele Sollecito who, finding himself in the

380
piazzetta above and therefore only a few metres distant, became curious and thus
might have gone to look over [the railing] to see what had happened (on the
presence of that car and on the timing, cf. the statements of Giampaolo Lombardo
who testified that he had arrived at about 23,00 pm with the tow truck after a phone
call received at about 22.30 pm, and had loaded the broken-down car and left again
at about 23.15 pm: hearing of 27 March 2009).

The biological traces attributable to Amanda (one to Amanda alone and one to
Amanda and Meredith) highlighted by Luminol and present in the rooms of
Amanda and Romanelli can therefore be adequately explained by the need to check
what the situation outside the house was, and to do this Amanda had to look from
the window of her own room and from the window of Romanelli’s room, leaving in
these areas the prints which were then highlighted by Luminol.

The situation outside the house must have seemed quiet (the tow truck had arrived
and left by about 23.15 pm and there was no-one in the street looking at the house,
moreover Capezzali and Dramis, who testified that they had heard the scream, did
not go outside their own homes) and it was then decided to break the glass in order
to create the staging of an unknown criminal entering from the window, and they
decided they could go outside. It is to be believed that Raffaele Sollecito, who in the
meantime, after having been in the small bathroom, must have put his shoes on
again, went around [the outside of] the house to look for the big stone (subsequently
found) to use in order to break the glass, and Amanda could, in her turn, go to the
bathroom to wash her hands and feet; when Raffaele came back in with the big [410]
stone the disorder in Romanelli’s room was created, the glass was broken, and the
shutters pushed towards the exterior.

Before leaving the house it is to be held that both went back into Meredith’s room,
taking care not to put their feet in any of the splashes of blood that were present
there, to take the mobile phones and they decided to cover Meredith’s body, which
was almost completely nude, with a duvet and then they left, locking this room’s
door with the key. It is likely, furthermore, that in returning to Meredith’s room at
that point, one of the little pieces of glass from the broken window ended up,
inadvertently, in that room, where it was later found, as has been recounted.

While Amanda and Raffaele were carrying out these actions, Rudy immediately left
by S. Antonio street until he reached the steel stairs of the car park, and climbing
these stairs made the noise heard by Capezzali. The latter, in fact, declared that first
she heard the noise on the steel stairs and then she heard the shuffling noise, as of

381
someone walking on leaves and gravel, a shuffling which was, therefore, produced
by someone who had just exited from the house on Via della Pergola and was on the
gravel path, where, because of the autumnal season and the presence of trees (see
photo 5 of file 1 of photographic evidence) there must also have been leaves.

These statements by Capezzali which have already been dealt with and which
constitute a confirmation of the presence of several people in the house where
Meredith was killed, make it possible to consider that the exit[s] from the little house
happened at different times: the first to come out was Rudy, who was already
wearing his shoes (as has been seen) and who headed immediately towards S.
Antonio street until he reached the steel stairs of the car park situated below the
window of Capezzali’s home; then Amanda and Raffaele exited, having stayed
behind in the house longer than Rudy had in order to attend to the actions which
have been mentioned, and their scrunching on the driveway outside (despite,
therefore, having only covered a couple of meters, or slightly more) was
subsequently heard.

Even the traces highlighted by Luminol therefore show the existence of evidence
against Amanda, making [the Court] consider that she, having been barefoot in the
room where Meredith was killed and having thus stained her feet, had left the traces
highlighted by Luminol (which could have resisted the subsequent action of
cleaning, on which more will follow) and found in the various parts of the house
which she went to for the reasons shown above (her own room, the corridor,
Romanelli’s room).

[411] This reconstruction, according to which Meredith’s death occurred a few


minutes after 23.30 pm is also confirmed by the thanato-chronological data [i.e. data
concerning the chronology of death] as there has already been occasion to note, as
well as by the following circumstances [which were] highlighted in the relevant
chapters:

Meredith’s English mobile phone established a GPRS connection at 22.13.19 pm


lasting 9 seconds, under the coverage of the Wind cell with the final numbers 30064,
which is compatible with Meredith’s room in the house on Via della Pergola 7; the
next telephone contact of the same mobile phone occurred at 0.10.13 am on the day
of 2 November 2007 and the cell connected to was that with the final numbers 25622,
which provides coverage to the villa on Via Sperandio and is incompatible with the
house on Via della Pergola.

382
Consequently, at 22.13.19 pm the situation must still have been quiet and Meredith
may have been toying with her own mobile phone, as was noted in the chapter
dedicated to the examination of the memory of Meredith’s English phone; at 01.10.31
the mobile phone was no longer in the house on Via della Pergola: at that hour,
therefore, Meredith must already have been killed and her phones taken and thrown
away. And in fact, Amanda and Raffaele, exiting the house on Via della Pergola
around midnight, could easily have reached Via Sperandio in a few minutes, and
from there have thrown, towards the zone of trees and bushes which at that time of
night may have looked like a precipice or uncultivated woods (an area where the
telephones would, with difficulty, have been found by someone), Meredith’s mobile
phones. In this regard, it should be underlined that from the file of planimetric
surveys [i.e. maps] can be seen the contiguity and closeness of the various streets,
situated almost in continuation from one to the other, and therefore known to the
current defendants: Via della Pergola, from which one may easily reach Corso
Garibaldi, where Raffaele Sollecito’s house was, [412] and Via Sperandio, located
almost behind the houses which mark the edge of the old town of Perugia but easily
and quite quickly reachable from Corso Garibaldi across various communicating
passages which lead to S. Angelo Park, along which runs, precisely, Via Sperandio.

In the chapter dedicated to the examination of the memory of Meredith Kercher’s


English mobile phone, there was occasion to point out that the authors of the murder
- had they actually been interested in the mobile phones themselves - would not
have taken them to then throw them into the midst of trees and shrubs. It is clear,
therefore, that the aim pursued was different.

A first hypothesis can be seen as an intent to further the simulated burglary so that
discovery of the two mobile phones could strengthen the lead of the unknown thief
who had entered the house on Via della Pergola by breaking the window-pane and
who had taken Meredith’s two telephones. This is a hypothesis which, while it has a
certain logical validity, seems scarcely credible since to that end it would have been
easier to (also) take one of the valuable items in Romanelli’s room, which had
already been turned upside down [i.e. rifled].

The other hypothesis, which this Court prefers also in relation to what will be
further observed at a later point, holds that it could have been to prevent the two
mobile phones from ringing as a result of calls which Meredith might have received,
which thus because of the insistent ringing and lack of an answer might have
brought forward the discovery of Meredith’s body to a much earlier time. In
particular, Amanda and Raffaele may have thought that Mezzetti or Romanelli or

383
one of the young men from downstairs, particularly Giacomo Silenzi, who had a
relationship with Meredith, might have returned to the house in the morning and if
they had heard the telephone ring without being answered by Meredith, might have
gone to check in the room and would have discovered what that room concealed. It
was therefore necessary to take the mobile phones away and to throw them far
away; it was also necessary to lock the door of Meredith’s room with the key in
order to prevent someone, returning to the house, from calling Meredith and, not
receiving [413] a response, going into the room and realising, too soon, what had
happened.

The taking of the mobile phones which were immediately thrown away and the
locking of Meredith’s room both had, therefore, the same objective: to isolate
Meredith and her room to prevent anyone who might have gone into the house on
the morning of 2 November from discovering what had happened too early.

Such a requirement may be explained by the need to check that no compromising


traces had been left behind and by the consequent need to eliminate any possible
remaining traces.

What has just been said is confirmed by the circumstance by which, on the morning
of 2 November at 07.45 am, Amanda was in Quintavalle’s shop and just after leaving
was seen travelling downhill along Corso Garibaldi, most likely therefore in the
direction of the house on Via della Pergola where, moreover, she might already have
been prior to 7.45 am.

Further confirmation is constituted by the fact that, after Meredith’s murder, it is


clear that some traces were definitely eliminated, a cleaning activity was certainly
carried out. In fact, the bare foot which, stained with blood, left its footprint on the
sky-blue mat in the bathroom, could only have reached that mat by taking steps
which should have left other footprints on the floor, also marked out in blood just
like (in fact, most likely, with even more [blood], since they were created before the
footprint printed on the mat) the one found on the mat itself. Of such other very
visible footprints of a bloody bare foot, on the contrary, there is no trace.

Even the drip of blood left on the internal edge of the bathroom door (see photos 141
and 142 already mentioned) seems to be the remainder of a much larger trace.

Moreover, this cleaning activity seems to fit in with the planning carried out by
taking the telephones, which were then immediately thrown away, and by locking

384
the door of Meredith’s room; otherwise one cannot see what other significance these
behaviours could have had.

[414] With regard to Meredith’s mobile phones, the hypothesis was also put forward
that these same [mobile phones] were stolen at about 22.00 pm and thrown in Via
Sperandio because the thief, hearing the connection reach one of the two telephones,
became frightened of keeping them and, being already in Via Sperandio, threw both
of them away.

This is an argument which is based on premises that have been shown to be


inconsistent according to what was looked at in greater depth in the appropriate
chapters (entrance into Meredith’s room and assault by a single aggressor who could
have used the broken window as the point of entry or could have managed to make
Meredith open [the door to him]; time of death to be established as being shortly
before 22.00 pm; incompatibility between cell 30064 on Strada Vicinale Ponte Rio
Monte La Guardia used for the connection of 22.13.9 pm and Meredith’s room
located in Via della Pergola); such an argument seems, moreover, completely
illogical. Whoever takes mobile phones knows well that, at some point or another, if
they are switched on, they may ring or have some connection; to avoid this, it would
be easy to turn the mobile phones off or to remove the SIM cards. And then: why
throw both mobile phones away if the connection had concerned only one of them?
[We] cannot see any reason why the author of the crime would have been in Via
Sperandio, which is located beyond the city walls of the town, in front of S. Angelo
Park which, at that hour, must have been dark and deserted. Furthermore, it must
also be observed, if one travels along the Via Sperandio road in the direction [of
someone] coming from Via della Pergola, one advances into the countryside (see,
once again, the file of planimetric surveys/maps) and [we] cannot see what
destination a person advancing along that street could have had with any objective
other than that held by this Court: to throw the telephones in a place where they
would be very difficult to find. To this must be added that even if the telephones had
been stolen for their economic value, and that throwing them away was a
spontaneous action dictated by fear, we cannot see the reason for having locked the
door of Meredith’s bedroom.

It should therefore be considered that the taking of the telephones and the locking of
the door of Meredith’s room were aimed at preventing someone [415] from
prematurely entering the English student’s room and discovering what had
happened in there, and this, probably, because of the need to check for possible

385
compromising traces left behind, and the necessity, in that case, of eliminating these
traces.

A plan which, as has been said, is confirmed by the testimony of Quintavalle:


entering the shop which also sold cleaning products at opening time, shows an
unquestionable urgency which is easily explained by the objective indicated, [and]
all the more so because that going into [the shop] and at such an early hour, was
denied by the defendant Amanda Knox.

This action of checking and cleaning was carried out, therefore, in the very early
hours of the morning of 2 November. And also this circumstance constitutes a clue
to the charge of both defendants: of both because it must have been a common [joint]
decision, taken at the time the mobile phones were taken and Meredith’s room was
locked; carrying out [the task of going to the store] was entrusted to Amanda alone
since, if they had been together, and someone had seen them at that time of the
morning, they would have been far more noticeable and if they had met anyone who
knew them, they would have most likely have had to give an explanation.

That this action of cleaning could have been carried out the same night, immediately
after the murder, seems difficult to hypothesis e. To linger on in the house where
Meredith’s body lay could have been risky. On the contrary, returning in the
morning would have allowed [them] to do the cleaning under better conditions and
with more time available; it is also possible that more cleaning products were
needed, as the visit to Quintavalle’s shop leads us to believe. Furthermore, once the
mobile phones had been taken, and the door had been locked, there would have
been no compelling reason not to put off the cleaning until early the next morning. If
anyone had arrived at the house (Silenzi, for example) the closed door would have
convinced him or her that Meredith was not in her room, and the impossibility of
hearing Meredith’s phones ring would not have given rise to any suspicion.

Nor is it held that what was presented with reference to the cleaning activity and the
prints elimination is contradicted by the prints that were actually found and this
with particular reference to the prints of shoes left in the corridor. In this regard,
[416] it can in fact by hypothesised that the cleaning action was not particularly
careful or else - and this second hypothesis is held to be more probable since the
shoe prints, as has been recalled, were fairly evident - that such an omission was
intentional, in the knowledge that, having been in Meredith’s room, when the latter
was killed, with bare feet as has already been noted, the shoe prints in blood would
have constituted an exonerating element in their defence.

386
We believe that the small blood stains in the bathroom were not considered to be
significant as to require specific cleaning and the same goes for the stains on the mat
which could be explained either by referring to wounds which the criminal would
have sustained when entering the house by breaking the glass, or by referring to a
loss of blood attributable to menstruation (furthermore, the house was occupied by
four young women).

With regard, then, to the traces highlighted by Luminol, it is possible that these had
resisted being cleaned, and in fact they were not visible and could only be seen when
the chemical reagent was sprayed.

Once the cleaning [action] which had been planned with Raffaele Sollecito had been
carried out, Amanda returned to the house on Corso Garibaldi; this was around
12.00 noon.

She makes sure that Meredith’s phones had not ended up in the hands of someone
who might have reported their recovery thus leading to a search being started, and
to this end she called Meredith’s English mobile phone number.

Nor can an argument be made against such an interpretation by recalling the


circumstance that Amanda called Meredith on only one of the phones. It should in
fact be observed that, having thrown both phones together and in the same place
(they were, in fact, found very close to each other), the fact that one [phone] had not
been found would lead to the conclusion that the other had not been found either. It
should, rather, be added that if Amanda’s concern had really been to find out where
Meredith was, the lack of a reply on the English mobile phone number which, as
Romanelli testified, Meredith never parted with because it allowed her to stay in
touch with her family, and in particular with her mother whom she knew was ill,
[417] should have given her [Amanda] even greater cause for alarm and made her
call the other telephone too.

Reassured, therefore, also on the aspect which was most important to Amanda and
Raffaele, Amanda called Romanelli, to whom she started to detail what she had
noticed in the house (without, however, telling her a single word about the
unanswered call made to Meredith, despite the question expressly put to her by
Romanelli) and Raffaele called the Carabinieri to whom he describes the situation
and specifies that there had been no theft, and we have already pointed out the
inconsistency of such statement the inconsistencies in Amanda’s and Raffaele’s
subsequent behaviour on the arrival of the agents from the Postal Police (to whom

387
they did not mention the problem of the locked door of Meredith’s room) and on the
arrival of Filomena Romanelli, Paola Grande, Luca Altieri, Marco Zaroli, when, as
soon as it was decided to break down the door, they remained in the background, at
a distance, without manifesting any particular interest in seeing what could be found
in Meredith’s room.

{CONCLUSION}

All of the elements put together, and considered singularly, create a comprehensive
and complete framework without gaps or incongruities and lead to the inevitable
and directly consequential attribution of the crimes to both the accused, for which
therefore they have penal responsibility, with the exception of the items listed under
Heading D) other than the cell phones, with regard to which no evidence emerged
against [elementi a carico] the accused, who are therefore absolved for the relative and
residual charge because it was not proven that the crime was committed [il fatto non
sussiste].

The stealing of the mobile phones complements the crime of theft due to the benefit,
which has been mentioned, obtained by stealing the mobile phones. A benefit that,
in order to constitute the crime of theft [ai fini della configurabilità del furto], does not
necessarily have to be of a financial or a property-related nature (cf. for example,
Cass. 12.2.1985 No. 4471 and Cass. 22.11.1983 No. 9983).

Amanda Knox is also declared guilty of the crime of calunnia which was attributed to
her.

[418] The accusation directed at Patrick Lumumba, of having committed the murder
and assault against Meredith, clearly emerged as having been made by Amanda
Knox between 5 and 6 November 2007. Amanda came back to this accusation during
the first conversations she had with her mother, and the regret shown in this regard
(cf. audio surveillance of 10 November) constitutes confirmation of the accusation
and awareness of its injustice. An awareness which, moreover, is derived from what
has been presented regarding Amanda’s responsibility in the murder and assault
against Meredith. Nor can it be claimed, in order to rule out the determination of the
crime of calunnia, that Amanda Knox was persuaded by the investigators to accuse
Diya Lumumba aka Patrick, by means of various pressing requests which she could
not resist. Such a theory, also suggested in the declarations made by Amanda during
the course of the present trial and which have been documented here-above, does

388
not seem acceptable. On the one hand it can be seen that there has been no
confirmation and no corroboration of the pressing requests which Amanda was
seemingly subjected to in order to accuse Diya Lumumba of the crime committed to
the detriment of Meredith. It must also be pointed out that Diya Lumumba was not
known in any way, and no element, whether of habitually visiting the house on Via
della Pergola, or of acquaintance with Meredith, could have drawn the attention of
the investigators to this person in such a way as to lead themselves to ‚force‛
Amanda’s declarations.

[Amanda] herself, furthermore, in the statement of 6 November 2007 (admitted into


evidence ex. articles 234 and 237 of the Criminal Procedure Code and which was
mentioned above) wrote, among other things, the following: ‚I stand by my –
accusatory - statements that I made last night about events that could have taken
place in my home with Patrick... in these flashbacks that I'm having, I see Patrick as
the murderer...‛. This statement which, as specified in the entry of 6 November 2007,
20:00 pm, by the Police Chief Inspector, Rita Ficarra, was drawn up, following the
notification of the detention measure, by Amanda Knox, who ‚requested blank
papers in order to produce a written statement to hand over‛ to the same Ficarra.

It must therefore be asserted that Amanda Knox freely accused Diya Lumumba of
having killed Meredith, and so accused him with full knowledge of the innocence of
the [419] same Lumumba. The incriminating evidence against Amanda Knox and
her boyfriend Raffaele Sollecito which has been presented also highlights the goal
that was thus pursued: to lead the investigators down the wrong track, far away
from that which might have led to an investigation of her own and her boyfriend’s
responsibility. A behaviour and a choice, therefore, [that were] purely defensive:
Amanda had good relations with Lumumba, by whom she had always been treated
well, as she herself stated, and thus there could have been no reason for rancour,
animosity, revenge which could have justified such a serious accusation; the sole
reason for unjustly accusing Lumumba was that of distancing herself and her
boyfriend from every possibility of suspicion and the necessity of further
investigations. To obtain this it was necessary to indicate a different perpetrator and
so Amanda pointed to Diya Lumumba. A behaviour, therefore, which follows the
same defence strategy as that already put into effect with the staging implemented
by breaking the window of Romanelli’s room, and constitutes a further confirmation
of Amanda Knox’s capacity for fictitious representations and contrived
manipulation of the events.

389
With regard to the aggravating circumstances which have been attributed, it was
decided to exclude that of the impaired defence in consideration of the fact that the
assault against Meredith was carried out in the room in which she lived. Meredith,
furthermore, was awake and still dressed; neither having consumed drugs nor
abused alcohol, she was in a state of full consciousness and complete capacity to
react.

The aggravating circumstance of trivial motives is also excluded, since it was


attributed without further specification other than a mere mention of Article 577 of
the Criminal Code.

Within the crime of murder, carried out in the course of the sexual assault which
Meredith Kercher was subjected to according to what has been presented, the crime
of sexual assault is assimilated as a special aggravating circumstance of the former
[i.e. of the murder]. In this regard it should be noted that the aggravating
circumstance provided for by Article 576 paragraph 1 number 5 of the Criminal
Code. (having committed the crime in the act of committing any of the crimes
provided for by Articles 519, 520 and 521 of the Criminal Code which provide for,
respectively, rape, sexual intercourse [420] carried out with abuse of *one’s+ position
as a public official, and violent indecent acts)must always be applied when in the
presence of crimes of sexual assault regulated by Articles 609 bis et seq. [of the] same
code, as introduced in Law 15.2.1996 No. 66, noting that nothing in this law has
provided for the repeal of the above-mentioned Articles 519, 520 and 521 of the
Criminal Code since the reference to the latter articles made in Article 576 of the
Criminal falls within the category of formal reference [rinvio] and not into the
category of applicable law [rinvio recettizio], then the repeal did not include an
‚abolitio criminis‛ but only an ordinary phenomenon of succession of incriminating
criminal laws (see Court of Cassation 28.1.2005 No. 6775).

This Court considers that both the defendants should be granted generic mitigating
circumstances equivalent to the above-mentioned special aggravating circumstance.

There are various elements allowing generic [extenuating circumstances] to be


granted in the case in question.

First, it should be recalled that the seriousness of the crime is not in itself alone an
obstacle to the recognition of generic extenuating circumstances (a principle
established since 1979 by the S.C.30 with judgement No. 7392, and confirmed with

30
Suprema Corte di Cassazione

390
sentence 33690/09); for their recognition [of generic extenuating circumstances],
reference should also be made to certain elements and states of affairs, other than
those indicated legislatively by Article 62 of the Criminal Code due to, for the said
clause, the express provision contained in Article 62 bis of the Criminal Code:
‚independently of the circumstances set out in Article 62‛. Therefore, in exercising
the power of discretion required of a judge, without singling out specific Article 62
bis of the Criminal Code situations in the presence of which such standards must
apply, account must be taken of circumstances not explicitly envisaged by the
legislator but which have a significant value for the purpose of determining the
sentence without disregard ‚for the criteria indicated by the legislator in Article 133
of the Criminal Code, dealing with all-comprehensive regulation on the possible
situations which might have an effect on how sanctions are dealt with‛ (Cassation
33690/09).

That said, it should be noted above all that both defendants have no criminal record,
no pending suit (with regard to the non-applicability of the limit to the granting of
generic [extenuating circumstances] in Article 1 letter F bis [421] Law 24.7.2008 No.
125 to crimes committed in an earlier period, cf. Cassation 10646/2009). Other than
their personal use of drugs, no unbecoming behaviour of the same [defendants] was
demonstrated to have been carried out to the detriment of others. No witness
testified to violent actions, or to aggressions-intimidations carried out by the current
defendants to the detriment of anyone at all. To the contrary, there were even shown
to be circumstances in which as much one as the other, besides diligently and
profitably undertaking their studies in the manner that they were expected to do as
students (Raffaele Sollecito was on the point of graduating and Amanda Knox was
working profitably and regularly in the classes she was attending at the University)
proved themselves to be available with others (Raffaele Sollecito, on the evening of 1
November, was meant to have accompanied Jovana Popovic to the station) and
made the effort of taking on work (Amanda Knox worked in the evenings in the pub
of Diya Lumumba) which was added to the effort required by their studies and
attending lessons. These circumstances seem significant ex Article 133 paragraph 2
number 2 of the Criminal Code.

Both defendants are very young, and were younger still at the time the events [took
place]. The inexperience and immaturity characteristic of youth were accentuated by
the situation in which both found themselves because it [the situation] was different
from that in which they had grown up and did not have the usual points of reference
(family, friends, acquaintances made through the years, one’s own country and town

391
of origin) which might have served as a continual support, [point of] comparison
and check in the decisions of daily life. Thus Amanda Knox, who had been in
Perugia for less two months, driven only (as far as the proceedings have allowed [us]
to judge) by curiosity and by the desire to have several experiences, found herself
living without that protection and shelter constituted, in particular, by her family (in
this regard what Amanda declared with regard to her ‚big‛ family, *and+ to the
intense and continual [lasting] relationships existing within it, appears even more
significant); analogously [the same applies to] Raffaele Sollecito whose father
phoned him regularly, signifying the need his son still had for a presence [someone
to be there] to continually listen to, support and guide him; phone calls which were,
however, incapable of taking the place of the [physical] closeness and control which
were evidently still necessary (significant circumstances ex [according to] Article 133
paragraph 2 number 4 of the Criminal Code).

[422] It should further be noted that the criminal acts were carried out on the force of
purely chance contingencies which, put together one with the other, created a
situation that, in the combination of various factors, made possible the crimes to the
detriment of Meredith: Amanda and Raffaele who suddenly found themselves
without any commitments; they meet Rudy Guede by chance (there is no trace of
any appointment having been made), and find themselves together with him at the
house on the Via della Pergola where, precisely that evening, Meredith is alone. A
crime that is carried out, therefore, without any planning, without any animosity or
feelings of rancour against the victim which could be seen in any way as
preparation-predisposition to [commit a] crime. Considerations which, together with
what has been observed on malice with regard to the crime of murder, appear
significant in terms of Article 133 paragraph 1 number 3 of the Criminal Code.

Even the[their] behaviour towards Meredith once the assault and the murder had
been committed, which consisted in covering her lifeless body, shows a feeling of
pity for the victim, a refusal, and thus a sort of repentance for what has been done:
refusal and repentance expressed through such an act of pity. And also the fact of
having remained far from Meredith’s room when, through the breaking down of the
door, it was opened, seems to be along the same lines as the act of covering the body:
the pity towards the victim and the refusal of the evil committed which appear to be
expressed in the act of covering the body and in the decision to remain far away so
as not to see Meredith’s body, her blood spilt. Behaviours which are shown to be
significant according to Article 133 paragraph 2 number 3 of the Criminal Code.

392
Such generic extenuating [circumstances] are considered to be equivalent and not
also prevailing [do not predominate] with respect to the aggravating [circumstance]
of sexual assault. The latter [sexual assault], in fact, is highly important and
significant such that it constitutes, when considered in its own right, a very serious
independent [separate] crime and, placed in the context of the events in
consideration, carries a sentence of life imprisonment. In relation to the occurrence of
such aggravating [circumstances] the generic mitigating [circumstances] must be
evaluated, and justified on the basis of the considerations outlined above, in terms of
equivalence and not [rather than in terms] of prevalence.

[423] The element of continuance in a crime must be applied to all the crimes due to
the concomitance of the time and place in which they were committed, the objectives
which were pursued and the situation in which they arose.

The most serious crime on which the increases [of penalty] due to the continuance
must be applied is the murder considered the punishment prescribed by law
provided for this [i.e. murder] and the extreme damage caused. It is precisely the
seriousness of this damage as constituted by the killing of a young woman, violated
intimately and subjected to wounds which, with great suffering, caused her death,
which forms the deciding factor in determining the punishment ex [in accordance
with] Article 133 of the Criminal Code and on which are applied the maximum
increases for the reiteration provided for by Article 575 of the Criminal Code and to
the extent of 24 years of imprisonment.

The element of continuance together with the crimes of simulation [staging] and of
unjustifiable carrying of the knife and of the theft of the cell phones determines, with
regard to Raffaele Sollecito, an increase of the punishment of a further 1 year and
thus Raffaele Sollecito is condemned to 25 years of imprisonment. In relation to the
fact that in addition to the said crimes Amanda Knox is also answerable for the crime
of calunnia, she must be condemned to a total punishment of 26 years of
imprisonment (base penalty 24 years; increased to 24 years and 6 months for the
simulation [staging]; to 24 years and 9 months for carrying the knife; to 25 years for
theft and increased, finally, by a further year for calunnia).

Both [defendants] are likewise ordered to pay the costs of the trial and of custody in
prison.

393
In accordance with Articles 29 and 32, Amanda Knox and Raffaele Sollecito are also
declared in perpetuity to be forbidden from Public Office and to be in a state of legal
interdiction for the entire duration of the punishment.

Both defendants are condemned to the compensation, jointly and severally, of the
damages caused to the plaintiffs constituted by John Leslie Kercher, Arline Carol
Lara Kercher, Lyle Kercher, John Ashley Kercher and Stephanie Arline Lara Kercher,
damages to be settled in another trial [in separate sede].

In relation to the requests and conclusions formulated in that regard, a provisional


[compensation] is granted in which it is considered reasonable to indicate
€1.000.000,00 for each of the parents and €800.000 for each of the brothers and the
sister.

[424] The same defendants are also sentenced to reimburse the legal costs of the
plaintiffs named and constituted here above, which are assessed as being € 100.000
with regard to the defence of the plaintiff Stephanie Arline Lara Kercher and €
160.000 with regard to the defence of the other plaintiffs, that is of John Leslie
Kercher, of Arline Carol Lara Kercher, of Lyle Kercher, of John Ashley Kercher, in
addition to a lump-sum refund, VAT and CPA as provided by law.

The relevance and complexity of the case, the particular laboriousness [difficulty] of
the investigations, the number of hearings, the efforts lavished, all justify such sums.
The difference between them [the sums] is justified by the number of plaintiffs
represented by one defence with respect to the other and by the anticipated increase
in this regard provided for in cases, such as this case, of ‚parties having the same
position‛ (Article 3 paragraph 1 criminal charge attached to D.M. 8/4/2004 No. 127).

Knox Amanda Marie is furthermore sentenced to pay compensation for the damages
caused by the crime of calunnia to the plaintiff constituted by Patrick Diya
Lumumba, damages to be settled in another trial [in separate sede] as it is not
possible, on the basis of the information [available] in these proceedings, to precisely
determine them in this court.

In consideration of the damages nonetheless caused and demonstrated by the


defence [lawyer] of the plaintiff Patrick Diya Lumumba, it is considered, however,
that the above-mentioned defendant should be sentenced to pay a provisional
[compensation+ of € 10.000,00.

394
Knox Amanda Marie is furthermore condemned to the reimbursement of the legal
costs sustained by Patrick Diya Lumumba, which it is considered suitable to
calculate, in light of the activities carried out during the many hearings and
considering the relevance of the case, as amounting to € 40.000,00 in addition to a
lump-sum refund, VAT and [CPA] as provided by law.

Both the defendants are condemned to pay compensation for the damages suffered
by the plaintiff constituted by Aldalia Tattanelli, owner of the property located in
Via della Pergola 7. In this regard, it should be noted that the criminal acts which are
the subject of the charge, while not having caused, in themselves [in their own right],
the damage suffered by Tattanelli (except for the breaking of the window), are
related to this damage by an adequate causal relationship. In fact, the investigative
activities carried out [425] in the property and the confiscation of the latter with the
[resulting] enforced unavailability for its owner, are a direct result of the very
serious deeds carried out in the property to the point that, without such crimes, the
damage suffered by the owner for the damaging to, and unavailability of, the
property would not have occurred (cf. Cassation 22.4.1985 No. 7462). The claim [of
damages] therefore subsists because the current defendants are called upon to
answer for the damage suffered by the owner of the house at Via della Pergola 7 and
consisting of the damaging to the property and the non-enjoyment of the same
[property] during the period of confiscation. These damages, since no evidence of
their exact amount has been provided, will be settled in another trial [in separata
sede]. Nevertheless, in relation to the period over which the confiscation was
extended and to the income which could legitimately have been obtained from the
availability of the property, a provisional *compensation+ is granted equal to €
10.000,00.

Finally, both defendants, jointly and severally between them, are ordered to
reimburse the legal costs of the plaintiff Aldalia Tattanelli, which it is considered
reasonable to calculate, in light of the many hearings and considering the relevance
of the case, as amounting to € 23.000,00 in addition to a lump-sum refund, VAT and
CPA as provided by law.

The material evidence is confiscated as provided by Article 240 of the Criminal


Code.

395
VERDICT AND SENTENCE

FOR THESE REASONS

Under articles 533 and 535 of the Criminal Procedure Code

[this Court] Declares

KNOX Amanda Marie and SOLLECITO Raffaele guilty of the crimes ascribed to
them under chapter A) of the charges, into said crime being absorbed the felony
contested under chapter C), as well as [guilty] under chapter B), D) limited to the
mobile phones and E) and, as far as regards KNOX Amanda Marie, additionally the
crime she has been charged with under chapter F), all these crimes must be joined by
the element of continuance and, excluding the aggravations provided for by articles
577 and 61(5) of the Criminal Code, to both [accused] conceding the generic
mitigating circumstances equivalent to the remaining aggravation, [426] condemns
them, to a sentence of 26 years of imprisonment for KNOX and to a sentence of 25
years of imprisonment for SOLLECITO (base penalty for the reiteration, 24 years of
imprisonment) and each of them to pay court costs and prison custody.

Under articles 29 and 32 of the Criminal Code

Declares

KNOX Amanda Marie and SOLLECITO Raffaele forbidden in perpetuity from


holding Public Office and in a state of legal interdiction for the duration of the
sentence.

Under articles 538 and following of the Criminal Procedure Code

Sentences

KNOX Amanda Marie and SOLLECITO Raffaele to the compensation, jointly with
each other, for damages in dealings with the constituted plaintiffs John Leslie
Kercher, Arline Carol Lara Kercher, Lyle Kercher, John Ashley Kercher, and
Stephanie Arline Lara Kercher, damages to be liquidated in another trial and
awarding an immediately executive provisional [compensation] equal to the amount
of 1,000,000 euro each in favour of John Leslie Kercher and Arline Carol Lara
Kercher, and to 800,000 euro each in favour of Lyle Kercher, John Ashley Kercher
and Stephanie Arline Lara Kercher, in addition to a lump-sum refund, Value Added
Tax and CPA as required by law;

396
sentences KNOX Amanda Marie to compensate for damages in dealings constituted
by the plaintiff Patrick Diya Lumumba, to be liquidated in another trial and
awarding an executive immediate provisioning of 10,000 euro.

sentences KNOX Amanda Marie to pay the reimbursement of the legal costs
sustained by Patrick Diya Lumumba which liquidates in total to 40,000 euro in
addition to a lump-sum refund, Value Added Tax and CPA as required by law.

sentences KNOX Amanda Marie and SOLLECITO Raffaele to compensate for


damages in dealings with the plaintiff constituted by Aldalia Tattanelli to be
liquidated in a separate hearing, and Lyle Kercher, John Ashley Kercher and
Stephanie Arline Lara Kercher awarding to the same an immediately executive
provisional [compensation] of 10,000 euro.

[427]

Sentences the accused to jointly pay the reimbursement of the legal costs of the
plaintiff Aldalia Tattanelli which liquidates in total to 23,000 euro in addition to a
lump-sum refund, Value Added Tax and CPA as required by law.

Under article 240 of the Criminal Code

Orders the confiscation of material evidence.

Under article 530 of the Criminal Procedure Code

Exonerates the accused of the residual charge under chapter D) because it was not
proven that the crime was committed.

A deadline of 90 days is established for the sentencing report of the present verdict
[to be filed].

Perugia, 4-5 December 2009

Drafters [Estensori]31:

Dr Beatrice Cristiani, judge

Dr Giancarlo Massei, president.

31
Estensore = a person who draws up a legal document

397

Das könnte Ihnen auch gefallen